^.UX MUNDI
a Series of grtutites
IN THE
RELIGION OF THE INCARNATION
EDITLD
By CHARLES GORE, M.A.
PRINCIPAL OF PUSEY HOUSE
. FELLOW OF TRINITY COLLEGE, OXFORD
FROM THE FIFTH ENGLISH EDITION
NEW YORK
UNITED STATES BOOK COMPANY
Publishers
iJlqj
tf
|0
TOs issue of LUX MUNDI is published in
the United' States under an arrangement by which the
author is paid a royalty on all copies sold.
^Enttottg Press:
John Wilson and Son, Cambridge.
n
ESSAYS AND CONTRIBUTORS.
i. Faith.
Rev. H. S. Holland, M. A., Canon of St. Paul's, sometime
Senior Student of Christ Church.
2. The Christian Doctrine of God.
Rev. Aubrey Moore, M. A., Hon. Canon of Christ Church,
Tutor of Magdalen and Keble Colleges.
3. The Problem of Pain : its bearing on Faith in God.
Rev. J. R. Illingworth, M. A., Rector of Longworth, some-
time Fellow of Jesus and Tutor of Keble Colleges.
4. The Preparation in History for Christ.
Rev. E. S. Talbot, D. D., Vicar of Leeds, sometime Warden
of Keble College.
5. The Incarnation in relation to Development.
Rev. J. R. Illingworth.
6. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma.
Rev. R. C. Moberly, M. A., Vicar of Great Budworth, some-
time Senior Student of Christ Church.
7. The Atonement.
Rev. and Hon. Arthur Lyttelton, M. A., Master of Selwyn
College, Cambridge, sometime Tutor of Keble College.
vi Essays and Contributors.
8. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration.
Rev. C. Gore, M.A., Principal of Pusey House, Fellow of
Trinity College.
9. The Church.
Rev. W. Lock, M. A., Sub-Warden of Keble and Fellow of
Magdalen Colleges.
10. Sacraments.
Rev. F. Paget, D.D., Canon of Christ Church, and Regius
Professor of Pastoral Theology.
11. Christianity and Politics.
Rev. W. J. H. Campion, M. A., Tutor of Keble College.
12. Christian Ethics.
Rev. R. L. Ottley, M. A., Vice-Principal of Cuddesdon, late
Senior Student of Christ Church.
PREFACE.
1. This volume is primarily due to a set of circum-
stances which exist no longer. The writers found them-
selves at Oxford together between the years 1875-1885,
engaged in the common work of University education ;
and compelled for their own sake, no less than that of
others, to attempt to put the Catholic faith into its right
relation to modern intellectual and moral problems. Such
common necessity and effort led to not infrequent meet-
ings, in which a common body of thought and sentiment,
and a common method of commending the faith to the
acceptance of others, tended to form itself. We, who once
enjoyed this happy companionship, are now for the most
part separated. But at least some result of our temporary
association remains, which it is hoped may justify and
explain the present volume.
2. For this collection of essays represents an attempt
on behalf of the Christian Creed in the way of explanation.
We are sure that Jesus Christ is still and will continue to
be the * Light of the Word.' We are sure that if men
can rid themselves of prejudices and mistakes (for which,
it must be said, the Church is often as responsible as they),
and will look afresh at what the Christian faith really means,
they will find that it is as adequate as ever to interpret life
viii Preface.
and knowledge in its several departments, and to impart
not less intellectual than moral freedom. But we are con-
scious also that if the true meaning, of the faith is to be
made sufficiently conspicuous it needs disencumbering, re-
interpreting, explaining. We can but quote in this sense
a distinguished French writer who has often acted as an
inspiration to many of us. Pere Gratry felt painfully that
the dogmas of the Church were but as an ' unknown
tongue ' to many of the best of his compatriots. ' It is
not enough,' he said, ' to utter the mysteries of the Spirit,
the great mysteries of Christianity, in formulas, true before
God, but not understood of the people. The apostle and
the prophet are precisely those who have the gift of inter-
preting these obscure and profound formulas for each man
and each age. To translate into the common tongue the
mysterious and sacred language . . . ; to speak the word of
God afresh in each age, in accordance with both the nov-
elty of the age and the eternal antiquity of the truth, —
this is what St. Paul means by interpreting the unknown
tongue. But to do this, the first condition is that a man
should appreciate the times he lives in. " Hoc autem
tempus quare non probatis ? " ' *
3. We have written then in this volume, not as 'guessers
at truth,' but as servants of the Catholic Creed and Church,
aiming only at interpreting the faith we have received. On
the other hand, we have written with the conviction that
the epoch in which we live is one of profound transforma-
tion, intellectual and social, abounding in new needs, new
points of view, new questions ; and certain therefore to in-
volve great changes in the outlying departments of theology,
1 Gratry, Henri Perreyve, Paris, 1880, p. 162.
Preface. ix
where it is linked on to other sciences, and to necessitate
some general restatement of its claim and meaning.
This is to say that theology must take a new develop-
ment. We grudge the name ' development,' on the one
hand, to anything which fails to preserve the type of the
Christian Creed and the Christian Church ; for develop-
ment is not innovation, it is not heresy : on the other hand,
we cannot recognize as the true 'development of Christian
doctrine' a movement which means merely an intensifica-
tion of a current tendency from within, a narrowing and
hardening of theology by simply giving it greater definite-
ness or multiplying its dogmas.
The real development of theology is rather the process
in which the Church, standing firm in her old truths, enters
into the apprehension of the new social and intellectual
movements of each age: and because 'the truth makes
her free,' is able to assimilate all new material, to welcome
and give its place to all new knowledge, to throw herself
into the sanctification of each new social order, bringing
forth out of her treasures things new and old, and showing
again and again her power of witnessing under changed
conditions to the catholic capacity of her faith and life.
4. To such a development these studies attempt to be a
contribution. They will be seen to cover, more or less, the
area of the Christian faith in its natural order and sequence
of parts ; but the intention is not to offer complete theologi-
cal treatises, or controversial defences of religious truths,
it is rather to present positively the central ideas and prin-
ciples of religion, in the light of contemporary thought and
current problems. The only one of the essays in fact
which has any degree of formal completeness is that on
Christian Ethics, — a subject on which the absence of
x Preface.
systematic books of a genuine English growth seems to
justify a more detailed treatment.
5. The main omissions of which we are conscious are
due to want of space. For instance, we should have been
very glad to attempt a separate treatment of the subject of
sin ; though we hope the line that would be taken about it
has been sufficiently indicated by more than one writer. 1
Again, we have left aside any detailed discussion of his-
torical evidences ; but it will be seen that our attempt has
been so to present the principles of the Christian faith as
to suggest the point of view from which evidences are in-
telligible, and from which they will, it is firmly believed,
be found satisfactory. Once more, if we have not found
room for a treatment of miracles, at least we hope that the
Church's conception of God, as He manifests Himself in
nature and in grace, which we have endeavored to express,
will at once acquit us of any belief in capricious 'violations
of law ; ' and will also suggest a view of the world as dis-
ordered by sin and crying out for redemption, which will
make it intelligible that 'miracles' should appear, not as
violating law, but as a necessary element in its restoration
as well as its completer exhibition; contrary, not to the
fundamental order of the Divine working, but only to a
superficial or mechanical view of it, or to a view which sin
has distorted or preoccupation with physical science has
unduly narrowed.
6. It only remains to explain that we have written, not
as mere individuals, but as ministers, under common con-
ditions, of a common faith. This unity of conviction has
enabled us freely to offer and accept mutual criticism and
l See pp. I73- J 75. 2 43- 2 44, 265-268, 398-399-
Preface. xi
so that without each of us professing such
responsibility for work other than his own, as would have
involved undue interference with individual method, we do
desire this volume to be the expression of a common mind
and a common hope.
C. G.
Pusey House,
Michaelmas, 1889.
PREFACE TO FIFTH EDITION.
The author of the essay * The Holy Spirit and Inspira-
tion* has endeavored to obviate further misunderstanding
of his meaning on one important point by rewriting some
sentences on pp. 300-301, in accordance with the Corrigenda
inserted in the Fourth Edition.
SYNOPSIS OF CONTENTS.
i.
Faith.
PAGE
I. Faith;, its situation; its behavior; challenged by novel experi-
ences; alarmed at its own perplexity 3-5
Yet why alarmed ? 5
Perplexity consistent with faith, when faith is stripped of its
habitual corroborations from without : and summoned to sub-
mit itself to internal observation . . . 5-7
For faith is an elemental act of personal self: and, therefore,
like all such acts, e. g., of thought ; will ; love ; is, necessarily,
incapable of offering itself for scientific examination .... 7-9
II. What is faith? 9,10
The motion in us of our sonship in the Father ; the conscious
recognition, and realization, of our inherent filial adhesion to
God 11-13
This intimacy of relationship is capable of indefinite growth, of
'supernatural ' development 13
The history of faith is the gradual discovery of this increasing
intimacy I 3 _I 5
The demand for faith is (a) universal, for all are sons ; (b) urgent,
as appealing to a vital fact; (c) tolera?it, as reposing on existent
fact 15-18
III. Faith, an act of basal personality, at the root of all out-flowing
activities ; is present, as animating force, within all natural
faculties. When summoned out, into positive or direct action
on its own account = Religion, i. e., the emergence, into open
manifestation, of Fatherhood and sonship, which lie hidden
within all secular life 18-24
Faith, an energy of basal self, using, as instruments and material,
the sum of faculties; therefore, each faculty, separately, can give
but a partial vindication of an integral act of faith . . . . 24,25
This applies to Reason ; compare its relation to acts of affection,
imagination, chivalry ; all such acts are acts of Venture, using
evidence of reason in order to go beyond evidence .... 25-29
So faith makes use of all knowledge, but is, itself, its own motive.
It uses as its instrument every stage of science ; but is pledged
to no one particular stage 29-32
xiv Synopsis of Contents.
PAGE
IV. Faith, simple adhesion of soul to God; yet, once begun, it has
a history of its own; long, complicated, recorded in Bible,
stored up in Creeds 3 2_ 34
This involves difficulties, intricacies, efforts ; all this, the neces-
sary consequence of our being born in the ' last days ' . . 34-37
Yet to the end, faith remains an act of personal and spiritual
adhesion 37, 38
V. Faith not only covers a long past, but anticipates the future ; it
pledges itself ahead, e. g., in the case of 'ordination vows.'
Such pledges justified, because the act of faith is personal ;
and the object of faith is final, i. e., ' Christ, the same yester- *
day, to-day, and forever ' 38-44
II.
The Christian Doctrine of God.
I. Object of the essay and attitude assumed 47~49
II. A broad contrast between the God of Philosophy and the God of
religion 49
Attempts to get rid of the opposition (1) by division of territory;
(2) by confusion of terms 49--5 1
III. Religion demands that God shall be Personal, and stand in a
moral relationship with man 5 2 ~54
IV. Growth and purification of the religious conception of God . . 54-56
V. Religion and Morals. Collision between the two in Greece, and
its consequences. Synthesis of religion and morality among
the Jews : and in Christianity 56-64
Subsequent collisions between religion and morals within the
Christian Church. The Reformation a moral protest. Im-
morality of its later developments. Modern protest against
these 64-68
VI. Religion and Reason. Protest of Greek Philosophy against
Polytheism. Christian Theology the meeting-point of Jew-
ish religion and Greek Philosophy 68-71
What Theology is. Objection to it from the side of (1) re-
ligion, (2) Philosophy 71-74
The Christian doctrine of the Trinity an appeal to the reason 74, 75
Its answer to the speculative problems of Greek thought (1) as
to what unity is; (2) as to the immanence of reason in
nature 75 — 7^
The witness of the Fathers 7 8 , 79
The doctrine of the Trinity the true Monotheism; the doc-
trine of the Logos as personal yet immanent 79
VII. The Christian doctrine of God, why challenged in the pres-
ent day 79
The deism of the last century. The new science of nature.
Evolution restores the truth of the Divine immanence which
deism denied. Pantheistic reaction 80-84
The Christian doctrine of God the safeguard of rational re-
ligion against deism and pantheism 84, 85
Synopsis of Contents. xv
PAGE
VIII. The so-called ' proofs ' of the existence of God 85-87
Parallel between the belief in God and the belief in nature . 87, 88
Verification in experience the only 'proof.' Reason in both
the interpreter of Faith . . . 88-90
III.
The Problem of Pain.
The problem of pain admits of no new treatment, but the attempt
to use it as an argument against Christianity calls for a re-
capitulation of what may be said on the other side ... 93
Pain is (1) animal, (2) human.
(1) Animal pain is a thing of which we can only form im-
aginative conjectures ; and these, besides being liable to
exaggeration, are not of a nature to form premises for
argument 93~95
(2) Common-sense tells us that human pain contributes as
(a) punitive, (b) purgatorial, (c) prophylactic, to the de-
velopment of the individual and the race 95~9S
Natural religion further views it as the necessary condition
of approach, by sinful beings, to the Divine ; and looks
for its fuller explanation to a future existence .... 98-100
Christianity carries on the view of natural religion, and
sees in pain and suffering, —
(a) The antidote to sin 100-102
(b) The means of individual and social progress . . . 102, 103
(c) The source of sympathy with man 103
(d) The secret of union with God 103, 104
IV.
Preparation in History for Christ.
General considerations on the study of the historical preparation,
as part of the study of the Incarnation 107-110
Special value of such study in the present age of historical and
scientific method, which
may be able to gauge finally the value of naturalist theories
of the origin of Christianity no, in
may find its own congenial 'signs' in the beauty of mani-
fold preparing process ; in the wonder of an apparently
unique convergence of lines of preparation 111-114
I. General preparation — in the world at large :
(1) In the shaping of its external order 114-118
(2) Through its inward experiences of
Failure 118-121
Progress „ 121-124
xv i Synopsis of Contents.
PAGE
II. Special preparation — in Israel:
(i) The singularity of Israel's external position at the critical
moment of the Christian Era 124-129
(2) The paradox of its inward character 129-132
(3) The peculiar influences which had made it what it was . 132, 133
a. Prophecy - I 33~ I 39
b. The Law 139, 140
c. The Course of its History 140-145
III. The independence of the two preparations; the paradox of
their fulfilment in one Christ 145-148
The Incarnation and Development.
I. The theory of evolution has recalled our minds to the * cosmical
significance ' of the Incarnation, which was a prominent
thought in (1) the early, (2) mediaeval church .... 151-156
II. Theology and Science move in different but parallel planes :
one gives the meaning, the other the method, of creation . 156, 157
Thus the doctrine of ' the Eternal Word ' is compatible with
all the verified results of scientific teaching on
(1) energy 157
(2) teleology 157-160
(3) origin and antiquity of man 161, 162
(4) mental and moral evolution 162-166
(5) the relation of philosophy to Theology 166-168
(6) the comparative study of religions 168-170
while in the Christian view, it both illuminates and is illumi-
nated by those results 170-172
III. But when the planes intersect, and we say 'the Word was
made flesh,' we are said to traverse experience .... 172
(1) This charge is only a critical presumption . . . . 172,173
(2) All novelties traverse past experience 173
(3) Moral experience is as real as physical 173, 174
(4) The Incarnation harmonizes with our moral experi-
ence 174. T 75
(5) By reorganizing morality it reorientates character . 175
(6) It has therefore a true relation to all phases of
human life 175-178
VI.
The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma.
I. The principle of Dogma is not to be attacked or defended on
ci priori grounds. The real question is whether the Incarna-
tion, as asserted, is true or false. And this is a question for
evidence - 181-183
Synopsis of Contents. xvil
PAGE
Even scientific 'dogmata' differ less from religious dogmas
than is sometimes supposed, in that (a) both are received on
evidence, (b) both require an experimental verification, or
(in so far as either are still held along with error) correction 183-187
The acceptance of dogmatic truth is essentially reasonable.
Its claims to (a) authority, (b) finality, are not the ground
for accepting it, but a necessary outcome of the facts
accepted in it 187-191
II. The evidence for the Incarnation is as many-sided as human
life 191-194
But primarily historical. The crucial fact is the Resurrection 194-197
Everything is involved in the answer to ' What think ye of
Christ?' '. . 197,198
It is an error to think of the belief of the Church as an edifice
built up in the age of the Councils 198, 199
The decisions of the Councils represent only a growth in intel-
lectual precision through experience of error 199-204
The creed in its whole substance is the direct outcome of the
fact of the Incarnation 204-207
III. The dogmatic creed is to be distinguished from the body of
theological literature which comments upon it 207
Theological comment is variable : it may err, it may develop.
Herein lie most of the disputes of technical, and the advances
of popular, theology 208-212
Even the creeds are human on the side of their language . . 212-214
IV. The ' damnatory clauses/ though easily misunderstood, really
mean what is both true and necessary 214-216
l Christian dogmatism is, after all, devotion to truth for truth's s
sake 216, 217
V. The modern reading of the Scriptures without miracle and the
Christ without Godhead depends for its justification upon the
truth of an hypothesis 217-221
But this hypothesis explains away, instead of explaining, the
evidence; while it is itself incapable of proof 221-224
Historical reality is essential to the truth of the Incarnation.
Mere spiritualism ends in unreality . . „ 224-226
VII.
The Atonement.
I. Sin and sacrifice in relation to the Atonement 229, 2^0
io Twofold character of sin : — '
(a) A state of alienation from God 2 ?o
(b) A state of. guilt ..............". 231, 232
2. Twofold character of sacrifice : —
(a) The expression of man's original relation to God . . 232, 233
(b) The expiation of sin, and propitiation of wrath . . 233, 234
Both aspects shown in the ceremonies of the Mosaic
Law ••.•"'"............,
3. Inadequacy of man's offerings to satisfy sense of personal
guilt . . .
b
234, 235
235-237
xviii Synopsis of Contents.
PAGE
II. The death of Christ answers to the demands of the sense of
sin and of the desire for forgiveness 237
1. Christ's death a sacrifice of propitiation: —
(a) Of the wrath of God, which is —
(1) the hostility of Divine Nature to sin 238,239
(2) the expression of the eternal law of righteousness 239, 240
(b) By virtue —
(1) Of the obedience manifested by Him .... 240,241
(2) Of His recognition of the Divine justice . . . 241
(3) Of His death as the necessary form of both . . 241, 242
The propitiatory character of His death shown, —
(i.) By the general relation between physical and
spiritual death 242
(ii.) Because of the nature of Him who endured
it 243,244
(iii.) Because of the results flowing from it . . 244-245
(c) On behalf of men, for He is our Representative —
(1) As Victim, by His perfect humanity our sin-
bearer 245-247
(2) As Priest, able to offer what man could not . . 247, 248
The true vicariousness of His Priesthood . . . 248
2. Christ's death the source of life 248, 249
(a) As delivering us from sin 248
(b) As bestowing new life 249
\c) As uniting us to God ^ 249
But only as connected with and issuing in the Resur-
rection and Ascension 249, 250
3. Christ's death in relation to man's responsibility .... 250
^ {a) The Atonement, being forgiveness, must remit some
of the consequences of sin . . 250, 251
{b) But our mystical union with Christ ensures our share
in the sacrifice . . . . 251,252
(1) Not in its propitiation, which we can only plead . 252, 253
(2) But by faith which accepts it and recognizes its
justice • 253,254
(3) And by following Him in obedience through
suffering ■ 254,255
III. Consideration of certain erroneous statements of the doctrine 255
1. The implied divergence of Will in the Godhead .... 255,256
2. The view of Redemption as wrought for us, not in us . . 256, 257
3. The view that Christ redeemed us by taking our punishment
instead of us 257
(1) The essential punishment of alienation He could not
bear • • 2 57
(2) The penal sufferings which He bore are not remitted to
us . 257
(3) But He bore them that we, like Him, may bear them
sacrifi daily, not as punishment 258
IV. Short summary.
1. The death of Christ as propitiatory J tested by expe-
2. His death as transforming pain and death ) rience . 258, 259
Synopsis of Contents. xix
VIII.
The Holy Spirit and Inspiration.
PAGE
Christianity is an experienced or manifested life : because its
essence is the possession of the Spirit, and the Spirit is
Life 263-265
I. The Holy Spirit the life-giver, —
In nature 265-266
In man „ 266
In the gradual recovery of man from sin 267
In Christ . . 267, 268
In the Church 268, 269
His work in the Church, —
1. Social or ecclesiastical 269
2. Nourishing individuality : both of character through the
Sacraments, and of judgment through authority . . . 269-273
3. Consecrating the whole of nature, material as well as
spiritual 273, 274
4. By a gradual method 274
Imperfection of the Old Testament 274-276
" of the Church » . 276, 277
The Holy Spirit personally present and continually operative
in the Church 277, 278
II. The Theology of the Holy Spirit. Real but limited knowledge
through revelation 278, 279
He is (a) distinct in Person but very God, (b) proceeding from
the Father and the Son, (c ) One in essence with the Father
and the Son 279, 280
The doctrine of the Trinity not Tritheistic 280, 2S1
III. The Inspiration of Holy Scripture. Fatal results of not keep-
ing this in context with the rest of the Holy Spirit's work
in the Church 281-284
1. It is an article of the Faith, not among its bases .... 264, 2S5
2. It is a necessary article . 285
3. Its certain and primary meaning, as seen by examination of
the books of the Old and New Testaments 285, 291
4. Its practical meaning and obligation 291-293
5. Questions raised as to its meaning by Old Testament
criticism : —
(a) While the Old Testament is, like the New Testament,
certainly and really historical, can it admit of elements
of idealism in the narrative ? .... „ ... . 293-296
(b) Can it admit of dramatic composition? 296,297
(c) Can it admit the presence of primitive myths ? . . 297, 298
6. The Church not prevented from admitting these to be open
questions either, —
(1) By any dogmatic definitions of inspiration .... 298, 299
(2) By our Lord's language as to the Old Testament . 299-301
We may expect the criticism of the Old Testament, like that
of the New, to deepen and enlarge, not impair, our reverence
for the ' Word of God ' e 301,302
xx Synopsis of Contents.
IX.
The Church.
PAGE
The Church the final satisfaction of certain social instincts ; namely,
the need of co-operation for life, for knowledge, and for
worship 305
These instincts are, —
(1) Universal 305-307
(2) Embodied in Judaism, and combined with the prin-
ciple of God's election of one people to be a source
of blessing to others 307-310
(3) Fulfilled in the Incarnation ' 310
I. The Church as the centre of spiritual life : offers its blessings,
without limitation, to all who are willing to submit to
spiritual discipline, and combines them in a brotherhood of
common service 311-313
Hence it is, of necessity, —
(1) A visible body 313—315
(2) Otie, both in its spiritual life and in external organiza-
tion. This unity implied in the New Testament,
and explained in the second century, as centring
in the Episcopate. The Apostolical Succession is
thus the pledge of historic continuity, and has
always been the mark of the English Church.
Loyalty to the Church is no narrowing of true
sympathy 315-321
II. The Church as the Teacher of Truth : primarily by bearing
witness to truths revealed to it ; secondarily by interpreting
the relation of these truths to each other 321-323
Hence, —
(1) It witnesses to the reality of central spiritual truths
and teaches them authoritatively to its members . 3' 3, 324
(2) It trains its members to a rational apprehension of
these truths 324
(3) It leaves great freedom on points not central . . . 324
(4) It protects the truths themselves from decay . . . 325,326
III. The Church the home of worship: worship the Godward ex-
pression of its life ; its highest expression in the Eucharist ;
its priestly work carried out from the first by a special class
of ministers 326-329
Each aspect of the Church's work completed by the co-
operation of the Blessed Dead 329
Causes of the apparent failure of the Church 3 2 9-335
Need of its witness and work in modern times ...... 335, 336
Synopsis of Contents. xxi
X.
Sacraments.
PAGE
Comprehensiveness a characteristic distinction of fruitful and
enduring work : which will here be traced in the sacra-
mental work of the Church ; with incidental reference to
the evidential import of the inner coherence of Christianity,
and its perfect aptness for humanity 339~34 2
I. Christianity claims to be a way of life for men : whose nature
and life involve two elements; which are usually distin-
guished as bodily and spiritual . 342, 343
The distinction of these two elements real ; their union
essential . . . . 343,344
It is to be inquired whether this complexity of man's nature is
recognized and provided for in the Church of Christ . . . 344
II. Grounds for anticipating that it would be so, —
(1) In the very fact of the Incarnation; and more par-
ticularly 344-346
(2) In the character of the preparatory system whose
forecasts it met 346, 347
(3) And in certain conspicuous features of Christ's
ministry 347
The work of Sacraments to be linked with this anticipation . 347
III. The prominence of the Sacramental principle in Christ's
teaching: to be estimated with reference to the previous
convictions of those whom He taught 347, 348
There is thus found : —
(1) Abundant evidence that the general principle of
Sacraments is accepted, to be a characteristic of
Christianity 348, 349
(2) The authoritative appointment of particular expres-
sions for this general principle : —
Expressions foreshown in preparatory history ;
anticipated in preliminary discourses ; ap-
pointed with great solemnity and emphasis . . 349-351
[These expressions such as may be seen to be intrinsi-
cally appropriate, ethically helpful and instructive,
and safeguards against individualism] 344-351
(3) An immediate recognition in the Apostolic Church
of the force of this teaching, and of the necessary
prominence of Sacraments 351, 352
IV. The correspondence between the ministry of Sacraments and
the complex nature of man appears in three ways : since, —
(1) The dignity and the spiritual capacity of the material
order is thus vindicated and maintained : so that
unreal and negative spirituality is precluded, and
provision is made for the hallowing of stage after
stage in a human life 352-356
(2) The claim of Christianity to penetrate the bodily life
is kept in its due prominence by the very nature of
Sacraments ; the redemption of the body is fore-
shown ; and perhaps begun „ . 356-359
xxh Synopsis of Contents.
PAGE
Sacraments [continued).
(3) The evidences of mystery in human nature, its mo-
ments of unearthliness, its immortal longings, its
impatience of finite satisfaction, being recognized
and accounted for by the doctrine of Grace, are met
by Sacraments ; and led in an ordered progress
towards a perfect end 359-362
XI.
Christianity and Politics.
Introductory. The twofold problem of Christianity in its rela-
tion to human society, —
(1) To consecrate ; (2) to purify ......... 365-367
I. The Church is neutral as to natural differences, e. g., the form
of government, autocratic or democratic leaning .... 367-369
II. The Church supplements the moral influence of the State, in
respect of, —
(1) The appeal to higher motives 370-372
e.g., as to the duties of, —
(a) Governors and governed 372-376
(o) Owners of property ......„,. 376, 377
(2) The support of the weak against the strong .... 377-380
(3) The maintenance of religion 380-385
III. The Church purifies the whole social life of mankind, —
(1) By spreading Christian ideas 385,386
(2) By maintaining the Christian type of character . . 386, 387
Conclusion. The Church appeals to deeper needs than the
State, and is therefore fundamentally Catholic, and only
incidentally national . = 387, 388
XII.
Christian Ethics.
General characteristics of the Christian ethical system . . . „ 391, 392
Dogmatic postulates : —
(1) Doctrine of God: God a Personal and Ethical Being 392-394
(2) Doctrine of Man: his ideal nature; his destiny as
related to the good through conscience and free-
dom ; his present condition 394~398
(3) Doctrine of Christ: Catholic view of His Person . . 398, 399
I. Christ's revelation of the Highest Good 399-402
The Kingdom of God : twofold meaning of the term . . 399-401
Christian view of the world 401,402
II. The Moral Law : its authority, sanctions, and content . . . 402, 409
The basis of obligation found in the idea of personal
relationship between God and Man . 402, 403
The sanctions and motives of Christian Morality . . . 404, 405
The Law of Duty embraced in the Decalogue 405-409
Synopsis of Contents. xxiii
PAGE
III. Christ the pattern of character « . 410-423
Conditions required in the perfect example 410,411
Christ the pattern of filial dependence, obedience, and
love 412-414
Virtuous action seen to imply a harmony of the different
elements in personality, postulating a threefold virtuous
principle supernaturally imparted 414-416
Christian character: the Christian personality in its rela-
tion, —
(1) To God — Christian Wisdom 416-418
(2) To Man — Christian Justice 418-420
(3) To Self — Christian Temperance 420
(4) To the hindrances of environment — Christian Forti-
tude 421-423
IV. Christ the source of the re-creation of character 423-430
Claim of Christianity to re-create character 423
Dogmatic truths implied in the re-creative process . . . 423, 424
Holiness dependent on a permanent relation to Christ . 424
The Church a school of character, and sphere of indi-
vidual discipline 424-427
Christian ascetics, —their ground in reason, and effect on
character 427-430
V. The consummation of God's kingdom . . . . . . . . 430-434
The intermediate stage 430
The final stage of glory :
(i) The kingdom to be finally manifested . . . . 431
(ii) and purified through judgment 431
Extent and limits of the final triumph of good .... 431-433
Perfection of human personality : the perfect state one of
harmony . . 433
g ] ory 433
blessedness .... = . 434
and fellowship in a moral community 434
VI. Conclusion : relation of Christian Ethics to the products of
civilization, to individual character, to social life. . . . 435,436
Appendix on some Aspects of Christian Duty 437-441
I.
FAITH.
"V
HENRY SCOTT HOLLAND.
I.
FAITH.
I. In proposing to consider the origin and growth of faith, we
have a practical, and not a merely theoretical, aim. We are think-
ing of the actual problems which are, at this moment, encompass-
ing and hindering faith ; and it is because of their urgency and
their pressure that we find it worth while to go back upon our
earliest beginnings, in order to ask what Faith itself means. For
only through an examination of its nature, its origin, and its struc-
ture, will it be possible for us to sift the questions which beset us,
and to distinguish those to which Faith is bound to give an answer
from those which it can afford to let alone.
We set out then on our quest, in the mind of those who have
felt the trouble that is in the air. Even if we ourselves be not of
their number, yet we all suffer from their hesitation ; we all feel
the imparted chill of their anxieties. For we are of one family,
and the sickness or depression of some, must affect the whole
body. All of us, even the most confident, are interested in the
case of those who are fearing for themselves, as they sadly search
their own hearts and ask, ' What is it to believe ? Do I know
what it is to believe ? Have I, or have I not, that which can be
called " faith " ? How can I be sure? What can I say of myself? ?
Such questions as these are haunting and harassing many among
us who find themselves facing the Catholic Creed, with its ring of
undaunted assurance, with its unhesitating claim to unique and
universal supremacy, and contrast with this their own faint and
tentative apprehension of the strong truths which are so confi-
dently asserted. Such men and women are anxious and eager to
number themselves among those that believe ; but can they call
this temper ' belief,' which is so far below the level of the genuine
response which those Creeds obviously expect? Where is the
blitheness of faith? Where is its unshaken conviction? Where
is its invincible simplicity ? Why is it that they only succeed in
moving forward with such painful indecision ?
Now, it is to this temper that this essay is addressed. It does
not aim at convicting a hostile disbelief, but at succoring a dis-
4 The Religion of the Incarnation.
tressed faith. And this it does under the conviction that, in so
doing, it is responding to the peculiar character and needs of the
situation.
For the urgency, the peril of the hour, lies, not so much in the
novelty, or force, of the pressure that is brought to bear against
faith, as in the behavior of faith itself under the pressure. What
has happened is, not that faith -has been confounded, but that it
has been challenged. It has been challenged by new social needs,
by strange developments of civilization, by hungers that it had not
yet taken into account, by thirsts that it had not prepared itself
to satisfy. It has been challenged by new scientific methods,
wholly unlike its familiar intellectual equipment; by new worlds
of facts opened to its astonishment through discoveries which
have changed the entire look of the earth ; by immense masses
of novel material, which it has been suddenly and violently re-
quired to assimilate ; by strange fashions of speech in science and
history ; by a babel of ' unknown tongues ' in all departments of
learning and literature.
Faith is under the pressure of this challenge ; and the primary
question is, How will it behave ? What is it going to say, or do,
in face of this exciting transformation which has passed over the
entire surface of our intellectual scenery? How will it deal with
the situation? Will it prove itself adequate to the crisis? To
what extent can it afford to submit to the transforming process
which has already operated upon the mind and the imagination?
If it submit, can it survive? And in what condition? with what
loss, or damage, or change ? On every side these challenges reach
it ; they beat at its doors ; they arrive in pelting haste ; they
clamor for immediate solutions.
Now faith, under these rapid and stormy challenges, is apt to fall
into panic. For this, surely, is the very meaning of a panic, — a
fear that feeds upon itself. Men in a panic are frightened at find-
ing themselves afraid. So now with faith ; it is terrified at its
own alarm. How is it (it asks itself) that it should find itself
baffled and timorous? If faith were faith, would it ever lose its
confidence? To be frightened is to confess itself false : for faith is
confidence in God, Who can never fail. How can faith allow of
doubt or hesitation ? Surely for faith to hesitate, to be confused,
is to deny its very nature. Thus many anxious and perplexed
souls retreat before their own perplexities. Because their faith is
troubled, they distrust and abandon their faith. The very fact that
it is in distress becomes an argument against it.
It is at this point, and because of this particular peril, that we
I. Faith. 5
are urgently required to consider very seriously the nature and
conditions of faith. For our panic arises from our assumption that
faith is of such a nature that the perplexity into which, now and
again, we find ourselves thrown, must be impossible to it, must be
incompatible with it. Now is this so? Ought we to expect of
faith that its confidence should never fail it, — that its light should
be always decisive ? Is faith incriminated by the mere fact that
it is in difficulties ?
Let us first consider what has occurred. Perhaps the situation
itself, if we quietly review it, will give a reason why it is that just at
the moment when we most need vigor and assurance, we should
find ourselves stripped of all that tends to reassure.
For the peculiarity of the disturbance which we have got to
encounter, lies in this, that it has removed from us the very weapons
by which we might hope to encounter it. Faith's evidential mate-
rial is all corroborative and accumulative ; it draws it from out of
an external world, which can never wholly justify or account for
the internal reality, yet which can so group itself that from a hun-
dred differing lines it offers indirect and parenthetic and conver-
gent witness of that which is itself beyond the reach of external
proof. It is this gradual grouping of an outer life into that assorted
perspective in which it offers the most effective corroboration of
the inner truth, which faith slowly accomplishes upon the matter
which human science presents to it. When once the grouping is
achieved, so that the outer world, known under certain scientific
principles, tallies harmoniously with its inner convictions, faith
feels secure. The external life offers it pictures, analogies, meta-
phors — all echoing and repeating the internal world. Faith
beholds itself mirrored; and, so echoed, so mirrored, it feels
itself in possession of corroborating evidences. But the present
scientific confusion seems to have shattered the mirror ; to have
broken up the perspective; to have dissolved the well-known
groupings. It is true, as some of the essays which follow will
try to show, that the convulsion of which we speak lies, chiefly,
in a change of position or of level ; so that great masses of the
matter, now thrown into confusion, will be found to compose
themselves afresh, under the newer conditions of review, and will
appear again as part and parcel of the scientific scenerv. It is
a change of perspective more than anything else. But, no doubt,
such a change is just of the character to upset us, to disturb us;
for, during the change, while shifting from the old position to the
new, we are in the very chaos of confusion ; everything seems,
for the moment, to be tumbling about around us ; the entire scene
6 The Religion of the Incarnation.
grows unsteady : though, indeed, when once we have got our feet
firmly placed at the new level of vantage, much, that once was
familiar, is discovered to be back again in its place, looking much
the same as of old. It is the first shock of this enforced transi-
tion which is so calculated to terrify ; as when, for instance, men see
their habitual reliance on the evidence for design in nature, which
had been inherited from Paley, yield, and vanish, under the review
of the facts with which the theory of evolution acquaints them.
What they feel is, that their familiar mode of interpreting their
faith, of justifying it, of picturing it, has abruptly been torn from
them. That which once seemed to evidence it in the outer world,
has ceased to be accepted or trusted. The habitual ways of
argument, the accepted assumptions, which they had hitherto
used as their supports and their instruments, have been with-
drawn, have become obsolete. Faith is thrown back on itself,
on its own inherent, naked vitality ; it is robbed for the moment
of that sense of solidity and security, which fortifies and refreshes
it, when the outer world of natural facts, and the inner world of
intellect and fancy, all corroborate its confidence in itself, by
harmonious attestations of its validity. The old v/orld of things
had been brought into this adaptation with the principles of belief.
Faith was at home in it, and looked out over it with cheerfulness,
and moved about it with freedom. But that old world is gone ;
and the new still lies untested, unsorted, unverified, unassimilated,
unhandled. It looks foreign, odd, remote. Faith finds no
obvious corroborations in it : there, where it used to feel but-
tressed and warm, it now feels chilly and exposed. 1
This is the first consequence, and it is serious enough in itself
to provoke alarm. Faith cannot be at ease or confident, until
the outer world responds to its own convictions ; and yet ease and
confidence are exactly what it is challenged to exhibit.
And then, when a man, under this sense of fear, deprived of
external testimonies, attempts to exhibit, to evoke, to examine, his
inner conviction, in its inherent and vital character, as it is in itself,
unsupported by adventitious aids, he is astonished at his own diffi-
culty in discovering or disclosing it. Where is it all fled, that
which he had called his faith? He had enjoyed it, had relied on
it, had again and again asserted it in word and deed ; and now,
when he wants to look at it, when he is summoned to produce it,
when he is challenged to declare its form and fashion, he finds
himself dazed, bewildered, searching helplessly for that which ever
1 Cf. on all this, an excellent statement in Mark Pattison's Sermons,
Sermon 7.
I. Faith. j
escapes him, grasping at a fleeting shadow which baffles his efforts
to endow it with fixity and substance. And, so finding, he grows
yet more desperately alarmed ; it seems to him that he has been
self-deceived, betrayed, abandoned. He is bitterly sensitive to the
sharp contrast between the triumphant solidity with which scienti-
fic facts bear down upon him, certified, undeniable, substantial, and
the vague, shifty, indistinct phantom, into which his conviction
vanishes as soon as he attempts to observe it in itself, or draw it
out for public inspection.
Yet, if we consider what faith signifies, we shall see at once that
this contrast ought to carry with it no alarm. It is a contrast
which follows on the very nature of faith. If we had understood
its nature, we could never have expected it to disclose itself under
the same conditions as those which govern the observation of sci-
entific facts. Faith is an elemental energy of the soul, and the
surprise that we are undergoing at not being able to bring it under
direct observation, is only an echo of the familiar shock with which
we learn that science has ransacked the entire bodily fabric of man,
and has nowhere come across his soul ; or has searched the heav-
ens through and through with its telescope, and has seen no God.
We are upset for a moment when first we hear this ; and then, we
recover ourselves as we recollect that, if God be what we believe
Him to be, immaterial and spiritual, then He would cease to be
Himself if He were visible through a telescope; and that if the
spirit of man be what we believe it to be, that is the very reason
why no surgeon's knife can ever arrive at it.
And as with the soul, so with all its inherent and essential acts.
They are what it is : they can no more be visible than it can.
How can any of the basal intuitions, on which our knowledge rests,
present themselves to our inspection in the guise of external and
phenomenal facts? That which observes can never, strictly speak-
ing, observe itself. It can never look on at itself from outside, or
view itself as one among the multitude of things that come under
its review. How can it ? It is itself the organ of vision : and the
eye cannot see its own power of seeing. This is why natural sci-
ence, which is an organized system of observation, finds that its
own observing mind is absolutely and totally outside its ken. It
can take stock of the physiological condition of thoughts or of feel-
ings ; but they themselves, in their actual reality, are all rigidly
shut out from the entire area of scientific research. Wherever they
begin, it ends ; its methods abruptly fail. It possesses no instru-
ment by which to make good its advance farther. For the only
instrument which it knows how to use, and by which alone it can
8 The Religion of the Incarnation.
search and examine, is itself the object which it desires to submit
to examination. But if it is to be examined,, who, and what, is to
conduct the examination? The observing mind that turns round
to explore itself, carries itself round as it turns. It can never
say : ' Let me look at myself, as if I were a phenomenon, as a fact
presented to my own consciousness,' for it itself would be engaged
in the act of looking; it itself is the consciousness to which it pro-
poses to present itself. * So again, the thought itself can never
hope, by rigid analyzing, to arrive at last at itself, as the final resi-
due of the analysis, for it is itself, all along, employed as analyst.
The process of analysis is, itself, the real disclosure of what thought
is ; and this disclosure is made just as effectively even though the
result of the analysis be to declare that it can discover nothing that
corresponds to thought. It is, indeed, impossible that anything
should so correspond, except the power to analyze ; but this power
is thought ; and every act of the analysis, which issues in the scep-
tical conclusion, has verified the real existence of thought. It is
the same with all profound spiritual acts. None of them can ever
be offered to public inspection ; they can never be handed across
to another, for him to look at. For they are living acts, and not
external results. How can an act of will, or of love, be submitted
to observation? Its outward result is there to be examined; but
it, itself, is incapable of transportation. If any one were to ask,
'What is it you mean by thinking, or loving, or willing?' who
could tell him? It would be obviously impossible to explain, ex-
cept to a being who could think, will, and love. You could give
him illustrations of what you mean — signs — instances — evi-
dences ; but they can only be intelligible, as evidences, to one who
already possesses the faculties. No one can do a piece of think-
ing for another, and hand it over to him in a parcel. Only by
thinking, can it be known what thought is ; only by feeling can it
be understood what is meant by a feeling ; only by seeing, willing,
loving, can we have the least conception of sight, or of will, or
of love.
And faith stands with these primary intuitions. It is deeper
and more elemental than them all : and, therefore, still less than
they can it admit of translation into other conditions than its
own, — can still less submit itself to public observation. It can
never be looked at from without. It can be known only from
within itself. Belief is only intelligible by believing. Just as a
man who is asked to say what love is, apart from all its outward
1 It is not intended to deny that the mind can ever know itself, but only
that such knowledge can ever be won by methods of empirical observation.
I. Faith. 9
manifestations and results, must be driven back on the iteration —
' Love is — what love is ; every one who loves, knows ; no one who
does not love, can ever know ; ' just as a man, who is challenged
to describe and define his feelings or his desires, when stripped of
all the outward evidences that they can possibly give of themselves,
is thrown into inarticulate bewilderment, and can give no intelli-
gible answer, and can fashion to himself no distinct feature or
character, and can only assert, confusedly, that he feels what he
feels, and that to desire is to desire ; — so with faith. The scien-
tific convulsion has shaken and confused its normal modes of self-
interpretation, its usual evidences, signs, illustrations : these outer
aids at definition, by metaphor or by corroboration, are all brought
under dim eclipse for the moment : their relative values have been
thrown into uncertainty : they are undergoing temporary displace-
ment, and no one is quite sure which is being shifted, and which
can be trusted to stand firm. Faith, robbed of its habitual aids to
expression, is summoned to show itself on the field, in its own
inner character. And this is just what it never can or may do. It
can only reiterate, in response to the demand for definition, ' Faith
is faith.' ' Believing is — just believing.' Why, then, let ourselves
be distressed, or bewildered, by finding ourselves reduced to this
impotence of explanation? Far from it being an incrimination of
our faith, to find ourselves caught in such a difficulty of utter-
ance, it is just what must happen if faith be a profound and radical
act of the inner soul. It is, essentially, an active principle, a source
of energy, a spring of movement : and, as such, its verification
can never take place through passive introspection. It verifies
itself only in actions : its reality can only be made evident through
experience of its living work.
H. We may, then, free ourselves from the sinister suspicions
which belong to panic. It is not the superficiality of our faith,
which is the secret of our bewilderment, but its depth. The
deepest and most radical elements of our being are, necessarily,
the hardest to unearth. They are, obviously, the most remote
from the surface of our lives : they are the rarest to show them-
selves in the open daylight : they require the severest effort to dis-
entangle their identity : they lie below all ordinary methods of
utterance and expression ; they can only be discovered through
careful recognition of the secret assumptions which are involved in
the acts and words which they habitually produce. By these acts
and words their existence and their force is suggested, but not
exhausted — manifested, but not accounted for. These form our
only positive interpretation and evidence : and such evidence
io The Religion of the Incarnation.
must, therefore, always remain inadequate, imperfect; we have
always and inevitably to go behind it, and beyond it, in order to
reach and touch the motive-energy which is disclosed to us through
it. No wonder that we find this far from an easy matter. No
wonder that, under the pressure of a hostile challenge, we often
lose ourselves in a confused babble, as we struggle to make plain
to others, or even to ourselves, these innermost convictions of
our souls.
Indeed, such things can never be made plain : no one ought to
expect that they should. For, if we think of it, the primary acts
of, spirit must be the last things that can ever be made plain ; for
the entire life issuing from them is their only interpretation, so that
only when that life is closed, can their interpretation be complete.
And here, in faith, we are at the root of a life which, as we believe,
it will take eternity to fulfil. And, if so, only in and through
eternity can its full evidence for itself be produced, or its right
interpretation be yielded.
Surely, this truth clears us from many clamorous demands, which
ask of us an impossible verification. For if once we saw that we
were employed in verifying the nature of that which, if it be real,
can, confessedly, present us, on this side of the grave, only with
the most fragmentary evidence of its character, we should put
lightly aside the taunting challenge to produce such proof of our
motive principle as will stand comparison with the adequate and
precise evidences of a scientific fact, or which will submit to the
rigid tests of a legal examination. If faith be faith, it could not,
for that very reason, fulfil the conditions so proposed to it. These
legal and scientific conditions are laboriously and artificially limited
to testing the presence of a motive, or a force, which must be
assumed to exist under fixed, precise, complete conditions, here
and now. They presuppose that, for all practical purposes, its
quantity cannot vary, or fluctuate. It it be present at all, it is
present in a distinct and formal manner, open to definite measure-
ment, expressing itself in unalterable characteristics. The entire
consideration of its activity is strictly confined to the normal
horizon of the actual world of present existence. These assump-
tions are the first necessity of all forms of science, without making
which, it could not even begin. They are the conditions of all its
success. But they are also its limitations : and as such, they most
certainly exclude from their survey, anything that professes to exist
after the manner of faith. For what is faith? It is no steady
force, existing under certified and unvarying conditions which
receive their final determination in the world about us. Faith is,
I. Faith, ii
while it is here on earth, only a tentative probation : it is a
struggling and fluctuating effort in man to win for himself a valid
hold upon things that exist under the conditions of eternity. In
faith, we watch the early and rude beginnings, amid an environ-
ment that but faintly and doubtfully responds to it, of a power still
in the womb — still unborn into its true sphere — still enveloped
in dark wrappings which encumber and impede. We see here
but its blind, uncertain pushings, its hesitating moves, now forward,
now back, now strangely vigorous and assertive, and then again, as
strangely weak and retreating. Its significance, its interpretation,
its future possibilities, its secret of development, — all these lie
elsewhere, beyond death, beyond vision : we can but dimly guess
from its action here, what powers feed it, on what resources it can
rely, what capacity of growth is open to it, what final issue deter-
mines the measure and value of its efforts and achievements here.
Such a force as this is bound to upset all our ablest calculations.
We can never lay down rules to govern and predict its capabilities.
It will disappoint every conceivable test that we can devise for
fixing its conditions. It will laugh at our attempts to circumscribe
its action. Where we look for it to be weak, it will suddenly show
itself strong ; when we are convinced that we may expect a vig-
orous display of its capacities, it will mysteriously lapse. All this
may terribly disconcert us. It may tempt us into angry declara-
tions that such an incalculable existence is unworthy of scientific
attention — is fanciful, is unreal. But the only lesson which we
ought to learn is that methods adapted for one state of things are
bound to prove themselves futile when applied to another. If we
are employed in observing a life which has its ground and its end
in a world beyond the present, then all methods framed for the
express and definite purpose of examining life as it exists here and
now, will necessarily prove themselves ludicrously inapt. The
futility, the barrenness, the ineptitude of our researches, lies, not
with the faith against which we level our irritable complaints, but
with the methods which, by their very terms of definition, proclaim
themselves to be misplaced.
Where, then, must we dig to unearth the roots of faith? What
are the conditions of its rise and exercise? Wherein lie its
grounds, and the justification of its claim ?
Faith grounds itself, solely and wholly, on an inner and vital
relation of the soul to its source. This source is most certainly
elsewhere ; it is not within the compass of the soul's own activity.
In some mode, inconceivable and mysterious, our life issues out of
an impenetrable background : and as our life includes spiritual
12 The Religion of the Incarnation.
elements, that background has spiritual factors ; and as our life is
personal, within that background exists personality. This supply of
life in which we begin, from out of which our being opens, can
never cease, so long as we exist, to sustain us by one continuous
act. Ever its resources flow in ; ever its vital support is unwith-
drawn. In some fashion or other, we all know that this must
be so ; and the Christian Creed only lifts into clear daylight, and
endows with perfect expression, this elementary and universal verity,
when it asserts that at the very core of each man's being lies, anc
lives, and moves, and works, the creative energy of the Divine Will,
— ' The Will of our Father Which is in heaven.'
We stand, by the necessities of our existence, in the relationship
of sons to a Father, Who has poured out into us, and still pours,
the vigor of His own life. This is the one basis of all faith.
Unless this relationship actually exists, there could be no faith : if
it exists, then faith is its essential corollary : it is bound to appear.
Our faith is simply the witness to this inner bond of being. That
bond, which is the secret of our entire existence, accounting for all
that we are, or do, or feel, or think, or say, must become capable
of recognition by a being that is, in any sense, free, intelligent,
conscious ; and this recognition by us of the source from whence
we derive, is what we mean by faith. Faith is the sense in us that
we are Another's creature, Another's making. Even as we not
only feel, but feel that we feel ; not only think, but know that
we think ; not only choose, but determine to choose : so, below
and within all our willing, and thinking, and feeling, we are con-
scious of Another, whose mind and will alone make possible both
the feeling that we feel, and also the capacity to feel it ; both
the thought that we think, and also the capacity to know it ; both
the will that we put forth, as well as the power to determine
it. Every act, e/ery desire, every motive of ours, is dependent on
the source out of sight : we hang on Another's will ; we are alive
in Another's life. All our life is a discovery, a disclosure, of this
secret. We find it out only by living. As we put out powers that
seem to be our own, still even in and by the very act of putting
them out, we reveal them to be not our own ; we discover that we
are always drawing on unseen resources. We are sons : that is
the root-law of our entire self. And faith is the active instinct of
that inner sonship ; it is the point at which that essential sonship
emerges into consciousness ; it is the disclosure to the self of its
own vital secret ; it is the thrill of our inherent childhood, as it
makes itself felt within the central recesses of life ; it is the flame
that shoots into consciousness at the recognition of the touch of
I. Faith. 13
our divine fatherhood ; it is the immediate response of the sonship
in us to its discovered origin.
Faidr, then, is an instinct of relationship based on an inner
actual fact. And its entire office and use lies in realizing the
secret fact. For the bond is spiritual ; and it can only realize
itself in a spirit that has become aware of its own laws. No
blind animal acceptance of the divine assistance can draw out the
powers of this sonship. The reception of the assistance must
itself be conscious, loving, intelligent, willing. The natural world
can receive its full capacities from God without recognition of the
source whence they flow in : but this absence of living recognition
forbids it ever to surpass those fixed limits of development which
we name ' natural.' But a creature of God that could not only
receive, but recognize that it received, would, by that very recogni-
tion, lay itself open to an entirely novel development ; it would be
susceptible Of infinitely higher influences shed down upon it from
God ; it would admit far finer and richer inpourings of divine suc-
cors ; it would be fed, not only from underground channels as it
were, but by fresh inlets which its consciousness of its adherence
in God would uncover and set in motion. The action of God
upon His creatures would be raised to a new level of possibility :
for a living and intelligent will has capacities of receptivity which
were altogether excluded so long as God merely gave, and the
creature blindly and dumbly took. Faith, then, opens an entirely
new career for creaturely existence ; and the novelty of this career
is expressed in the word ' supernatural.' The ' supernatural ' world
opens upon us as soon as faith is in being. 1
And this career, it will be seen, is markedly distinct from the
natural in this, — that it is capable of ever-advancing expansion. All
natural things which blindly accept their life from God, must,
perforce, have a decreed and certified development, limited by
the conditions in which they are found existing. Their recep-
tivity is a fixed quantity, determined by the character imposed upon
them at creation, and bound to come to an abrupt arrest at some
precise point. 2 But receptivity through conscious recognition is
1 The word 'supernatural ' 5s obviously misleading, since it seems to imply
that the higher spiritual levels of life are not ' natural.' Of course, the higher
the life, the more intensely 'natural ' it is ; and the nature of God must be the
supreme expression of the natural. But the word 'supernatural' is, in real-
ity, only concerned with the partial and conventional use of ' nature,' as a
term under which we sum up all that constitutes this present and visible
system of things.
2 It is this point of arrest which is reached and revealed by the process of
Evolution under the pressure of Natural Selection.
14 The Religio?i of the Incarnation.
open to a development of which it is impossible for us to fix the
limits. For this living recognition itself advances in its capacity to
see and understand. Every act by which it recognizes the Giver in
the gifts, heightens and intensifies its power to recognize Him ; and
every increase of its power to recognize Him increases also its
capacity to receive ; and this increase will again react on the facul-
ties of recognition. A vision opens out of spiritual growth, in
which every step forward made through incoming grace, makes a
new step possible, finds a fresh grace ever waiting to crown its
latest gift with ever new endowment. The sonship that is at work
underground in man, below the level of consciousness, at the hid-
den base of faith, is one that holds in it capacities which can only
be evoked under the appeals of a living and voluntary faith. Faith
is the discovery of an inherent sonship, which, though already
sealed to it, already in action, nevertheless cannot but withhold
its more rich and splendid energies until this discovery is made ;
and which discloses them only according to the progressive clear-
ness and force with which the process of discovery advances. The-
history of faith is the history of this gradual disclosure, this
growing capacity to recognize and receive, until the rudimen-
tary omen of God's fatherhood in the rudest savage, who draws
by clumsy fetich or weird incantation, upon a power outside him-
self, closes its long story in the absolute recognition, the perfect
and entire receptivity, of that Son of man who can do nothing
of Himself ' but what He seeth the Father do/ and for that very
reason can do everything ; for whatsoever l the Father doeth, the
Son doeth also.'
Faith, then, is not only the recognition by man of the secret
source of his being, but it is itself, also, the condition under which
the powers, that issue from that source, make their arrival within
him. The sonship, already germinal, completes itself, realizes
itself in man, through his faith. Not only is the unconscious
human nature held by attachment to the Father who feeds it with
hidden succors, but faith is, itself, the power by which the con-
scious life attaches itself to God ; it is an apprehensive motion of
the living spirit, by which it intensifies its touch on God ; it is an
instinct of surrender, by which it gives itself to the fuller handling
of God : it is an affection of the will, by which it presses up against
God, and drinks in divine vitality with quickened receptivity. 1
What then will be its characteristics? We have only to keep
close to the conception of sonship, and we shall understand them
1 Faith is spoken of, here and elsewhere, in its perfect and true form,
as if unthwarted by the misdirection and hurt of sin.
I. Faith. 15
well enough. Faith is the attitude, the temper, of a son towards
a father. That is a relationship that we all can understand for
ourselves. We know it, in spite of all the base and cruel corrup-
tions under which, in the homes of man, its beauty lies disfigured.
Still, beneath disguises, we catch sight, in rare and happy condi-
tions, of that beautiful intimacy which can spring up between a
son and a father, where love is one with reverence, and duty ful-
fils itself in joy. Such a sonship is like a spiritual instinct, which
renders intelligible to the son every mood and gesture of the
father. His very blood moves in rhythm to the father's motives.
His soul hangs, for guidance, on the father's eyes : to him, each
motive of the father justifies itself as a satisfying inspiration. The
father's will is felt deliriously encompassing him about ; enclosed
within it, his own will works, glad and free in its fortifying obedi-
ence. Such a relationship as this needs no justifying sanction
beyond itself; it is its own sanction, its own authority, its own
justification. ' He is my father : ' that is a sufficient reason for all
this sympathetic response to another's desire. ' I am his son : *
that is the final premise in which all argument comes to a close.
The willing surrender of the heart is the witness to a fact which
is beyond argument, which accepts no denial, yet which is no
tyrannous fate, but is a living and animating bond of blood, which
it is a joy to recognize, and an inspiration to confess.
It is in such a spirit of sonship that faith reveals and realizes
itself. Faith is that temper of sympathetic and immediate re-
sponse to Another's will which belongs to a recognized relationship
of vital communion. It is the spirit of confident surrender, which
can only be justified by an inner identification of life. Its primary
note, therefore, will be trust, — that trust of Another, which needs
no ulterior grounds on which to base itself, beyond what is in-
volved in the inherent law of this life. Faith will ever discover,
when its reasons for action, or belief, are traced to their last source,
that it arrives at a point where its only and all-sufficient plea will
be ' God is my Father : I am His child.' That relationship is its
root ; on the top of that relationship faith works ; as a witness to
that relationship, it puts forth all the spiritual temper which, of
necessity, follows on this intimacy of contact.
And, here, we find ourselves in the presence of the law by which
faith claims to be universal. Unless this inner relationship be a
fact, faith could not account for itself : but if it be a fact, it must
constitute a fixed and necessary demand upon all men. All are,
equally, t children of God ; ' and the answer to the question, ' Why
should I believe ? ' must be, forever and for all, valid : ' Because
1 6 The Religion of the Incarnation.
you are a child of God.' Faith is nothing but the spiritual temper
and attitude, which belong, inherently, to such a fact. No one
can escape from such a claim : for his existence constitutes the
claim. If he be a child, it must be demanded of him, that he
should display the characteristics of his childhood : the father
must, of necessity, be concerned with the question of his own
recognition by his son. Our manhood lies in this essential son-
ship : and, if so, then to be without faith, without the conscious
realization of the sonship, is to be without the fulness of a man's
proper nature. It is to be inhuman : to be curtailed of the natural
development: to be maimed and thwarted. It means that the
vital outcome of the inner verity has been arrested ; that the sen-
sitive perceptions have been blunted and stunted ; that the sonship
in us has, somehow, lost touch with its true fatherhood.
We learn at once, as we consider this, the interpretation of that
two-sided character, which surprises us in God's dealings with
men ; i. e., the imperative rigor of His stated requirements, coupled
with His wide and patient tolerance, in actual fact.
As a Father of all, He cannot, conceivably, be satisfied with
anything short of complete recognition by His children. He
must look for faith ; He must require it of them all ; He must
leave no means untried by which to secure it ; He must seek to
win it at all costs ; His love is inevitably and cruelly hindered,
unless He can obtain it : and when He obtains it, He must pas-
sionately desire to establish, evoke, develop, perfect it : for each
rise in faith is a rise in capacities of intercourse, of intimacy,
between Father and son. We see how strenuous and zealous
will be His efforts to build up faith in men ; we understand how
urgent, and pressing, and alarming will become His entreaties,
His warnings, His menaces, His appeals, if faith is allowed to
slide or fail. Loss of faith means a shattered home, a ruptured
intimacy, a sundered love ; it means that a Father must look on
while the very nature He has made in His image shrivels and
shrinks, and all hope of growth, of advancing familiarity, of
increasing joy, of assured sympathy, is cut down and blighted.
We all know the bitterness of a breach which scatters a family
into fragments ; and that is but a faint shadow of all which the
great Father sees to be involved in the broken contact between
Himself and His son. What standard have we by which to sound
the abyss of divine disappointment, as God waits ready with gift
upon gift of endless grace which He will pour out upon the child
of His love, as the endless years open out new wonders of advan-
cing intimacy ; and lo ! the channel by which alone the gifts can
I. Faith. 17
reach him, is choked and closed ? Faith is the son's receptivity ;
it is that temper of trust, which makes the entry of succors pos-
sible ; it is the medium of response ; it is the attitude of adherence
to the Father, by virtue of which communications can pass. If faith
goes, all further action of God upon the soul, all fresh arrival of
power, is made impossible. The channel of intercourse is blocked.
The demand, then, for faith by God is bound to be exacting,
and urgent, and universal. But, then, this demand holds in
reserve a ground of hope, of patience, of tolerance, of charity,
which we can in no single instance venture to limit. For the
faith, which it rigorously asks for, reposes, as we see, on an inner
and essential relationship, already existent, which knits man to his
God. Not even the Fall, with all its consequent accumulations of
sin, can avail to wholly undo this primitive condition of existence.
The fatherhood of God still sustains its erring children ; the
divine image is blurred, but not blotted out. Still, at the close of
the long days, our Lord can speak to the wondering men who
flock about Him, of One Who is even now their Father in heaven.
This objective and imperishable relationship, the underlying ground
of all our being, is the pre-supposition of all faith, without which
it would itself be impossible. And, this being so, God can afford
to wait very long for faith to show itself. So long as its primary
condition is there, there is always hope. The stringent demand is
not inspired by the mind of a lawgiver, nor pressed home with
the austerity of a judge ; it expresses the hunger of a father's
heart to win the confidence and to evoke the capacities of the
children of its love. Such a hunger is, indeed, more rigorous and
exact than the letter of any law : it aspires after a more accurate
correspondence ; it is sensitive to more delicate distinctions : but,
nevertheless, it holds, in its fatherliness, far wider capacities of
toleration than lawgiver or judge. That same heart of the father,
which in its hunger of love is so exacting, will, out of the same
hunger, never despair, and never forsake : it will never cease from
the pursuit of that responsive trust which it desires ; it will make
allowances, it will permit delays, it will weave excuses, it will
endure rebuffs, it will condescend to persuasion, it will forget all
provocations, it will wait, it will plead, it will repeat its pleas, it will
take no refusal, it will overleap all obstacles, it will run risks, it will
endlessly and untiringly forgive, if only, at the last, the stubborn
child-heart yield, and the tender response of faith be won.
Here, then, we seem to see why the nature of faith allows for
two points which surprise us in God's dealings, as if with a contra-
diction. On the one hand, we hear Him, through prophet and
2
1 8 The Religion of the Incarnation.
priest, insisting, with severe precision, on the necessity of a right
and accurate faith. On the other, we cannot but recognize, in the
open area of actual life, the evidences of a wide and almost bound-
less toleration. Again and again it must have seemed to us that
the Church and the world gave, thus, antithetical evidence of
God's character. Yet, in truth, both speak the voice of one and
the same God, Who, in His undivided love, both passionately
seeks for the delicate and direct response of an accurate faith ;
and also, in order not to lose this final joy, ' surTereth long, and is
kind, beareth all things, believeth all things, hopeth all things, en-
clu'reth all things.' Yes ; has even to endure that men should pit
His toleration against His love, and should argue that, because He
will wait so long and quietly for the fruit that He desires to reap,
therefore He does not desire the fruit. In reality, the degree of
the toleration, with which God will patiently wait for the fruits of
faith, is the measure of the extremity of His desire for it. Just
because He wants it so much, He waits so long.
III. If faith, then, be the witness and the exercise of our sonship
in God, we can recognize at once the place it will hold among
the other powers and capacities of our nature. We are so un-
fortunately apt to rank it as one among many faculties, and then
to find ourselves engaged in agitating controversies concerning its
limits and its claims. We have to secure for it, against the rest, a
field for free dominion ; and that field is hard to define ; and rival
powers beset it ; and there are raids and skirmishes on every fron-
tier ; and reason is ever making violent incursions on the one side,
and feeling is actively besieging it on the other ; and the scientific
frontiers, which we are ever on the point of fixing, shift, and
change, and vanish, as soon as we determine them ; and the
whole force of Christian apologetics is spent in aimless and barren
border-warfare.
But if what we have been saying be true, the whole trouble turns
on a mistake. Faith is not to be ranked by the side of the other
faculties in a federation of rival powers, but is behind them all-. It
goes back to a deeper root ; it springs from a more primitive and
radical act of the central self than they. It belongs to that ori-
ginal spot of our being, where it adheres in God, and draws on
divine resources. Out from that spot our powers divide, radiating
into separate gifts, — will, memory, feeling, reason, imagination,
affection ; but all of them are but varying expressions of that
essential sonship which is their base. And all, therefore, run
back into that home where faith abides, and works, and rises, and
expands. At the root of all our capacities lies our sonship ; at the
I. Faith. * 19
root of all our conscious life lies faith, the witness of our sonship.
By adherence in God we put out our gifts, we exercise our func-
tions, we develop our faculties ; and faith, therefore, far from being
their rival, whom they are interested in suspecting, and curbing,
and confining within its limits, is the secret spring of their force,
and the inspiration of their growth and the assurance of their
success. All our knowledge, for instance, relies upon our son-
ship ; it starts with an act of faith. 1 We throw ourselves, with
the confidence of children, upon an external world, which offers
itself to our vision, to our touch, to our review, to our calcu-
lation, to our handling, to our use. Who can assure us of
its reality, of its truth ? We must measure it by those faculties
under the manipulation of which it falls. But how can the faculties
guarantee to us their own accuracy? How can we justify an
extension of our own inner necessities to the world of outward
things? How can we attribute to nature that rational and causa-
tive existence which we find ourselves forced to assume in it?
Our justification, our confidence, — all issue, in the last resort,
from our sonship. Our powers have, in them, some likeness to
those of God. If He be our Father, if we be made in His image,
then, in our measure, we can rely upon it that we close with Nature
in its reality ; that our touch, our sight, our reason, have some
hold on the actual life of things ; that we see and know in some
such manner, after our degree, as God Himself sees and knows.
In unhesitating reliance upon our true sonship, we sally out and
deal with the world ; we act upon the sure conviction that we are
not altogether outside the secret of objective existence. We re-
fuse absolutely to doubt, or go behind the reports made to us by
feeling, by memory, by thought. If once we are clear as to what
the report is, we rest on it ; we ask for no power to stand (as it
were) outside our own experience, our own knowledge, so as to
assure ourselves of their veracity. We are certain that our Father
cannot have misguided us ; that we are within His influence • that
we are in modified possession of His truth ; that our capacities
reflect His mind. We could not have so confidently recognized,
understood, and handled the world if it had been wholly foreign
to us. As it is, we lay instinctive hold upon it; we take spon-
taneous possession ; we exert authority upon it ; we feel our
inherent right over it ; we are at home in it ; we move freely
about it, as children in a father's house. Acting in this faith, all
our capacities justify themselves to us ; they respond to our reli-
ance upon them ; they develop into ever-advancing strength under
1 Cf. pp. 87, 88.
20 The Religion of the Incarnation.
the motions of this trust; they form a continual and increasing
witness to the verity of that sonship in which we have believed.
Faith, then, belongs to our entire body of activities. We live
by faith. By faith, under the inspiration of faith, we put out our
life, we set to work, we exercise faculties, we close with our oppor-
tunities, we have confidence in our environment, we respond to
calls, we handle critical emergencies, we send out far abroad our
experimental intelligence, we discover, we accumulate experiences,
we build, and plant, and develop. An elemental act of faith lies
at the root of all this advance ; and every motion that we make,
demands a renewal of that primitive venture. In all secular pro-
gress * we walk by faith.' Every step revives the demand. Just as
the earth, if it necessitates the idea of a primal creation, requires,
by exactly the same necessity, an incessant renewal of that first
creative act, so our life, if it required faith to start it, requires faith
every moment to sustain it. Our faculties never arrive at a use
which is self-dependent and self-originated, as if they could grow
beyond the tentative conditions of their earliest essays. They ori-
ginate in a venturous experiment ; and, however long and however
complicated that experiment become, it retains its original charac-
ter ; it remains experimental to the end. The results, no doubt,
justify the venture made ; but, then, the first venture involved such
immense assumptions that no results reached can ever complete its
justification, and so remove its tentative nature. For, by assuming a
real correspondence between our faculties and the world with which
they deal, it assumed that such a correspondence would never fail
us ; would be capable of infinite verification ; would prove adequate
to all possible experiences ; would receive indefinite and progressive
extension. No verifications ever reached can, then, exhaust the
faith of that primitive venture ; they can only serve to exhibit to
it how far more was contained within that venture than it could
ever have conceived. New knowledge, new experience, far from
expunging the elements of faith, make ever fresh demands upon
it ; they constitute perpetual appeals to it to enlarge its trust, to
expand its original audacity. And yet the very vastness of those
demands serves to obscure and conceal their true character. This
is the key to much of our present bewilderment. The worlds of
knowledge and of action have assumed such huge proportions,
have accumulated such immense and complicated resources, have
gained such supreme confidence in their own stability, have pushed
forward their successes with such startling power and rapidity, that
we have lost count of their primal assumption. In amazement at
their stupendous range, we are overawed ; we dare not challenge
I. Faith. 2 1
them with their hypothetical origin, or remind them that their en-
tire and wonderful structure is but an empty and hollow dream,
unless they are prepared to place their uttermost trust in an "un-
verified act of faith. Given that trust which relies on the reality
of the bond which holds between our inner faculties and the outer
world, then all this marvellous vision is rooted on a rock, has va-
lidity and substance. Withdraw that spiritual trust in our sonship,
and all this fairy-world, won for us by science and experience,
" The cloud-capp'd towers, the gorgeous palaces,
The solemn temples, the great globe itself,
Yea, all which it inherit, shall dissolve
And, like an insubstantial pageant faded,
Leave not a rack behind."
Our secular and scientific life is an immense experiment in faith,
— an experiment which verifies itself by success, but which justifies
itself only if it remembers to attribute all its success to the reality
of that hidden relationship to God which is the key to all its capa-
cities, the justification of all its confidence, and the security of all
its advance.
Such a remembrance is not easy for it : for the exercise of the
capacities is instinctive and spontaneous, and it requires an effort
of reflection to question the validity of such exercise. And such
an effort seems tiresome and impertinent in the heat of successful
progress, in the thick of crowding conquests. The practical man is
apt to give an irritated stamp on the ground, which to him feels
so solid, and to deem this a sufficient answer to the importu-
nate inquiry how he knows that he has any substantial world to
know and to handle. For faith lies behind our secular life, secreted
within it : and the secular life, therefore, can go on as if no faith
was wanted ; it need not trouble its head with perplexing questions,
whether its base be verifiable by the same standards and measures
as its superstructure. Its own practical activity is complete and
free, whether it discover its hidden principle or not ; just as M.
t Jourdain's conversation was complete and free, long before he dis-
S covered that he was talking prose. We have to stand outside our
} secular life and reflect on it to disclose its true spring. The
appeal to faith here is indirect.
But, in religion, this hidden activity is evoked by a direct appeal ;
it is unearthed ; it is summoned to come forward on its own account.
God demands of this secret and innermost vitality that it should no
longer lie incased within the other capacities, but that it should
throw off its sheltering covers and should emerge into positive
22 The Religion of the Incarnation.
action, and should disclose its peculiar and native character.
God the Father calls faith out of its dim background into the
front of the scene. He does this under the pressure of invoca-
tions, which address their appeals through, and by means of, the
secular and visible material, within and behind which He is ever at
work. This had, indeed, always told of His invisible and eternal
Godhead : but it did so indirectly, by requiring Him as its con-
stant presupposition and base. Now, it is so used as to bring
God into direct and positive evidence by means of acts, which
bring forward the energies of His immediate fatherhood. All the
growth of Eden had always testified to the existence and the name
of God ; but a new stage was reached when Pie was felt moving,
in evening hours, amid the trees of the garden. And as the
Father presses forward out of His silent background, so the secret
sonship in man emerges out of its deep recesses in positive
response, using its own secular faculties by which to carry itself
forward into evidence and action. This definite and direct con-
tact between the God Who is the hidden source of all life, and
the faith which is the hidden spring of all human activity ; this
disclosure by the Father, met by this discovery by the son, this
is Religion ; and the history of Religion is the story of its slow
and gradual advance in sanity and clearness, until it culminates
in that special disclosure which we call Revelation ; which, again,
crowns itself in that Revelation of the Father through the Son,
in which the disclosure of God to man and the discovery by
man of God are made absolute in Him Who is one with the
Father, knowing all that the Father does, making known all
that the Father is.
Now here we have reached a parting of ways. For we have
touched the point at which the distinctions start out between
what is secular and what is sacred ; between virtue and godliness ;
between the world and the Church. If ' Religion ' means this
coming forward into the foreground of that which is the univer-
sal background of all existence, then we cut ourselves free from
the perplexity which benumbs us when we hear of the ' Gospel of
the Secular Life ; ' of the ' Religion of Humanity ; ' of doctors and
scientific professors being ' Ministers of Religion ; ' of the ' Natural
Religion ' which is contained within the borders of science with its
sense of wonder, or of art with its vision of beauty. All this is so
obviously true in one sense that it sinks to the level of an amiable
commonplace ; but if this be the sense intended, why is all this
emphasis laid upon it? Yet if more than this is meant, we are
caught in a juggling maze of words, and are losing hold on vital
I. Faith. 23
distinctions, and feel ourselves to be rapidly collapsing into the
condition of the unhappy Ninevites, who knew not their right
hands from their left.
The word ' Religion,' after all, has a meaning : and we do not
get forward by laboring to disguise from ourselves this awkward
fact. This positive meaning allows everything that can be asked
in the way of sanctity and worth, for nature and the natural life.
All of it is God-given, God-inspired, God-directed ; all of it is holy.
But the fact of this being so is one thing : the recogiiition of it is
another ; and it is this recognition of God in things which is the
core and essence of religion. Natural life is the life in God, which
has not yet arrived at this recognition : it is not yet, as such, reli-
gious. The sacred and supernatural office of man is to press
through his own natural environment, to force his spirit through
the thick jungle of his manifold activities and capacities, to shake
himself free from the encompassing complexities, to step out clear
and loose from all entanglement, to find himself, through and
beyond all his secular experiences, face to face with a God, Who,
on His side, is forever pushing aside the veil which suggests and
conceals Him, forever disengaging Himself from the phenomena
through which He arrives at man's consciousness, forever brushing
away the confusions, and coming out more and more into the
open, until, through and past the ' thunder comes a human voice ; '
and His eyes burn their way through into man's soul ; and He
calls the man by his name, and takes him apart, and hides him in
some high and separate cleft of the rock, far from all the glamour
and tumult of crowded existence, and holds him close in the hollow
of His hand as He passes by, and names to him, with clear and
memorable voice, the ' Name of the Lord, the Lord God, merciful,
gracious, long-suffering, abundant in goodness and truth, forgiving
iniquity, and Who will by no means clear the guilty.' Here is Re-
ligion. It is the arrival at the secret ; the discovery by the son of
a Father, Who is in all His works, yet is distinct from them all, —
to be recognized, known, spoken with, loved, imitated, worshipped,
on His own account, and for Himself alone.
Religion, in this sense, is perfectly distinct from what is secular :
yet, in making this distinction, it brings no reproach ; it pro-
nounces nothing common or unclean. It only asks us not to play
with words ; and it reminds us that, in blurring this radical distinc-
tion, we are undoing all the work which it has been the aim of
the religious movement to achieve. For the history of this move-
ment is the record of the gradual advance man has made in disen-
tangling ' the Name of God ' from all its manifestations. Religion
24 The Religion of the Incarnation.
is the effort to arrive at that Name, in its separable identity, in its
personal and distinct significance. It is the fulfilment of the un-
ceasing cry, ' Tell me Thy name ! ' In religion we are engaged in
the age-long task of lifting the Name, clear and high, above the
clang and roar of its works, that through and by means of all that
He is, we may pierce through to the very God of gods, and may
close with Him in the blessed solitude of a love which knits heart
to heart and spirit to spirit, without any withholding interval, with
no veil to hinder or intervene.
The growth of faith, then, means the gradual increase of this
personal contact, this spiritual intimacy between Father and son.
To achieve this increasing apprehension of the Father's character
and love, faith uses, as instruments and as channels, all its natural
faculties, by which to bring itself forward into action, and through
which to receive the communications, which arrive at it from the
heart and will of Him, Who, on His side, uses all natural opportu-
nities as the material of a speech, which is ever, as man's ear be-
comes sensitive and alert, growing more articulate, and positive,
and personal.
The entire human nature — imagination, reason, feeling, desire
— becomes to faith a vehicle of intercourse, a mediating aid in
its friendship with God. But faith itself lies deeper than all the
capacities of which it makes use : it is, itself, the primal act of the
elemental self, there at the root of life, where the being is yet
whole and entire, a single personal individuality, unbroken and
undivided. Faith, which is the germinal act of our love for God,
is an act of the whole self, there where it is one, before it has
parted off into what we can roughly describe as separate and dis-
tinguishable faculties. It therefore uses, not one or other of the
faculties, but all ; and in a sense it uses them all at once, just as
any complete motion of will, or of love, acts with all the united
force of many combined faculties. A perfect act of love would
combine, into a single movement, the entire sum of faculties, just
because it proceeds from that basal self, which is the substance
and unity of them all. So with faith. Faith, the act of a willing
adhesion to God the Father, proceeds from a source deeper than
the point at which faculties divide.
And this has a most vital bearing on the question of faith's
evidences. It is here we touch on the crucial characteristic
which determines all our logical and argumentative position.
For, if a movement of faith springs from a source anterior to
the distinct division of faculties, then no one faculty can adequately
account for the resultant action. Each faculty, in its separate
I. Faith. 25
stage, can account for one element, for one factor, which contri-
buted to the result; and that element, that factor, may be of
greater or less importance, according to the rank of the faculty in
the entire self. But, if the movement of faith has also included
and involved many other elements which appear, when analyzed
out, in the domains of the other faculties ; then the account which
each separate faculty can give of the whole act, can never be
more than partial. Its evidence must be incomplete. If the
central self has gathered its momentum from many channels, it is
obvious that the amount contributed by any one channel will be
unable to justify the force exerted, or to explain the event that
followed. If we track home each faculty employed to this central
spring of energy, we shall see that each points to the result, con-
tributes to it, suggests it ; but the result will always be more than
the evidence, so collected, can warrant.
This limitation, which we may allow about other faculties, is apt
to become a stumbling-block when we apply it to the high gift of
reason. Reason, somehow, seems to us to rise into some supreme
and independent throne ; it reviews the other faculties ; and is,
therefore, free from their limitations. We fear to hint that it has
any lord over it. How can we assume such a lordship without
dubbing ourselves irrational obscurantists, who in folly try to stamp
out the light ?
But we are not, in reality, dreaming of limiting reason by any
limitations except those which it makes for itself. We are not
violently attempting to make reason stop short at any point, where
it conld go on. We are only asking, Is there any point at which
it stops of itself, and cannot go farther? We propose to use
reason right out, to press it to its utmost limit, to spur it to put
forth all its powers ; and we assert that, so doing, reason will, at
last, reveal its inability to get right to the end, to carry clear home.
And why? Because the self is not only rational, but something
more : it combines, with its unbroken, central individuality, other
elements besides reason ; and therefore, of sheer necessity, when-
ever that central self puts out an elemental act in which the in-
tegral spring of personal energy takes part, — such as an act of
will, or love, or faith, — then, reason can be but one factor, but
one element, however important, in that issuing act : and if so,
then it can give but a partial account of it ; its own contribution
cannot wholly explain, or justify the result. In Bishop Butler's
language, the utmost that reason can do is to make it 'very
probable.'
The real root-question in this time-worn controversy is just this :
26 The Religion of the Incarnation.
Is, or is not, reason the most primal and elemental act of the
integral personality? If it is, then, of course, it regulates and de-
termines all subordinate acts. Everything must finally submit to
its arbitration ; for everything, if tracked back far enough, must
terminate in an act of reason.
But if, as Christianity asserts, the ultimate and elemental self
be a moral will, that can believe, and love, then, though this self
contains in it reason, it also goes back behind reason. Reason is
indeed one of its essential elements, but it is not its entire essence,
for this includes within itself, that which appears as feeling, and
desire, and imagination, and choice, and passion, as well as that
which shows itself as reason. When, therefore, the self puts out
its primitive power, it will do actions which satisfy reason, indeed,
but which reason cannot exhaustively analyze, or interpret, since
the entire force of reason, if it were all brought into action, would
still be only a partial contribution to the effect.
As a fact, we all of us are perfectly familiar with this limitation,
in affairs of affection and friendship. We never have here that
paralyzing awe of reason which haunts us in matters of religion.
We never allow ourselves to be bullied into submission to its
supremacy. We should laugh at it, if it attempted to dictate to
us, or to account for all our motives. Not that we are at war
with it, or are shirking it, or are afraid of it. We can have
affections and friendships, which have every possible justification
which reason can offer. Every conceivable expediency can unite
to authorize and approve them. Every interest may be served by
them. They may stand every test which a cool common-sense,
or a calm impartial judgment, or an acute calculation of conse-
quences can apply to them. They may be the very embodiment
of reason. And yet, by no amount of calculated expediencies, by
no pressure of rational considerations, could we dream, for one
moment, that our friendship was accounted for. If ever it could
trace its origin to these motives, it would cease to be what we
thought it. The discovery would destroy it. All possible con-
siderations and calculations might have been present, and yet they
would be utterly powerless to create in us the love. And the love,
however gladly it may recognize the approving considerations,
would repudiate, with amazement and with laughter, any presump-
tion on their part to say, ' This is why you love.'
It is the same with all primal acts of heroism. They may be
absolutely rational : yet, they would cease to be heroic, they would
never be done, if they did not call upon a force, which, indeed,
may determine its direction by reason, but which uses quite other
I. Fahh. 27
motives to induce itself to act. Utilitarianism, which attempts to
account for such heroic momentum by purely rational considera-
tions, finds itself reduced to shifts which all those can see through,
who refuse to be juggled out of their own experiences. It is the
same with all the higher forms of moral energy. All of them go
beyond their evidences. They all lift the rational motives, which
suggest and determine the direction of their activity, by an impul-
sive force, which has in it the power of initiative, of origination.
Every high act of will is a new creation. As the gunpowder
sleeps until the spark alights upon it, so the directions of reason
remain below the level of action until the jet of a living will fuses
its fire with their material. The act which results may, indeed,
be capable of complete interpretation on reasonable grounds : it
may be able to show reasons which account for every fragment of
it : yet, still, the living force which drew together and combined
all those separate reasons into a single resultant act, has a creative
and original character. The series of reasons, however complete,
cannot account for the result, for they cannot possibly account for
their own combination : and without this combination of their
momentum the result would not be there.
It is well to recall briefly this character of the moral will, the
affections, the love of man. For these are faith's nearest and
dearest allies. It is here in these elemental motions that faith
finds its closest parallel. It is something very like an act of will,
a movement of love, an heroic and chivalrous moral venture.
And whenever we desire to understand its relations to reason, we
must persistently recall the attitude towards reason taken by these
fundamental forms of energy ; only remembering that faith is yet
more elemental, yet more completely the act of the central inte-
gral self, even than these. Where they leave reason behind, it
will do so yet further. Where they call upon something deeper
and more primitive than reason, it will do the same, and yet more
triumphantly. It is not that either it or they are without reason ;
or that they stand outside reason, consulting it so far as they
choose, and then dropping it ; it is not that reason may not be
found in every corner and fragment of their activity, pervading,
coloring, restraining, limiting, directing, justifying it : but simply that
what we call the rational self is not only rational, but also some-
thing more ; that, if analyzed out, the reason will not appear as
the root and core of the man, but rather as an element inhering in
a yet more central base ; and that whenever the energy of vital
action is put out, we are driven to look through and beyond reason,
if we would unearth the source whence the act springs.
28 The Religion of the Incarnation.
The relation, then, of reason to faith is not strange, or forced,
or unfamiliar to us, if it is much the same as its relation to the
affections, or to moral acts and intuitions. We know what to
expect, what part it ought to play in such a case. As in a case of
heroic moral daring, or high affection, so, in a matter of faith, we
shall expect that reason, with its arguments and. its evidences, will
play all round and about it, will go before it, discussing the path
to follow, will follow after it, unravelling the secret forces at work
in it \ will watch, and analyze, and learn, and warn ; will recon-
noitre, and examine, and survey, and discover ; will justify, inter-
pret, defend, assist. But yet we shall expect, also, that the act of
faith will do more than all the arguments can anticipate ; that it
will hold itself free from them all ; that it will appeal, not to them,
but to its own inherent force, for the final decision ; that it will
move by instinct, by spontaneity, by inspiration ; that it will rush
past all evidences, in some great stride ; that it will brush through
scruples that cannot be gainsaid, and obstacles that cannot be got
over ; that it will surprise, that it will outdo, that it will create ;
that it will bring novel forces into play, invisible, unaccountable,
incalculable ; that it will fly, when reason walks ; that it will laugh,
when reason trembles ; that it will over-leap barriers which reason
deems final. As with love, so with faith, it will take in all evi-
dences, it will listen to all proofs ; but when they have done their
utmost, it has yet got to begin ; it itself, after all its calculations,
must make the actual spring, which is the decision. Out of itself,
it draws its strength ; out of itself it makes its effort ; by being
what it is, it sees what it sees, it does what it does. It uses the
evidence ; but uses it to leap from, to go farther. Its motives,
advances, efforts, issue from within itself. Just as the lover's final
answer to the question, ' Why did you do that ? ' must be, ' Because
I loved ; ' so the final answer of the believer, in explanation of an
act, can never be wrung out of the reasonable grounds for so acting :
it must always be, ' Because I believed.' Just as man first acts and
speaks, and reason, following behind, can at last discover that his
actions were all consecutive, and that his language has a perfect
grammar ; so faith has always to make its venture, prompted and
inspired from within, and only long afterwards can it expect to
learn that if it has been true to itself, to its proper promptings,
then its action can, by slow and plodding reason, be thoroughly
interpreted and justified. Faith is, above all things, anticipatory,
The sonship, within, anticipates what the Father has in store for
it : by means of affection, by rapid instincts of love, it assumes what
it cannot yet verify, it foretells the secrets that lie hidden within the
I. Faith. 29
Father's eyes. So anticipating, it makes its venture, — a venture
which love alone can understand and justify, though the faithful-
ness of the eternal and supreme Father ensures that the anticipa-
tion shall receive its full verification.
If this be the relation of faith to reason, we see the explanation
of what seems, at first sight, to the philosopher to be the most irri-
tating and hypocritical characteristic of faith. It is always shifting
its intellectual defences. It adopts this or that fashion of philoso-
phical apology ; and then, when this is shattered by some novel j
scientific generalization, faith, probably after a passionate struggle
to retain the old position, suddenly and gayly abandons it, and
takes up with the new formula just as if nothing had happened :
it discovers that the new formula is admirably adapted for its pur-
poses, and is, in fact, just what it always meant, only it has unfor-
tunately omitted to mention it. So it goes on, again and again ;
and no wonder that the philosophers growl at those humbugs, the
clergy !
But they are criticising faith as if it were a theory, as if knowl-
edge were its province, while in truth the seat of faith lies back
behind the region of knowledge. Its radical acts and motives are
independent of any particular condition of thought or science ;
they are deeper recessed ; they exist in their own right, and under
their own conditions. True, they may not be able to express
themselves, to get their energies forward, to set themselves free,
to manifest themselves, except through the mediation of knowl-
edge, — through the instruments and channels which the science
of the day provides them. But this does not confuse their inhe-
rent and distinct character. They never identify themselves with
the tools they use. They sit quite loose to the particular state of
thought, the formula, the terms, through which they make their
way out into action. And, moreover, since the acts of faith are
more radical than those of reason, and since they belong to the
entire man acting in his integrity, they therefore of necessity an-
ticipate, in their degree, all that the man by slow development, by
the patient industry of reasoning, will laboriously disclose. Lying
deeper than all knowledge, they hold in them the condition under
which all knowledge will be arrived at. They constitute the
activity which ought to be at the background of all our reasoning.
No particular or partial state of knowledge can exhaust their sig-
nificance. Each step knowledge makes does but illustrate, in
some new fashion, the relation of all knowledge to faith, — does
but elucidate the characteristics of that primal sonship. In each
fresh discovery or generalization, faith finds a new instrument for
30 TJie Re!igio)i of the Incarnation.
expressing its old convictions ; it is taught to see the weak points,
the imperfections of its former expressions ; it understands where
they hold good, and where they failed ; it gets out more of itself
than ever before, through the new channels opened to it ; it dis-
covers more of its own character by finding better modes in which
to manifest it. It does but half know itself, so long as its expres-
sion is encumbered.
The advance of secular knowledge, then, is for faith an acquired
gain, for by it, it knows itself better; it sees more of what was
involved in its vital convictions. It has a struggle, no doubt, in
dropping off the expressions that have grown familiar to it, and in
detecting the fresh insight into its own nature which it can win by
the new terminology : but when once it has mastered the terms,
new lights break out upon it, new suggestions flash, new capacities
disclose themselves. It has won a new tool : when it has become
familiarized with the use of it, it can do great and unexpected
things with it.
But, for all that, it is but a new tool, worked by the old con-
victions ; they have not changed, any more than love changes,
though the slow development of married life may carry the lovers
into unknown experiences, in foreign lands, under changed skies.
The two, if they be faithful, learn far more of what the love they
plighted means, as each sweeping revolution carries them hither
and thither, than ever they understood on the wedding-day ; yet it
is ever the old love then pledged, which they hold fast to the end.
Its identity is emphasized by the changes. So with faith. It may
absorb its energies in the joy of wielding the particular instrument
with which, at any one moment, science supplies it. But it will
never the least fear to drop it, so soon as the advancing skill and
the pushing minds of men have elaborated for it some yet more
delicate and subtle tool, wherewith to give free play to its native
vitalities.
For faith is moved by but one solitary passion, — the hope of
cleaving, closer and ever closer, to the being of God. It is, itself,
nothing but this act of personal adherence, of personal cohesion ;
and all else is, for it, material that can be subdued to this single
service. Each bettering of knowledge intensifies the possibilities
of this cohesion ; and, for that, it is welcomed. It opens out
fresh aspects of the good Father ; it uncovers new treasures of His
wisdom : therefore, for faith, it is an ever-mounting ladder, by
which it draws nearer and nearer, spirit to spirit, heart to heart.
No idle or indifferent matter this ; and right knowledge, therefore,
is for faith a serious and pressing need. And, moreover, faith is
i. Fait i :
pledged to use aU possible guidance and direction in making its
great act of self-surrender to God. And it is the peculiar office
of reason, and of the rational conscience, to guard it from any
distorted and unworthy venture. Faith has to make its leap ; but
to make it exacdy in that direction, and in no other, where reason
points the way. It is bound therefore to use all its intelligent
resources : it may not fall below the level of its highest reason
without the risk of sinking to a superstition. This is the radical
difference between what we here claim, and that which a super-
stition demands of us. A superstition asks faith to shut its eyes.
We ask it to open them as wide as it can. We demand this of it
as a positive duty. It is bound, as an act of the whole man, to
use every conceivable means and security which knowledge can
bring it For so alone can it secure itself against the hazards
which encompass its adventure. It cannot afford to enter on that
venturous committal of itself less equipped and instructed than it
was open to it to be. It must put all to use that can better its
offer of itself to God.
It is, in this seriousness, that faith is apt to embrace so fast the
dominant scientific or philosophical creed. It has found, through
this creed, a new and thrilling insight into God's mind, and it fas-
tens on this precious gift, and dwells delightedly on it, and spends
itself in absorbing the peculiar truths which this particular wa
thinking brings to the front. So that, at last, when the smash
comes, when the floods break in, when the accumulation of new
facts outside the old lines necessitates a total reconstruction of the
intellectual fabric, faith seems to have gone under with the ruined
scheme to which it had attached itself so firmly.
. if ever it has implicated its own fate with that of any partic-
ular form of knowledge, it has been false to itself. It has no more
right to identify itself with any intellectual situation than it has to
pin its fortunes to those of any political dynasty. Its eternal task
lies in rapid readjustment to each fresh situation, which the motion
of time may disclose to it It has that in it which can apply to all,
and learn from alL Its identity is not lost because its expressions
vary and shift : for its identity lies deep in personality ; and per-
sonality is that which testifies to its own identity by the variety and
the rapidity of its self-adaptation to the changes of circumstance.
So with faith. Its older interpretations of itself are not false, be-
cause the newer situations have called for different manifestations.
Each situation forces a new aspect to the front. But ever it is
God and the soul, which recognize each other under every disguise.
:t is in one fashion, and now in another ; but it is always one
32 The Religion of the Incarnation.
unalterable wisdom which is justified, recognized, and loved, by
those who are her children.
We will not, then, be the least afraid of the taunt, that we are
all accepting and delivering from our pulpits that which once
threw us into anger and dismay. Only let us learn our true lesson ;
and in our zeal to appreciate the wonders of Evolution, let us
hold ourselves prepared for the day which is bound to come, when
again the gathering facts will clamor for a fresh generalization, and
the wheel will give one more turn, and the new man will catch
sight of the vision which is preparing, and the new book will
startle, and the new band of youthful professors will denounce and
demolish our present heroes, and all the reviews and magazines
will yelp in chorus at their heels, proclaiming loudly that now, at
last and forever, the faith which has pledged itself so deeply to the
obsolete and discredited theory of Evolution is indeed dead and
done with. Faith will survive that crisis, as it has survived so many
before ; but it will be something, if it does not drag behind it the
evil record of passion and blindness, with which it has too often
disgraced its unwilling passage from truth to truth.
IV. But here our objections take, perhaps, a new turn alto-
gether. ' Ah, yes ! ' it will be said, ' faith if it were a simple sur-
render of the soul to God, a childlike adhesion of the spiritual
sonship in us to its Father Who is in heaven, might sit loose to all
formulae, theories, discoveries, in the way described. Faith, if it
limited itself to this mystical communion, might be beyond the
scope and criticism of reason. But this is not the least what you
really ask of us. The faith, for which you practically plead, the
only form of faith actually open to us, has rashly left these safe con-
fines ; it has implicated itself with a vast body of facts recorded in
a book. It has involved itself in intricate statements of dogma.
How can you claim to be free from the control of logic and criti-
cism, in things so directly open to logical treatment? This spiri-
tual faith of yours has mixed itself up with alien matter, with
historical incidents, with intellectual definitions ; here are things
of evidence and proof. Here its locks are shorn ; its mystic
strength is gone. Delilah holds it fast ; it is a prisoner in the
hands of the Philistines. If you will retreat again back into the
region of simple spiritual intuitions, and abandon to reason this
debatable land, how gladly would we follow you ! But that is just
what you refuse to do.'
Now, here is the serious moment for us of to-day. It is quite
true that all would be plain and easy, if we might be allowed to
make this retreat, if we might limit our claims for the spirit to
i. Faith, 33
that simple, childlike intuition which, instinctively, feels after and
surrenders to the good Father in heaven. But what would that
retreat mean? It would mean an attempt, desperate and blind,
to turn back the world's story, to ignore the facts, to overleap the
distinctions of time and place, to deny experience, to force our-
selves back into primitive days, to imagine ourselves children again.
Simple intuitions of God, simple communion with the Father,
unquestioned, undistracted, — this is the privilege of primitive days,
when minds are simple, when experience is simple, when society
is simple. Plain, easy, and direct situations admit of plain, easy,
and direct handling. But our situation is not plain, easy, or direct.
Our minds are intricate and complicated ; our story has been a
long and a difficult one ; our social condition is the perplexed
deposit of age-long experiences. The faith which is to be ours
to-day must be a faith of to-day. It cannot remain at the level of
childhood, when nothing else in us or about us is the least child-
like. It cannot babble out in pretty baby-language when the situa-
tion with which it has to deal is terribly earnest, serious, perilous,
and intense. It must be level with its work ; and its work is com-
plicated, hard, disciplined : how can it expect to accomplish it
without effort, without pain, without training, without intricacy?
The world is old ; human life is old ; and faith is old also. It has
had many a strange and stormy experience ; it has learned much
on the way ; it has about it the marks of old troubles ; the care, the
patience, the completeness of age, have left their stamp upon it.
It has had a history like everything else ; and it reaches us to-day, in
a form which that history behind it can alone make intelligible. Four
thousand years have gone to its making since Abraham first laid
hold, in a definite and consistent manner, of the faith which is ours
to-day. All those centuries it has been putting itself together,
growing, enriching itself, developing, as it faced and measured each
new issue, each gathering complication, each pressing hazard.
This long experience has built up faith's history : and, by study of
that history, we can know why it was that faith could not stand
still at that point where we should find it so convenient to rest.
Faith appeals to its own story to justify its career ; it bears about
that history with it as its explanation, why, and how it has arrived at
its present condition. That history is its proof how far it has left
its first childhood behind it, how impossible it is at the end of the
days to return to the beginning. The history, which constitutes
our difficulty, is its own answer. For there, in that Bible, lies the
recorded story of the facts which pressed hard upon the earliest
intuition of God, and drove it forward, and compelled it to fix itself,
3
34 The Religion of the Incarnation.
and to define itself, and to take a firmer root, and to make for
itself a secure dwelling-place, and to shape for itself a career.
The Bible is the apology which our faith carries with it and offers
as a proof of the necessity which has forced it to go beyond its
primitive efforts, until it has reached the stage at which we now
encounter it. It portrays there, before our eyes, how it all began ;
how there came to this man and to that the simple augury, the
presage, the spasm of spiritual insight, the flash, the glimpse,
the intimation ; until there came the man Abraham, in whom it won
the emphasis, the solidity, the power of a call. < Oh, that we might
be content to feel, as he, the presence of the Everlasting ! Whv
not leave us in peace,' we cry, < with the simple faith of Abraham ? '
And the answer is plain : < Because it is the nineteenth century after
Christ, instead of the nineteenth century before/ We are making
a mistake of dates. Let us turn to our Bible and read. There
we watch the reasons disclosing themselves why that simple faith
could not abide in arrest at its first moment ; why it must open
a new career, with new duties, and new responsibilities, and new
problems. The seed is sown, but it has to grow ; to make good
its footing amid the thick of human affairs ; to root itself in the
soil of human history ; to spread itself out in institutions ; to
push its dominion ; to widen its range ; to become* a tree that
will fill the land. Before Abraham, it was but a flying seed, blown
by the winds; now it is a stable, continuous, masterful growth.
It must be this, if it is ever to make effective its spiritual asser-
tions over the increasing intricacy of human affairs.
What, let us ask, is that life of faith which historically began
with Abraham ? It is a friendship, an intimacy, between man and
God, between a son and a father. Such an intimacy cannot be
idle or stagnant ; it cannot arrest its instinctive development. It
holds in it infinite possibilities of growth, of increasing familiarity,
of multiplied communion. And, thus, such a friendship creates
a story of its own : it has its jars, its frictions, its entangle-
ments, — alas ! on one side, its lapses, its quarrels, its blunders,
its misunderstandings ; and then, on the other, its corresponding
indignations, and withdrawals, and rebukes ; and yet again, its
reconciliations, its reactions, its pardons, its victories. Ever
it moves forward on its checkered path ; ever God, the good
Friend, spends Himself in recovering the intimacy, in renewing it,
in purging it, in raising it. Its conditions expand ; its demands
intensify ; its perils deepen ; its glories gather ; until it consum-
mates its effort in the perfected communion of God and man, —
in Him Who completes and closes the story of this ever-growing
i. Faith. 35
Intimacy, by that act of supreme condescension which brings
down God to inhabit and possess the heart of man ; and by that
act of supreme exaltation which uplifts man into absolute union
with the God Who made him.
This is the story : the Bible is its record. As a body of inci-
dents and facts it must be subject to all the conditions of history
and the laws of evidence ; as a written record it introduces a
swarm of questions, which can be sifted and decided by rational
criticism. This entails complications, it must be confessed ; but
they are inevitable. The intimacy between man and God cannot
advance, except through the pressure of connected and recorded
experience. A human society which has no record of its past is
robbed of its future. It is savage ; it cannot go forward, because
it cannot look back. So with this divine friendship. Its recorded
experiences are the one condition of its growth. Without them
it must always be beginning afresh ; it must remain imprisoned at
the starting-post. The length and complexity of its record is the
measure of its progress ; even though they must present, at the
same time, a larger surface to the handling of criticism, and may
involve a deeper degree of obscurity in details.
And, after all, though details drawn out of a dead past permit
obscurity, the nature and character of the main issue become ever
more fixed and distinct, as the long roll of circumstances discloses
its richer secrets. The very shift and confusion of the surface-
material throws out, in emphatic contrast, the firm outlines of the
gathering and growing mystery. Ever the advance proceeds,
throwing off all that is accidental, immaterial, subservient ; ever
man becomes clearer in his recognition of the claims made on him
by the hope which God keeps ever before Him, ' They shall be My
people : I will be their God.' Ever the necessities of such an
intimate affection point to the coming of the Christ. Christ is the
end, the sum, the completion, of this historic friendship ; and His
advent is, therefore, absolutely unintelligible unless it is held in
relation to the long experience, which He interprets, justifies, and
fulfils. Faith in Christ is the last result, the ultimate and perfected
condition of that faith of Abraham, which enabled him to become
the first friend of God. And the immense experience that lay
between Abraham and St. Paul, can alone bridge the interval, can
alone exhibit the slow and laborious evolution, through which the
primitive apprehension of God was transformed into the Christian
Creed, — that mighty transformation, spread out over two thousand
years of varied history, which our Lord summed up in the light-
ning-flash, ' Your father Abraham rejoiced to see My day : and he
36 The Religion of the Incarnation.
saw it, and was glad.' The Book is the record of those tested
and certified experiments, which justified our Lord in asserting
that to believe in God was, necessarily, to believe in Him. No
one can understand that assertion, unless by seeing it worked out,
in detail, by the searching logic of experience.
Faith in Christ, then, includes faith in the Bible ; and in saying
that, we have already cleared away much of the difficulty that
beset us. For our faith in Christ becomes the measure and stand-
ard of our faith in the Bible. We believe in it as the record of
our, growing intimacy with God. Faith is, still, a spiritual cohesion
of person with person, — of the living soul with a living God. No
details that intervene confuse this primitive relation. Only, that
cohesion was not reached at one leap. It is ancient : it has
traversed many incidents and trials : it has learned much : it
has undergone patient apprenticeship : it has been bonded by the
memory of multitudinous vicissitudes. Like all else that is human,
it has grown. The details of events are the media of that growth.
In that character they are vitally essential to the formed inti-
macy ; but in that character alone. They are not valued for
their own sake, but for the cause which they served. Belief in
God never changes its character, and becomes belief in facts ; it
only develops into a deeper and deeper belief in God, as dis-
ciplined by facts. The facts must be real, if the discipline is to
be real ; but apart from this necessity, we are indifferent to them.
We can listen to anything which historical criticism has to tell us,
of dates and authorship, of time and place. It may supply all the
gaps in our record, showing how the material there, briefly gathered,
had itself a story, and slowly came together, and had sources and
associations elsewhere. All such research adds interest to the
record, as it opens out to us the action of the Divine Intimacy, in
laying hold of its material. We watch it, by the aid of such criti-
cism, at its work of assimilation ; and in uncovering its principles
of selection, we apprehend its inner mind ; we draw closer to our
God. The more nearly we can ally the early conditions of Israel
to those of Arabian nomads, the more delicate and rare becomes
our apprehension of that divine relationship which, by its perpetual
pressure, lifted Israel to its marvellous supremacy, and which, by
its absence, left the Arabian to be what he is to-day.
The point at which criticism must hold off its hands is, of
course, a most subtle matter to decide. But we can, at least, be
sure of this : that such a point will be no arbitrary one ; it will
be there, where criticism attempts to trench on the reality and
the uniqueness of the Divine Intimacy, which those incidents
I. Faith. 37
served to fashion, and those books detected and recorded, and
Christ consummated. Our faith in Christ must determine what, in
the Bible, is vital to its own veracity. There is no other measure
or rule of what we mean by inspiration.
The preparation for Christ, then, necessitates such complications
as these. And the character of His advent intensified and thick-
ened them. For, while asking of us the purest form of spiritual
adherence, He makes that demand in a shape which is imbedded
throughout in concrete historical facts which, as facts, must be
subject to the thumb of critical discussion, and to all the external
handling of evidence and argument.
And, then, on the top of this, He has, of necessity, raised the
question of His own Personality to such a pitch of vital value that
the full force of man's intellectual activities is drawn towards its
consideration, — is summoned to contemplate, and measure, and
apprehend it ; is compelled to examine and face its tremendous
issues. The supreme act of personal surrender, for which Christ
unhesitatingly asks, cannot conceivably pass beyond its child-
stage without forming a direct and urgent challenge to the intellect
to say how and why such an act can be justified, or such a claim
interpreted. No faith can reach to such an absolute condition
without finding itself involved in anxieties, perils, problems, com-
plications. Its very absoluteness is a provocation to the ques-
tioning and disputing mind, — to the hesitating and scrupulous will.
And the result, the inevitable result, of such a faith — proposed,
as it was, to a world no longer young and childlike, but matured,
old, thoughtful, experienced — is the Dogmatic Creeds. We
clamor against these intellectual complications ; we cry out for
the simple primitive faith. But, once again, it is a mistake of
dates. We cannot ask to be as if eighteen centuries had dropped
out, unnoticed, — as if the mind had slumbered since the days of
Christ, and had never asked a question. We cannot hope to be
in the same condition after a question has been asked as we were
before it had ever occurred to us to ask it. The Creeds only re-
cord that certain questions have, as a fact, been asked. Could our
world be what it is, and not have asked them? These difficulties
of a complicated faith are only the reflection of the difficulties of
a complicated life. If, as a fact, we are engaged in living a life
which is intricate, subtle, anxious, then any faith which hopes
to cover and embrace that life, cannot escape the necessity of
being intricate, subtle, and anxious also. No child's creed can
satisfy a man's needs, hunger, hopes, anxieties. If we are asked
to throw over the complications of our Creeds, we must beg those
33 The Religion of the Incarnation.
that ask us to begin by throwing over the complications of this
social and moral life.
But still, with the Creeds as with the Bible, it is the personal
intimacy with God in Christ which alone is our concern. We do
not, in the strict sense, believe in the Bible, or in the Creeds : we
believe solely and absolutely in Christ Jesus. Faith is our living
act of adherence in Him, of cohesion with God. But still, once
more, we must recognize that this act of adhesion has a history ;
it has gradually been trained and perfected : and this has been
accomplished through the long and perilous experiences recorded
in the Old Testament ; and it has been consummated in the final
sealing of the perfected intimacy attained in Him, in Whose per-
son it was realized and made possible for us : and it has been
guarded and secured to us in the face of the overwhelming pres-
sure of eighteen strong, stormy, and distracted centuries. And
therefore it is that we now must attain our cohesion with God,
subject to all the necessities laid upon us by the fact that we enter
on the world's stage at a late hour, when the drama has already
developed its plot and complicated its situations. This is why we
cannot now, in full view of the facts, believe in Christ, without
finding that our belief includes the Bible and the Creeds.
V. Faith is, still and always, a spiritual intimacy, a living friend-
ship with God. That is what we must be forever asserting. That
is the key to all our problems ; and once sure of this in all its
bearings, we shall not be afraid of a taunt which is apt to sting
especially those of us who are ordained. It is conveyed, in its
noblest form, in a book of Mr. John Morley's, on Compromise.
No one can read that book without being the better or the worse
for it. The intense force of high moral convictions acts upon us
like a judgment. It evokes the deepest conscience in us to come
forward, and stand at that austere bar and justify itself, or, in fail-
ing to justify itself, sink condemned. And in that book he asks
the old question, with unequalled power : How can it possibly be
honest for men to sign away their reason at the age of twenty-
three ; to commit themselves to conclusions Which they cannot
have mastered ; to anticipate beforehand all that experience may
have to teach? In committing themselves to positions which
any new knowledge or discovery may reverse, they have forbid-
den themselves the free use of their critical faculties ; they have
resigned their intellectual conscience.
What do we answer to that severe arraignment? Surely we
now know well. Faith is an affair of personal intimacy, of friend-
ship, of will, of love ; and, in all such cases, we should know
i. Faith. 39
exactly what to do with language of this type. We should laugh
it out of court. For it is language which does not belong to this
region. It is the language, it expresses the temper, of the scien-
tific student, — a temper, an attitude specialized for a distinct
purpose. That purpose is one of gradual advance into regions as
yet untouched, and unsuspected, — an advance which is forever
changing the relations and classifications of those already partially
known. The temper essential to such a purpose must be prepared
for discovery, for development, for the unexpected ; it is bound
to be tentative, experimental, hypothetical; to be cool, critical,
corrective. It deals with impersonal matter; and it must itself,
therefore, be as far as possible impersonal, abstract, non-moral,
without passion, without individuality, without a private intention,
or will, or fixed opinion.
But such a temper, perfectly justified for scientific purposes, is
absolutely impotent and barren in matters of moral feeling and
practice.
The man who brings this temper into play in affairs of the will,
or the heart, or the imagination ; in cases of affection, friendship,
passion, inspiration, generosity ; in the things of home, of war, of
patriotism, of love, — is in the wrong world ; he is a living blunder ;
he has no cue, no key, no interpretation. He is simply absurd.
And religion stands with these affairs. Just as we see well
enough that if love were approached in this scientific spirit, it
could not even begin, so it is quite as certain that, if faith were
approached in this spirit, it could not even begin.
Mr. Morley has mixed up two different worlds. He is criticis-
ing that form of knowledge which consists in spiritual apprehension
of another's personality through the whole force of a man's inhe-
rent, and integral, and personal will and desire, by the standard of
another form of knowledge altogether, which consists in gradual
and experimental assimilation of foreign and unknown matter
through specialized organs of critical observation.
This latter knowledge is bound to be as far as possible emptied
of personal elements. But our knowledge is nothing if not per-
sonal ; it is the knowledge which issues, and issues only, out of the
personal contact of life with life. And this is why it can afford to
anticipate the future. For a person is a consistent and integral
whole ; if you know it at any one point, you know it in a sense at
all points. The one character, the one will, disclose themselves
through every partial expression, and passing gesture, and varying
act. Therefore it is that, when two personalities draw towards one
another in the touch of love, they can afford to plight their word.
40 The Religion of the Incarnation.
For love is the instinctive prophecy of a future adherence. It is
the assurance, passing from soul to soul, that no new discovery
of what is involved in their after-life together can ever deny, or
defeat, or destroy their present mutual coherence in each other.
That adhesion, that adaptability, which has been proved at a
few points, will necessarily be justified throughout. The marriage-
pledge expresses the absolute conviction that the present expe-
rience is irreversible, except by wilful sin. Whatever novelties
the years bring with them, those two characters will abide what
they are to-day. Growth cannot radically alter them.
Love, then, is this confident anticipation, which takes the future
in pledge. And where this anticipation breaks down, it must be
through human infirmity, wrong, misunderstanding.
And our knowledge of Christ is this knowledge of love ; wher-
ever it exists, and so far as it exists, it issues out of personal con-
tact, personal interaction. This is why, in its tested and certified
form, — i. e., in the accumulated and historic experience of the
Catholic community, — it can rationally justify its anticipation of
an unbroken adherence.
And it can do so with complete confidence, because, here, on
the side of Christ, there is no infirmity which can endanger the
plighted faith ; there is no lapse, no decline possible. Christ must
be loyal, for He is sinless. And more : being sinless, He is con-
sistent. Every part of Him is in harmony with the whole : in Him
there is no unsteadiness, no insecurity. Such a flawless character
is identical with itself; wherever it is touched, it can be tested and
approved.
What, then, can upset our trust in Him ? What can disturb our
knowledge of Him? What fear of change can the years bring on?
We may know but a tiny fragment, a fringe, of this love of His to
us, yet that is enough ; to have felt it at all is to trust it forever.
We cannot hesitate to commit ourselves to One Who, if we know
Him in any way, is known to be, by inward, personal, inherent
necessity, the ' same yesterday, to-day, and forever.'
Yes ! But still it may be pleaded that this anticipatory adhe-
rence, which might justifiably be given to a person beloved, can-
not be pledged to dogmatic definitions. These, at any rate, are
matters, not of love, but of reason : they must be liable to critical
examination, to intellectual revision. It is the pledge given to
believe these dogmas in the future, which is such an outrage on
intellectual morality.
Now, this protest, forcible and obvious as it looks at first sight,
is still guilty of confusing the criticism which belongs to one
I. Faith > 41
province of knowledge with that which belongs to another. These
dogmas of faith do not the least correspond to the classifications and
laws of physical science ; and for this reason, that the matter to which
they relate is wholly different in kind. Dogmas represent reason in
its application to a personal life : scientific generalizations represent
reason as applied to matter, from which the conditions of person-
ality have been rigorously and rightly excluded. The difference is
vital ; and it affects the entire character of the working of reason.
The dogmatic definitions of Christian theology can never be
divorced from their contact in the personality of Christ. They are
statements concerning a living character. As such, and only as
such, do they come within the lines of faith. We do not, in the
strict sense, believe in them : for belief is never a purely intellec-
tual act ; it is a movement of the living man drawn towards a liv-
ing person. Belief can only be in Jesus Christ. To Him alone do
we ever commit ourselves, surrender ourselves, for ever and aye.
But a personality, though its roots lie deeper than reason, yet
includes reason within its compass : a personality cannot but be
rational, though it be more than merely rational ; it has in it a ratio-
nal ground, a rational construction ; it could not be what it is with-
out being of such and such a fixed and organic character. And a
personality, therefore, is intelligible ; it lays itself open to rational
treatment ; its characteristics can be stated in terms of thought.
The Wiil of God is the Word of God ; the Life is also the Light.
That which is loved can be apprehended ; that which is felt can be
named. So the Personality of the Word admits of being rationally
expressed in the sense that reason can name and distinguish those
elements in it which constitute its enduring and essential condi-
tions. The dogmas, now in question, are simply careful rehearsals
of those inherent necessities which, inevitably, are involved in the
rational construction of Christ's living character. They are state-
ments of what He must be, if He is what our hearts assure us ; if
He can do that for which our wills tender Him their life-long self-
surrender. Unless these rational conditions stand, then, no act of
faith is justifiable ; unless His personality correspond to these
assertions, we can never be authorized in worshipping Him.
But, if so, then we can commit ourselves to these dogmas in the
same way and degree as we commit ourselves to Him. We can
do so, in the absolute assurance that He cannot but abide forever,
that which we know Him to be to-day. We know Him, indeed,
but ' in part ; ' but it is part of a fixed and integral character, which
is whole in every part, and can never falsify, in the future, the
revelation which it has already made of itself.
42 The Religion of the Ijicarnation.
The real question, as to Christian dogma, lies in the prior ques-
tion : Is Christianity justified in claiming to have reached a final
position? If the position is rightly final, then the intellectual
expression of its inherent elements is final also. Here is the deep
contrast between it and science. The scientific man is forbidden,
by the very nature of his studies, to assume finality for his proposi-
tions. For he is not yet in command of his material. Far, very
far, from it. He is touching it on its very edge. He is engaged
in slowly pushing tentative advances into an unknown world, loom-
ing, vast, dim, manifold, beyond his frontier of light. The cohe-
rence of his known matter with that huge mass beyond his ken, can
be but faintly imaged and suspected. Wholly unreckoned forces
are in operation. At any moment he may be called upon to throw
over the classification which sums up his hitherto experience ; he
may have to adopt a new centre ; to bring his facts into a novel
focus : and this involves at once a novel principle of arrangement.
In such conditions dogma is, of course, an absurdity. But if we
are in a position to have any faith in Jesus Christ, then we must
suppose that we have arrived at the one centre to all possible
experiences, the one focus under which all sights must fall. To
believe in Him at all is to believe that, by and in i this Man, will
God judge the world.' In His personality, in His character, we
are in possession of the ultimate principle, under which the final
estimate of all things will be taken. We have given us, in His sac-
rifice and mission, the absolute rule, standard, test, right to the
very end. Nothing can fall outside it. In Him. God has summed
up creation. We have touched in Him the ' last days,' the ulti-
mate stage of all development. We cannot believe in Him at all,
and not believe that His message is final.
And it is this finality which justifies dogma. If Christianity is
final, it can afford to be dogmatic ; and we, who give our adhesion
to it, must, in so doing, profess our adhesion to the irreversible
nature of its inherent principles ; for, in so doing, we are but
reasserting our belief in the absolute and final sufficiency of
His person.
Let us venture, now, to review the path that we have travelled,
in order that we may see at what point we have arrived. Faith,
then, is, from first to last, a spiritual act of the deepest personal
will, proceeding out of that central core of the being, where the
self is integral and whole, before it has sundered itself off into
divided faculties. There, in that root-self, lie the germs of all that
appears in the separate qualities and gifts, — in feelings, in reason,
in imagination, in desire ; and faith, the central activity, has in it,
I. Faith. 43
therefore, the germs of all these several activities. It has in it that
which becomes feeling, yet is not itself a feeling. It has in it that
which becomes reason, yet is not itself the reason. It holds in it
imaginative elements, yet is no exercise of the imagination. It is
alive with that which desires, craves, loves, yet is not itself merely
an appetite, a desire, a passion. In all these qualities it has its
part ; it shares their nature ; it has kindred motions ; it shows
itself, sometimes through the one, and sometimes through the
other, according to the varieties of human characters. In this
man, it can make the feeling its main instrument and channel ; in
that man, it will find the intellect its chief minister ; in another, it
will make its presence known along the track of his innermost
craving for a support in will and in love. But it will always remain
something over, and beyond, any one of its distinctive media ; and
not one of these specialities of gift will ever, therefore, be able to
account wholly for the faith which puts it to use. That is why
faith must always remain beyond its realized evidences. If it finds,
in some cases, its chief evidences in the region of feeling, it is
nevertheless open to deadly ruin, if ever it identifies itself with
these evidences, as if it could rely on them to carry it through.
It may come into being by their help ; but it is never genuine
faith, until it can abide in self-security at those dry hours when
the evidences of positive feeling have been totally withdrawn.
And as with feeling, so with reason. Faith looks to reason for
its proofs ; it must count on finding them ; it offers for itself intel-
lectual justifications. It may arrive at a man by this road. But it
is not itself reason ; it can never confuse itself with a merely intel-
lectual process. It cannot, therefore, find, in reason, the full
grounds for its ultimate convictions. Ever it retains its own in-
herent character, by which it is constituted an act of personal
trust, an act of willing and loving self-surrender to the dominant
sway of another's personality. It is always this, whether it springs
up instinctively, out of the roots of our being, anticipating all
after-proof, or whether it is summoned out into vitality at the close
of a long and late argumentative process. No argument, no array
of arguments, however long, however massive, can succeed in
excusing it from that momentous effort of the inner man, which is
its very essence. Let reason do its perfect work ; let it heap up
witness upon witness, proof upon proof. Still there will come at
last the moment when the call to believe will be just the same to
the complete and reasonable man as it always is to the simplest
child, — the call to trust Another with a confidence which reason
can justify, but can never create. This act, which is faith, must
44 TJie Religion of the Incarnation.
have in it that spirit of venture, which closes with Another's invita-
tion, which yields to Another's call. It must still have in it and
about it the character of a vital motion, — of a leap upward, which
dares to count on the prompting energies felt astir within it.
Faith cannot transfer its business into other hands to do its
work for it. It cannot request reason to take its own place, or
achieve its proper results. There is no possibility of devolution
here ; it cannot delegate its functions to this faculty or to that. It
is by forgetting this that so many men are to be found, at the close
of many arguments of which they fully acknowledge the convin-
cing force, still hovering on the brink of faith, never quite reaching
it, never passing beyond the misery of a prolonged and nerveless
suspense. They hang back at the very crisis, because they have
hoped that their reasoning powers would, by their own force, have
made belief occur. They are like birds on a bough, who should
refuse to fly until they have fully known that they can. - Their
suspense would break and pass, if once they remembered that, to
enter the Kingdom of Heaven, they must always be as little chil-
dren. They must call upon the child within them. At the end,
as at the beginning, of all the argumentative work, it is still the
temper of a child which they must bring into play. There must
still be the energy of self-committal, — the movement of a brave
surrender. Once let them turn, enforced by all the pressure of
reasonable evidence, to this secret fount of life within the self,
and back flows the strength which was theirs long ago, when the
inspiration of their innate sonship moved sweetly in them, breed-
ing confidence, secure of itself, undaunted and unfatigued. That
sonship abides in us all, cumbered and clouded though it be by
our sin ; it abides on and on, fed by the succors of a Father
Who can never forget or forsake, and Who is working hitherto to
recover and redeem. And while it abides, faith is still possible.
For its native motions are the spontaneous outcome of that spirit-
ual kinship which, if once alive and free, impels us towards Him
by Whose love we have been begotten. Reason and feeling, proof
and argument, — these are means and instruments by which we
can invoke this sonship into action, and release it from much
which fetters and enslaves. But it is the actual upspringing force
of the sonship itself, which alone can be the source of belief.
And as it is given to all to be sons of God, through the eternal
sonship of Christ, therefore it is open to all to count upon possess-
ing the conditions of faith in God.
II.
THE CHRISTIAN DOCTRINE OF GOD.
AUBREY MOORE.
II.
THE CHRISTIAN DOCTRINE OF GOD.
I. The object of this essay is not to discuss the so-called ' proofs '
of the existence of God, but to show what the Christian doctrine of
God is, and how it has grown to be what it is, out of the antago-
nisms of earlier days ; and then to ask : What fuller realization of
God's revelation of Himself is He giving us through the contradic-
tions and struggles of to-day ? If it is true that ' the only ultimate
test of reality is persistence, and the only measure of validity
among our primitive beliefs the success with which they resist all
efforts to change them,' 1 it is of first importance to discover
what it is which, through all the struggles of past history, the reli-
gious nature of man has persistently clung to. Much which was
once dear to the religious consciousness, and which seemed at the
time to be an integral part of the religious idea, has been given up.
A former age abandoned it with regret, and looked forward with
gloomy foreboding. A later age looks back with thankfulness, and
recognizes ' the good Hand of our God ' leading us to truer knowl-
edge of Himself.
It would be idle to deny — after all due allowance has been made
for the natural tendency to believe that the present is the critical
moment, not only for us, but for the world at large — that the crisis
of the present day is a very real one, and that the religious view of
God is feeling the effects of the change which is modifying our
views of the world and man. When such a fundamental idea is
challenged, men are naturally tempted to adopt one of two equally
one-sided attitudes, — to commit themselves either to a policy of
unintelligent protest, or to a policy of unconditional surrender.
And if the one is needlessly despairing, the other is unwarrantably
sanguine. The one asks : ' How much must I give up, of what
religion has always been to me, that a little of the old may sur-
vive amidst the new ? ' The other asks : ' How little of the old
need I keep, so as not to interfere with the ready acceptance of
the new?' The one view is pessimist, the other optimist. Both
have their representatives in our day, and each party is pro-
1 Fiske, Idea of God, p. 139, quoting H. Spencer.
48 The Religion of the Incarnation.
% foundly conscious of the danger to which the other is exposed.
The advocates of the one view, finding themselves 'in a place
where two seas meet,' think it safer to ' run the ship aground;'
those of the other, ' seeing they cannot bear up against the wind,'
prefer to ' let her drive.' But if the spirit of the one is merely
protestant, the spirit of the other is certainly not catholic.
In contrast with these one-sided views, we propose to approach
the question in the full conviction that the revelation of God in
Christ is both true and complete, and yet that every new truth
which flows in from the side of science, or metaphysics, or the
experience of social and political life, is designed in God's provi-
dence to make that revelation real, by bringing out its hidden
truths. It is in this sense that the Christian revelation of God
claims to be both final and progressive : final, for Christians know
but one Christ, and do not ' look for another ; ' progressive,
because Christianity claims each new truth as enriching our knowl-
edge of God, and bringing out into greater clearness and distinct-
ness some half-understood fragment of its own teaching. There
are, no doubt, always to be found Christians, who are ready to
treat new knowledge as the Caliph Omar treated the books in the
library of Alexandria, — ' they agree with the Koran, and are unne-
cessary, or they disagree with it, and must be destroyed.' But an
intelligent Christian will not ask, ' Does this new truth agree with
or contradict the letter of the Bible ? ' but ' How does it interpret
and help us to understand the Bible ? ' And so with regard to all
truth, whether it comes from the side of science, or history, or
criticism, he adopts neither the method of protest nor the method
of surrender, but the method of assimilation. In the face of new
discoveries, the only question he is anxious to answer is this :
' What old truth will they explain, or enlighten, or make real
to us? What is this new world of life and interest which is
awaiting its consecration? "Truth is an ever-flowing river, into
which streams flow in from many sides." 1 What is this new
stream which is about to empty itself, as all knowledge must,
into the great flood of Divine truth, " that the earth may be filled
with the glory of the Lord as the waters cover the sea " ? '
Such a hopeful attitude does not, indeed, imply that the assimi-
lation of the new truths will go on as a matter of course. The
Christian knows that the acceptance of truth is a moral, as well as
an intellectual matter, and in the moral world there is no place for
laisser /aire. He expects to be called upon to struggle; he
1 St. Clem. Alex., Strom., I. v.
II. The Christian Doctrine of God. 49
expects that the struggle will need his utmost effort, moral and
intellectual. His work is both to keep and to claim ; to hold fast
the faith ' once for all delivered to the saints/ and yet to see in
every fragment of truth a real revelation of the mind and will of
God. He has no cut-and-dried answer to objections ; he does
not boast that he has no difficulties. But he does claim to look
out upon the difficulties of his day, not only fearlessly, but with
hope and trust. He knows that Christianity must triumph in the
end, but he does not expect all difficulties to be removed in a
moment. And he is strong enough, if need be, to wait.
II. Whether any one is really guilty of what Hume calls the
' multiplied indiscretion and imprudence ' of dogmatic atheism,
whether positivism can rightly be so classed, whether agnosticism
is not atheism to all intents and purposes, are questions which
fortunately, lie outside the scope of the present inquiry. As for
polytheism, it has ceased to exist in the civilized world. Every
theist is, by a rational necessity, a monotheist. But we find our-
selves, in the present day, face to face with two different views of
God, which, though they constantly, perhaps generally, overlap,
and even sometimes coincide, yet imply different points of view,
and by a process of abstraction can be held apart and contrasted
with one another. Many devout Christians are philosophers and
men of science ; many men of science and philosophers are devout
Christians. But the God of religion is not the God of science
and philosophy. Ideally, every one will allow that the religious
idea of God and the scientific and philosophical idea of God must
be identical ; but in actual fact it is not so, and in the earlier
stages of the development of both, there is a real antagonism. To
accept this antagonism as absolute is, by a necessary consequence,
to compel one to give way to the other. We cannot long hold
two contradictory truths. We find ourselves compelled to choose.
We may have Religion or Philosophy, but not both.
Very few, however, are prepared to go this length. It is much
more usual to get rid of the antagonism by adopting one of two
alternative methods.
(1) Of these the first is a suggested division of territory, in
which religion is allotted: to faith, and philosophy and science to
reason. Such an expedient, though not uncommonly, and perhaps
even wisely, adopted by individuals, who refuse to give up either
of two truths because they cannot harmonize them, becomes ridicu-
lous when seriously proposed as a solution of the difficulty.
Moreover the proposed division of territory is unfair to start with.
1 Give us the Knowable, and you shall have the rest, which is far
4
SO The Religion of the Incarnation.
the larger half/ sounds like a liberal offer made by science to re-
ligion, till we remember that every advance in knowledge transfers
something from the side of the unknown to the side of the known,
in violation of the original agreement. Mr. Herbert Spencer calls
this division of territory a 'reconciliation.' 1 But if anything in
the world could make religion hate and fear science and oppose
the advance of knowledge, it is to find itself compelled to sit still
and watch the slow but sure filching away of its territory by an
alien power. We say nothing here of the fact that Mr. Herbert
Spencer's division ignores the truth that knowledge of correlatives
must be of the same kind, 2 and that if knowledge has to do with
one and faith with the other, either faith must be a sort of knowl-
edge, or knowledge a sort of faith. We merely notice the unfair-
ness of a division which assumes rationality for science, and leaves
irrationality to religion.
Curiously enough, however, there are many devout people, who
would be horrified at the thought that they had borrowed from
Agnosticism, and who have nevertheless made a similar division of
territory. They are the people who stake all upon what reason
cannot do. They have no interest in the progress of knowledge.
The present gaps in science are their stronghold, and they natur-
ally resist every forward step in knowledge as long as they can,
because each new discovery limits the area in which alone, accord-
ing to their imperfect view, faith can live. Every triumph of sci-
ence on this theory, as on Mr. Herbert Spencer's, becomes a loss,
not a gain, to religion. The very existence of God is bound up
with that part of His work in nature which we cannot understand,
and, as a consequence, we reach the paradox that the more we
know of His working, the less proof we have that He exists. Mod-
ern apologetic literature abounds in this kind of argument. It is
the devout form of the worship of the unknowable. Yet it is no
wonder that people who take refuge in gaps find themselves awk-
wardly placed when the gaps begin to close.
(2) The other alternative is even more commonly adopted, for
it fits in well with the vagueness and want of precision in language,
which is at a premium in dealing with religious questions. This
consists in frittering away the meaning of definite terms till they are
available for anything, or adopting a neutral term which, by a little
management and stretching, will include opposites. This is the
method of indefinite inclusion. The strength of the former alter-
native lay in the appearance of sharp scientific delimitation of terri-
1 Cf. Herbert Spencer, First Principles, Pt. I.
2 See this criticism excellently stated in Caird's Phil, of Religion, pp.32 etc.
II. The Christian Doctrine of God. 51
tory ; the strength of the latter, in its unlimited comprehensiveness.
A term is gradually stripped of the associations which make it what
it is, it is ' defecated to a pure transparency, 5 and then it is ready
for use. The term ' God ' is made merely ' a synonym for nature ; ' l
religion becomes 'habitual and permanent admiration,' 2 or ' de-
vout submission of the heart and will to the laws of nature ; ' 3
enthusiasm does duty for worship, and the antagonism between
religion and anything else disappears.
Now so far as this represents, negatively, a reaction against intol-
erance and narrowness, and positively a desire for unity, there is
not a word to be said against it. Its tone and temper may Ipe both
Christian and Catholic. But the method is a radically false one.
It is not a real, but only an abstract, unity which can be reached
by thinking away of differences. As Dr. Martineau says, in his ex-
cellent criticism of this method, e You vainly propose an eirenicon
by corruption of a word.' ' The disputes between science and
faith can no more be closed by inventing " religions of culture "
than the boundary quarrels of nations by setting up neutral provinces
in the air.' 4 ' A God that is merely nature, a Theism without God,
a Religion forfeited only by the "nil admirari," can never reconcile
the secular and the devout, the Pagan and the Christian mind.' 5
As well might we attempt to reconcile the partisans of the gold
and silver shields by assuring them that in reality the shields were
silver gilt.
We are left, then, face to face with the opposition between the
religious and the philosophic or scientific view of God. The coun-
ter-charges of superstition and anthropomorphism on the one side,
and of pantheism and rationalism on the other, serve to bring out
the antithesis of the two views. No division of territory is possi-
ble. There may be many sciences, each with its defined range of
subject-matter ; but there can be only one God. And both reli-
gion and philosophy demand that He shall fill the whole region of
thought and feeling. Nor can any confusion or extension of terms
help us to a reconciliation, or blind us long to the true issue.
The conflict is too real and too keenly felt to admit of any patched-
lp peace. The idea of God, which is to claim alike the allegiance
of religion and philosophy, must not be the result of compromise,
but must really and fully satisfy the demands of both.
1 Natural Religion, iii. 45, quoted by Martineau.
2 Ibid., iv. 74.
3 Frederic Harrison's New Year's Address, 1884.
4 A Study of Religion, i. 11, 12.
Ibid., p. 15.
52 The Religion of the Incarnation.
III. What then are these demands considered in abstraction
from one another ? We are at once met by the difficulty of defining
religion. But if we cannot define religion, or trace it back to its
hidden source, we can at least discover its characteristics, as we
know it after it has emerged from the obscurity of prehistoric
times, and before any conscious attempt has been made to
reconcile religion and philosophy, or find a middle term between
them.
Now, traditional definitions of religion given, as it were, from
within, and constructed with no view of opposition to, or recon-
ciliation with philosophy, are agreed in representing religion as
a relation between man and the object or objects of his worship ;
and this implies, not only the inferiority of the worshipper to that
which he worships, but also something of likeness between the
related terms, since, as even Strauss allows, in our inmost nature
we feel a kinship between ourselves and that on which we depend. 1
It is quite indifferent which of the rival etymologies of the word
' religion ' we adopt. 2 St. Augustine, 3 following Lactantius, speaks
of religion as ' the bond which binds us to One Omnipotent God.'
St. Thomas 4 adopts almost unchanged the definition given by
Cicero ; it is l that virtue which has to do with the worship of a
higher nature known as the Divine.' It is not too much to say
that, for the modern religious world, religion implies at least the
practical belief in a real and conscious relation between the inner
life of man and an unseen Being. And whatever of mystery
there may be about that unseen Being, it would seem as if a real
relationship demands so much of likeness in the related terms as
is implied in personality.
It is here that we reach the point at which we are able to distin-
guish between the religious and the philosophical ideas of God. It
is not that religion and philosophy necessarily contradict or exclude
one another, but that they approach the problem with different
interests. Religion demands a personal object, be that object one
or many. It is committed to the belief in a moral relationship
between God and man. Philosophy demands unity, whether per-
sonal or impersonal. For philosophy is nothing if it does not
completely unify knowledge. And it seems as if each finds lack-
i Old Faith and New, § 41. .....
2 ' Hoc vinculo pietatis obstricti Deo et religati sumus, unde ipsa religio
nomen accepit, non ut Cicero interpretatus est, a relegendo.' — Lact., Inst.,
iv. 28.
3 De vera religione, sub fin.
* Sum. Theol., 2, 2, 81, Art. I.
ii. The Christian Doctrine of God. 53
ing in the other that which it values most and thinks of first. The
only hope, then, of reconciliation is in the idea of God as per-
sonal, and yet one. So long as religion retains a trace of poly-
theism or dualism, philosophy can have nothing to say to it. So
long as philosophy has no room for a personal God, religion must
exclude philosophy. The whole issue of the controversy lies here.
If the belief in a personal God is to be called anthropomorphism,
religion is hopelessly anthropomorphic. With the disappearance of
anthropomorphism in this sense, as Professor Fiske rightly sees, 1
religion disappears. But we cannot escape anthropomorphism,
though our anthropomorphism may be crude or critical. 2 We do
not read our full selves into the lower world, because we are higher
than it \ we do not transfer to God all that belongs to our own self-
consciousness, because we know that He is infinitely greater than
we are. But we should be wrong not to interpret Him by the
highest category within our reach, and think of Him as self-con-
scious life. Christianity refuses to call this anthropomorphism,
though it stands or falls with the belief that, in his personality,
man is in the image of God. An anthropomorphic view of God
for a Christian means heathenism or heresy ; a theomorphic view
of man is of the essence of his faith. 3
The religious idea of God may, of course, become philo-
sophical without ceasing to be religious. If there is to be a religion
for man as a rational being it must become so. But there is a
point beyond which, in its desire to include philosophy, religion
cannot go. It cannot afford to give up its primary assumption of
a moral relationship between God and man. When that point is sur-
rendered or obscured, the old religious terms become increasingly
inapplicable, and we find ourselves falling back more and more on
their supposed philosophical equivalents, — the ' Infinite ' or the
'Absolute,' or the Universal Substance, or the Eternal Conscious-
ness, or the First Cause, or the Omnipresent Energy. But these
terms, which metaphysicians rightly claim, have no meaning for the
religious consciousness, while in metaphysics proper ' God ' is as
much a borrowed term as ' sin ' is in non-religious ethics. Moral
?vil is ' sin ' only to those who believe in God ; and the infinite is
only ' God ' to those in whom it suggests a superhuman personality
1 Idea of God, p. 117.
2 See Seth's Hegelianism and Personality, pp. 223, 224 ; one or two sen-
tences from which are, almost verbatim, transferred to the text.
3 Justin Martyr (Exhort ad Graec, ch. xxxiv.) explains the anthropo-
morphisms of polytheism as an inversion of the truth that man is in the
image of God.
54 The Religion of the Incarnation,
with whom they are in conscious relation. Even when religion
and philosophy both agree to speak of God as ' the Infinite/ for
the one it is an adjective, for the other a substantive. The moment
we abandon the idea of God as personal, religion becomes merged
in philosophy, and all that properly constitutes religion disappears.
God may exist for us still as the keystone in the arch of knowledge,
but He is no longer, except as a metaphor, ' our Father, which is
in heaven.'
IV. Religion then, properly and strictly, and apart from exten- j
sions of the term made in the interests of a reconciliation, assumes
a moral relationship, the relationship of personal beings, as existing
between man and the Object of his worship. When this ceases,
religion ceases ; when this begins, religion begins. But of the begin-
nings of religion we know nothing. Prehistoric history is the
monopoly of those who have a theory to defend. But we may take
it as proven that it is at least as true that man is a religious, as that
he is a rational animal. ' Look out for a people,' says Hume, ' en-
tirely destitute of religion. If you find them at all, be assured that
they are but few degrees removed from brutes.' l Hume's state-
ment is confirmed by the fact that those who would prove that there
is no innate consciousness of Deity are driven to appeal to the case
of deaf-mutes and degraded savages. 2 Whether monotheism was
a discovery or a recovery, whether it rose on the ruins of poly-
theism, or whether polytheism is a corruption of a purer faith, is a
question we need not attempt to settle. Nor need we decide the
priority of claim to the title of religion as between nature-worship,
or ancestor-worship, or ghost-worship. The farther we go back in
history, the more obviously true is the charge of anthropomorphism
so commonly brought against religion. The natural tendency to
treat the object of religion as personal exists long before any at-
tempt is made to define the conditions or meaning of personality,
and includes much which is afterwards abandoned. For religion
in its earliest stages is instinctive, not reasoned. It is 'naively
objective.' It is little careful to clear up its idea of the nature
and character of its God. It is still less anxious to prove His
existence. It is only when conscience grows strong, and dares to
challenge the religion which had been instinctively accepted, that
men learn to see that God not only is, but must be, the expression
of the highest known morality. It is only when the light of con-
scious reason is turned back upon religious ideas that polytheism
becomes not merely untrue, but impossible and inconceivable.
1 Hume, Essays, ii. 425. 2 H. Spencer, Eccl. Inst., p. 1.
II. The Christian Doctrine of God. 55
What religion starts with is not any theory of the world, but an
unreasoned belief in a Being or beings, however conceived of, who
shall be in a greater or less degree like the worshipper, but raised
above him by the addition of power, if not omnipotence ; great-
ness, if not infinity ; wisdom, if not omniscience.
But while implying from the first something of a moral relation-
ship between man and the Object of his worship, religion does not
always conceive of that Object as necessarily holy or perfectly
wise. There are religions which are both immoral and childish.
They have in them no principle of growth, and therefore they are
the opponents alike of moral and intellectual progress. Tantum
relligio potuit sicadcre malorum is the reflexion of Christian apolo-
gists, as well as of the Roman poet, on the religions of heathenism.
Hence, it is argued, ' Religion is the enemy of morals and of
science. Away with it ! It is a mere matter of feeling, which
cannot and ought not to stand before the imperious challenge of
conscience and reason.' Such a view has both truth and false-
hood in it. The religious idea of God must be able to justify
itself to our moral and to our rational nature, on pain of ceasing to
exist. But religion cannot be thus shut up to one part of our
nature, nor can one part of our nature be set against the rest.
There is, as Herbert Spencer is fond of pointing out, 1 a kind of
idolatry of reason in the present day. Reason has exposed many
superstitions, only to become itself the final object of superstition.
Men forget that, after all, reasoning is only 're-coordinating states
of consciousness already coordinated in certain simpler ways,' and
that that which is unreasoned is not always irrational. Rationality
in man is not shut up in one air-tight compartment. ' There is no
feeling or volition which does not contain in it an element of
knowledge.' 2 This is the truth whict Hegel has seized when he
speaks of religion as ' reason talking naively.' You can no more
shut up faith to the compartment of feeling, than reason to the
compartment of the intellect. Religion claims the whole man,
and true religion is that which can make good its claim.
The natural history of religion, then, is the history of the process
by which that which has its secret birthplace behind all the distinc-
tions of modern psychology, establishes its claim on man, absorb-
ing into itself all that is best and truest in his moral and intellectual
being, as conscience and reason successively emerge into conscious
activity : while, from another point of view, it is the progressive
purification of the religious idea of God till He is revealed as,
1 Psych, vol. ii. §§ 388-391. 2 Cairo!, Philosophy of Religion, p. 162.
56 The Religion of the Incarnation.
what He is to a thinking Christian of to-day, the Object of reverent
worship, the moral ideal, the truth of nature and of man.
Such an end is not attained in a moment. It is the result of a
process with which we are familiar elsewhere, viz. evolution by
antagonism. The true has to be separated from the false. Im-
moral and irrational conceptions of God have to be thrown aside.
It is only after what looks like an internecine struggle between
religion and morality that man learns the truth about the character
of God, and only after a conflict with philosophy and science,
which seems to threaten the very life of religion, that he learns
what can be known of the Divine Nature. For among religions
too there is a struggle for existence, in which the fittest survive.
And the test of fitness is the power to assimilate and promote
moral and intellectual truth, and so to satisfy the whole man. An
ideally perfect religion is not ' morality touched by emotion,' but a
worship which reflects itself in the highest known morality, and is
interpreted and justified to itself by reason. It is this process, as
we know it in history, that we proceed to examine.
V. The statement that religion, even in its most elementary
forms, takes for granted some relationship of likeness between the
worshipper and the Object or objects of his worship, by no means
implies that all religion associates the highest morality with its idea
of God. On the contrary, we know that not only are there immoral
religions, but that immorality sometimes lingers on in religion long
after it is condemned elsewhere, and that a people will permit as a
religious duty what, according to their thinking, nothing but reli-
gion would justify. We cannot, then, at all accurately gauge the
moral condition of a people by the received teaching about its
gods, for morality is often far in advance of religion, and the charac-
ter which in a god or goddess is protected by a religious halo is
looked upon as hateful or impure in man or woman. The sense
of dependence, which, though it does not constitute the whole, is
yet an essential element in the religious consciousness, the awe
which, in a low state of development, shows itself in a grovelling
fear of the invisible beings, makes it impossible for the worshipper
to judge his god by the standard he applies to his fellow-man. The
god may be lustful, but his lusts must be respected ; he is strong
and vengeful, and must by all means be kept in a good temper,
cajoled or outwitted, or bribed or humored. His commands
must be obeyed, without question or resistance. But by and by
the moral nature learns its strength, and begins to assert its inde-
pendent right to speak. Morality outgrows religion. The relations
between religion and morals become more strained. Some heretic
ii. The Christian i of God.
57
re immoral ; that they are men ' writ
. men too. Their claim to reverence is challenged.
l moral awaken 3 m the old religion is treated with
scorn and contempt, and either a new religion taker, its plac< .
ing in as it were on the • the waye of moral reformation, or
i i is purified and becomes the foster-mother of the
new ii. t a divine sanction, and receiving from it
in turn nc i and vitality. Oi failing th se, men abandon
>n in the supposed interest of morals. A religion with mys-
be tolerated, but a religion once seen to be immoral is
at an i :.■!. 1 >r a time ethics, with a background of metaphysics
or politics, preva Is ; but gradually it tends to drift into a merepru-
il philosophy tries m vain to sat-
per instint tS whi< h It to the unseen.
In the historj k thought the collision came in the days
ire what is sometimes called th
rreece ha I u its traditional re.
I 5 philosophy at is birth wis mythology rationalized, and the
of independent morality in G showed itself in a
II >mer and I lesiod. The
it times of the way in
which I of his day. it is not only
Anthropomorph-
ism, immorality, childish folly, — these are the < which
Xenophanes brings against the worship of M I An-
had alia-ady been banished for suggesting that thi
I >f molten iron, hut \ nes turns into
ridicule the religi m of his day.
* Homer and i [esiod,' he Is all that
•i is held shameful and blameworthy, — theft, adultery,
and deceit.' '
htiest am and men. who neither
in form nor thought is like- to mm. Wt mortals think the
>rn,and I pe and voice and raiment like themselves.
• Surely tf lions and cows had hands, and could grave with their
hand,, and do as men do, they too would mal like them-
'1 have horse-like gods, and cows gods with
horns and ho.
When th f moral philosophy begins, amidst the unsettle-
ment of the sophistii period, the same protest is token up by
1 Ritter and Preller, Hist Phil. Gneo. 7th ed. I 8a.
* II.:
58 The Religion of the Incarnation,
Plato. In Xenophanes the protest of the reason and the con-
science went together. In Plato the criticism of the received
theology is more distinctly a moral criticism. God cannot lie or
deceive. He cannot be the cause of evil. He is good, and only
the source of good. He is true in word and deed. If not, we
cannot reverence Him. It cannot be true that the gods give way
to violent emotions, still less to sensuality and envy and strife. 1
' For God cannot be unrighteous, He must be perfectly righteous,
and none is like Him save the most righteous among men.' 2
Here we have a collision between an immoral religious con-
ception of God and a morality which is becoming conscious of
its own strength. And what was the result? Religion in Greece
received its death-blow. It had no real recuperative power. It
could not absorb and claim the new morality. Homer and
Hesiod, the ' Bible ' of the Athenian, were too profoundly im-
moral. A Kephalus might go back in silent protest to his sacri-
fice, but the youth of Athens turned from religion to morality.
When we pass from Plato to Aristotle, the last trace of religion in
morals has disappeared. Theology has become Metaphysics, and
has no place in the world of practical life. The religious element
has disappeared from philosophy, and is only revived in the mysti-
cism of Neo-Pythagoreanism and Neo-Platonism. In metaphysics
and science we owe everything to the Greeks; in religion, as
distinguished from theology, we owe nothing.
From the Greeks we turn to the Jews, to whom alone, among
the nations of the pre-Christian age, we of the modern world
trace back our religious lineage. We speak of the religion of the
Old Testament as ' revealed' in contrast with all other pre-Chris-
tian religions. Is that distinction tenable? If so, what does it
mean, and what justifies us in making it? It is clear that the
answer must be sought in what the Old Testament revelation is,
rather than in the process by which the Jews became the appointed
depositaries of it. For whatever were the prehistoric elements
out of which the religion of Israel came, whether Assyrian or
Accadian or Indo-German or Egyptian, and whatever were the
steps by which Israel was led 3 to that doctrine of God which con-
stituted its mission and its message to the world, as we look back
from the point of view of Christianity we see that the religion of
Israel stands to the teaching of Christ in a relation in which no
i Plat., Rep., 377-385-
2 Thaet, 176 C.
3 H. Spencer of course follows Kuenen in assuming a polytheistic origin
of Hebrew monotheism. See Kuenen, Religion of Israel, i. 223.
ii. The Christian Doctrine of God. 59
Pagan religion stands. 1 The Law and the Prophets were for all
the world ' a sacred school of the knowledge of God, and the
ordering of the soul.' 2 If it is true that the Bible only records
the later and more important stages in a process which began in
prehistoric times amidst the various forms of polytheistic worship ;
even if it could be shown that the history, as we have it, has been
subjected to successive revisions, that its laws have been codified, its
ritual elaborated, its symbolism interpreted, — it would still remain
true that the religion 'of Israel, which begins where its history
begins, and of which, indeed, its history is little more than the
vehicle, is bound up with the assertion of Monotheism. The
central fact of its revelation is this, ' Hear, O Israel ! the Lord our
God is One Lord.' The central utterance of its law is, 'Thou
shalt have none other gods but Me.' The unity of God, that
truth which other religions were feeling after and tending towards,
stands out clearly-and distinctly as the characteristic of the religion
of Israel, and is fearlessly claimed as an inheritance from the
patriarchal age.
And not less remarkable than the assertion of the unity of God
is the assumption that this One God is a God of Righteousness.
He is ' a God of truth and without iniquity ; just and right is He.'
Here, again, it was not that the religion of Israel asserted what
other religions denied, but that Israel proclaimed clearly and with
increasing certainty a truth which the highest contemporary reli-
gions were struggling to express. In the religion of Israel the
pre-Christian world rose to articulate religious utterance. Its
highest and truest intuitions found a voice. Israel had yet much
to learn and much to unlearn as to what true morality is. It had
anthropomorphisms of thought and language to get rid of. It had
to rise in Psalmist and Prophet to moral heights unknown to the
patriarchal age. But the remarkable thing is that the claim is
made. Morality is claimed for God ; God is declared to be irre-
vocably on the side of what man knows as righteousness. And this
1 It is strange that Mr. Darwin should have failed to see that this was
the answer to his difficulty. It appeared to him, he tells us (Autobiography,
p. 308), ' utterly incredible that if God were now to make a revelation to the
Hindoos, he would permit it to be connected with the belief in Vishnu,
Siva, etc., as Christianitv is connected with the Old Testament.' Incredible,
no doubt. But why ? For the very reason which makes it ' incredible ' that
man should be evolved directly from a fish, as Anaximander is said to have
taught, and not incredible that he should be evolved, as Darwin teaches,
from one of the higher vertebrates. The very idea of development, whether
in species or religions, implies a law and order in the development.
2 St. Athan., De Incarn., c. xii.
6o The Religion of the Incarnation.
truth is proclaimed not as a discovery but as a revelation from God
Himself. It was this, not less than the proclamation of mono-
theism, which made the teaching of the Old Testament what it
was. It consciously transformed the natural law of ' might is
right ' into the moral truth that ' right is might.'
And the consequences of this new departure in the religious
history of man were far-reaching. It made the difference between
the religion of Israel and all other religions a difference not merely
of degree but of kind. The worship of the Lord and the worship
of the heathen gods becomes not only a conflict between the true
and the false in religion, but between the moral and the immoral
in practice. More than this, it changes the mere emotional feeling
of awe and dependence on invisible powers into trust and confi-
dence. If God is irrevocably on the side of right, the nation or
the individual that is struggling for the right is fighting on the
side of God. It was this which made the great Hebrew leaders,
and the Psalmists after them, take it for granted that their cause
was the cause of God, and that the Lord of Hosts was with' them.
Even the wars of extermination were the expression in act of the
utter antagonism between good and evil, the cause of God and
that of His enemies. And when Saul spared Agag it was from
no excess of charity, no glimpse of a higher morality ; it was an
act of moral weakness. Finally, this claim of morality for God
precluded the possibility of such a collision as took place in the
history of the Greeks. The progressive development of morals
in the Old Testament, and the gradual unfolding of a perfect
character 1 was also for Israel a progressive revelation of the
character of God. Step by step the religious idea advanced with
moral progress. And, as they advance, the contrast with other
religions becomes more marked. ' It was the final distinction
between Polytheism and the religion of Israel that the former
emphasized power, the latter the moral element to which it subor-
dinated and conjoined power.' 2 And this moral conception of
God was constantly kept before the people. If they lapse into
idolatry and adopt heathen practices and heathen ideas of God,
the prophets are ready with the warning that God is the God of
Israel only because Israel is a chosen people to bear His name
and His truth before the world ; and if they are false to their
mission, they will be rejected. If, again, the sacrificial system
loses its moral significance as the recognition of the holiness of
1 It is needless to say that this section is largely indebted to Dean Church's
Discipline of the Christian Character.
2 Edinb. Rev., Apr., 1888, p. 512.
ii. The Christian Doctrine of God. 61
God and the sinfulness of the sinner, and the forward -pointing
look towards the great moral fact of the Atonement, and becomes
merely ritual, and perfunctory, and formal, the prophets dare to
denounce even the divinely ordered sacrifices as things which God
hates.
Yet it was not that, in the religion of Israel, morality was made
the essential thing, a nucleus of morals, as it were, with a halo of
religious emotion round it. It was that the religious and the ,
moral consciousness are brought together in a real unity. To love 1
the Lord is to hate evil. God is One Who gives His blessing to
the righteous, while the ungodly and him that delighteth in wicked-
ness doth His soul abhor. He, then, who would ascend into the
hill of the Lord and stand in His holy place, must have clean
hands, and a pure heart, and a lowly mind. The Lord God is
holy. He- has no pleasure in wickedness, neither shall any evil
dwell with Him. Righteousness and judgment are the habitation
of His seat. The sacrifice that He loves is the sacrifice of right-
eousness. He is to be worshipped in the beauty of holiness.
What He requires of man is that he shall do justly, and love mercy,
and walk humbly with his God.
All this, which comes out no doubt with increasing clearness in
the Psalms and Prophets, is already implicit in that earlier claim
made by the religion of Israel, that the true God is on the side of
righteousness, and that to be false to righteousness is to be a trai-
tor to God. In this union of religion and morality neither is sacri-
ficed to the other. Each gains from its union with the other.
The religious idea of God, and the religious emotions which
gather round it, are progressively purified with the growth of moral
ideas ; and morality receives new life and strength when the moral
law is seen to be the unfolding of the character of a Righteous
God, and moral evil is known as ' sin ' against a Personal Being.
The earnest moral protest which in Greece was directed against
the national religion, is found in the Old Testament making com-
mon cause with the national religion against the immoral beliefs of
heathenism. Hence the Jew was not called upon, as the Greek
was, to choose between his religion and his conscience. He never
felt the strain which men feel in the present day when a high and
pure morality seems ranged against religious faith. For the Jew
every advance in moral insight purified, while it justified, that idea
of God, which he believed had come down to him from the
' Father of the Faithful.' His hope of immortality, his faith in the
ultimate triumph of the God of Israel, were alike based upon
the conviction that God is a God of justice and mercy, and that the
62 The Religion of the Incarnation.
Righteous One could not fail His people, or suffer His holy One to
see corruption. Even though with the growth of morality, and the
fuller unfolding of the character of God, there came, like a shadow
cast by light, the deepening consciousness of sin as the barrier
between man and God, the Jew refused to believe that the separa-
tion was forever. Sin was a disease which needed healing, a bond-
age which called for a deliverer, a state of indebtedness from which
man could not free himself. But Israel believed in and looked for-
ward to, with confidence and hope, the Redeemer who should
come to Zion and save His people from their sins.
The final revelation of Christianity came outwardly as a contin-
uation and development of the religion of Israel, and claimed to
be the fulfilment of Israel's hope. It was a ' republication ' of the
highest truth about God which had been realized hitherto. For it
came ' not to destroy, but to fulfil.' God is still the Eternally One,
the Eternally Righteous. Not sacrifice, but holiness, not external
' works,' but inward ' faith,' not the deeds of the law, but the
righteousness which is of God, — this is what He requires. He
is still the God of Israel. But Israel according to the flesh had
ceased to be the Israel of God, and the children of faithful Abra-
ham, in whom, according to the ancient promise, all the families
of the earth should be blessed, are to be gathered from east and
west, and north and south, from circumcised and uncircumcised,
barbarian, Scythian, bond or free, and recognized as one family
under the one Father. If Christianity had been this and this
only, Christ might have claimed to be a great prophet, breaking
. the silence of 400 years, restoring the ancient faith, and truly
interpreting and carrying forward the spirit of the ancient revela-
tion. But He claimed to be more than this. He claimed, as the
Son of God, to be not only the true, but the only Revealer of the
Father. For ' no man knoweth the Father but the Son, and he to
whom the Son shall reveal Him.' What fresh characteristics, then,
has this new revelation to add to the Old Testament teaching
about God? He is still One, the only God. He is perfect
Righteousness, yet as even the older religion knew, a God of
lovingkindness and tender mercy, ' Who wills not the death of
the sinner.' But more than all this, He is now revealed to man
as Infinite Love, the One Father of humanity, Whose only be-
gotten Son is Incarnate and < made man that we may be made
God.' Not one jot or tittle of the old revelation of God, as a
God of Righteousness, is lost or cancelled. The moral teaching is
stern and uncompromising as ever. God's love, which is Himself,
is not the invertebrate amiability, or weak good-naturedness to
ii. The Christian Doctrine of God. 63
which some would reduce it. ' The highest righteousness of the
Old Testament is raised to the completeness of the Sermon on the
Mount.' 1 'The New Testament,' it has been said, 'with all its
glad tidings of mercy, is a severe book.' 2 For the goodness and
the severity of God are, as it were, the convex and the concave in
His moral nature. But what seized upon the imagination of man-
kind as the distinctive revelation of Christianity was the infinite
love and tenderness and compassion of this Righteous God for
sinful man. It was this which shone out in the character of
Christ. He was Very God, with a Divine hatred of evil, yet living
as man among men, revealing the true idea of God, and not only
realizing in His human life the moral ideal of man, but by taking
human nature into Himself setting loose a power of moral regene-
ration, of which the world had never dreamed.
The advance which the Gospel of Christ makes upon the Old
Testament revelation consists, then, not only in the new truth it
teaches as to the character of God, but in the new relation which
it establishes between God and man. So soon as men learn the
Old Testament truth that God is eternally on the side of righteous-
ness, the awe and cringing fear which lie behind heathen reli-
gions, and justify us in calling them superstitions, give place to
trustful confidence, which deepens into faith, and gathers round it
those affections and desires for union with God which find expres-
sion in the book of Psalms. The saints of the Old Testament
could ' rest in the Lord ' and wait for the vindication of His
Righteousness in human life ; they could yearn for His presence
and hope for the day when they should 'see the King in His
beauty.' But they were yet separated \rom Him by the unoblit-
erated fact of sin. Enoch ' walked with God/ Abraham was
called ' the friend of God,' Moses ' the Lord knew face to face,'
David was ' a man after God's own heart,' Daniel ' a man greatly
beloved.' But one and all of these fell short, and necessarily fell
short, of the closeness of that union which is the Christian's birth-
right. In the Gospel, God is revealed as one with man. And
this truth changed the whole attitude and atmosphere of worship.
There was worship still, for humanity was not merged and lost in
Godhead. There is no Christian ring about the statement 3 that
' in Christianity, in the consciousness that he is partaker of the
Divine existence, man no longer sustains the relation of Depend-
ence, but of Love.' Rather the antithesis between dependence
1 Discipline of the Christian Character, p. 85. 2 Ibid., p. 87.
3 Hegel, Phil, of Hist., p. 247, Eng. tr.
64 The Religion of the Incarnation.
and freedom is destroyed. As perfect love casts out fear, yet
leaves reverence, so the consciousness of union with God, as dis-
tinct from absorption in Him, while it destroys the last remnant
of what is servile and degrading in religious emotion, and gives
man freedom, yet gives the freedom of loving dependence upon
God. And by this gift it sets free new affections and appeals to
new motives. It was the assured consciousness of union with
God which gave the first Christians their power in the great moral
struggles of their day. Their moral ideal, with its loftiness, its
purity, its perfect truthfulness, would by its very perfectness have
paralyzed effort, had they not believed that they were one with
Him Who had not only proclaimed but realized it, that they could
do all things through Christ which strengthened them. And the
horror of sin, which was a characteristic note of Christian ethics,
was due to the same fact. Unrighteousness not only, as under
the Old Testament, ranged a man on the side of the enemies of
God, but according to its degree tended to break the supernatural
bond which through the Incarnation united men with God. Im-
purity, which meant so little for the civilized world of the first
Christian centuries, was for the Christian not defilement only, but
sacrilege, for his body was God's temple. The love of the world
was enmity against God ; yet the neglect of social duties, and of all
that is now summed up in the ' service of man,' was for the Chris-
tian ipso facto the declaring himself outside the love of God, just
as, conversely, the love of the brethren was the proof that he had
* passed from death unto life.'
Thus in primitive Christianity the religious and the moral con-
sciousness were at one, as in the Old Testament ; but both are now
raised to their highest level. Free scope is given for the develop-
ment of both and the satisfaction of the demands of both, in Chris-
tian life and Christian worship. Side by side they fought and
triumphed over heathenism, taking up and assimilating all that was
best and truest in non-Christian ethics. And though Christians
were long in learning what manner of spirit they were of, it seemed
as if a real conflict between religion and morals, within the area
of Christianity, was impossible.
And yet again and again, in the history of Christianity, such a
conflict has come about. Every moral reformation within the
Church was a protest of the conscience against unworthy views of
God ; every new Order that was founded was a nursery of moral
reformation. Yet every protest against formalism and unreality in
religion, every attack on ecclesiasticism and 'priestcraft' in the
Church, or on worldliness and laxity in professing Christians, owed
ii. The Christian Doctrine of God. 6$
its strength to the reassertion of the truth, that in the Christian idea
religion and morals are inseparably united. The moral reformer
always claimed Christianity on his side when attacking the Chris-
tianity of his day. This was conspicuously so in the great moral
upheaval of the sixteenth century. In actual fact religion and
morality had separated. And the nearer one got to the centre of
Western Christendom, the more open and unabashed the neglect
of morality was. In Italy of the fifteenth century renaissance we
see, in strange confusion, ' all that we love in art, and all that we
loathe in man.' 1 It seemed as if, as in the old riddle, a swarm
of bees had settled in the dead lion's carcass, and there was sweet-
ness instead of strength, corruption where once was life. When the
new century opened, Borgia was the supreme Bishop of the West,
and the strength of the protest of Christianity against immorality
may be gathered from the list of prices to be paid to the pardoner.
The devout retired from the contest into the severer discipline of
the monastic life, and hoped against hope for the days of a Papa
angelkus, who never came. Yet when the strained relations of
religion and morals resulted in a revolution, it never occurred to
those, who had a moral reformation at heart, to say that religion
was outgrown, and morality must henceforth take its place. They
appealed from the Christianity of the sixteenth century to the
Christianity of Christ. Even of those who, in their fear of popery,
broke away farthest from the Christian idea of God, all, if we
except the Anabaptists, claimed the Bible on their side. It was
a genuine moral revolt against a religion which had come to tol-
erate immorality. The hatred of ' ecclesiasticism ' and ' sacerdotal-
ism ' was not at first a rejection of the Church and the Priesthood,
but a protest against anything which, under the sacred name of
religion, becomes a cover for unreality, or makes sin a thing easy
to be atoned for. The Reformation was a moral protest, and its
results were seen within as well as outside the Roman communion.
The Council of Trent was a reforming Council ; the Jesuits were
the children of the Reformation ; and Roman Christianity, in the
strength of its own moral revival, even in the moment of defeat
became again ' a conquering power.' 2
On the other hand, those whose first impulse was a protest in
favor of a moral religion and a belief in a God who hates ini-
quity, have bequeathed to the world a legacy of immorality of
which they never dreamt, and of which we, in the present day,
are feeling the full effects. Lutheranism starts with the belief
1 Cont. Rev., Oct., 1878, p. 645. 2 Ranke, Popes, i. 395.
S
66 The Religion of the Incarnation.
that God is love; Calvinism with the conception of God as
power. With the former, the desire, at all costs, to guard the belief
in the freedom of God's grace led to a morbid fear of righteous-
ness, as if it were somehow a rival to faith. With the latter,
a one-sided view of the power of God gradually obscured the
fact that righteousness and justice eternally condition its exercise.
If the one was, as history shows us, in constant danger of Antino-
mian developments, the other struck at the root of morality by
making God Himself unjust. Forensic fictions of substitution,
immoral theories of the Atonement, ' the rending asunder of the
Trinity,' and the opposing of the Divine Persons, like parties in
a lawsuit, 1 were the natural corollaries of a theory which taught
that God was above morality, and man beneath it.
How deeply these false views of God have influenced Eng-
lish religious thought is shown by the fact that every attack on
the moral as distinguished from the intellectual position of
Christianity, is demonstrably an attack on that which is not
Christianity, but a mediaeval or modern perversion of it. J. S.
Mill's well-known words, 2 ■ I will call no being good who is not
what I mean when I apply that epithet to my fellow-creatures/
was a noble assertion of ' immutable morality ' against a religion
which, alas ! he mistook for Christianity. The conscience of
to-day — and it is a real gain that it should be so — refuses to
believe that the imprimatur of religion can be given to that
which is not good, or that God would put us to moral confu-
sion. It would rather give up religion altogether than accept
one which will not indorse and advance our highest moral
ideas.
But men do not always stop to make the necessary distinc-
tions. On the one side they see a traditional view of religion
which they cannot harmonize with the highest morality ; on the
other they see a morality, which, though it has grown up under
the shadow and shelter of religion, seems strong enough to stand
alone. And their first thought is, 'Away with religion. We
have outgrown it. Henceforward we will have morals unencum-
bered by religion.' What would be the effect on the morals of
a nation of thus renouncing the/ .religious sanction, it is not safe
to predict. In individuals certainly it sometimes has disastrous
results. But there is one thing which those who talk about the
' secularization of morals ' 3 seldom take into account, and that is
1 Dollinger, The Church and the Churches, p. 239.
2 Examination of Sir W. Hamilton's Philosophy, p. 103.
3 H. Spencer, Data of Ethics, pref.
II. The Christian Doctrine of God. 67
the effect on what, in contrast to morals, they call religion. The
religious consciousness always refuses to be treated as defunct, and
the religious emotions, if they no longer find their object in a God
of Righteousness, and are no longer controlled by morality, will
not be satisfied with the worship of the Unknowable or of ideal-
ized humanity, but will avenge themselves, as they have done again
and again, in superstition. 1
And the attempt to do without religion in morals is as unphiloso-
phical as it is dangerous. It is parallel to what, in the region of
morality proper, we all recognize as a false asceticism. It is the
attempt to crush out, rather than to purify. When men realize the
danger of giving the rein to the animal passions, there are always
to be found moralists who will treat these passions as in themselves
evil, and advocate the suppression of them. And only after an
antinomian revolt against that false teaching do men realize that
morality is not the destruction, but the purification and regulation of
the passions. So with religion and the religious emotions. The func-
tion of morality is to purify the religious idea of God ; and religion
and morality are strong and true in proportion as each uses the
help of the other. But neither can treat the other as subordinate.
God is more than what Kant makes Him, — the ultimate justification
of morality ; morality is more than what some religious people
would have it, — obedience to the positive commands of even God
Himself. In experience we find them separate and even opposed ;
ideally they are one ; united, not confused. Separated, religion
tends to become superstitious ; morality to degenerate into a mere
prudentialism, or at least an expanded utilitarianism. United, reli-
gion gives to right that absolute character which makes it defiant of
consequences ; morality safeguards the idea of God from aught
that is unworthy of the worship of moral beings.
As the result of all the conflicts which have raged round the idea
of God so far as morals are concerned, one truth has burned itself
into the consciousness of both the apologists and opponents of reli-
gion, a truth as old indeed as the religion of Israel, but only slowly
realized in the course of ages, the truth, namely, that the religious
idea of God must claim and justify itself to the highest known
morality ; and no amount of authority, ecclesiastical or civil, will
make men worship an immoral God. And already that truth has
thrown back its light upon questions of Old Testament morality.
1 See Ihne's remarks on the separation of morals and religion in Rome at
the time of the Punic wars. 'The religious cravings were not satisfied, and
men were carried either to the schools of Greek philosophy or to the grossest
and meanest superstition.' — Hist, of Rome, ii. 477, 478.
68 The Religion of the Incarnation.
We no longer say, * It is in the Bible, approved or allowed by God,
and therefore it must be right.' It was this view which, in every
age, has given its protection to religious wars and intolerance and
persecution. But we look back and see in the perspective of his-
tory how God in every age takes man as he is that He may make
him what he is not. We see in the Old Testament not only the
revelation of the Righteousness of God, but the record of the way
in which, in spite of waywardness and disobedience, He raised His
people to the knowledge of the truth.
VI. But the religious idea of God in our day, as in former ages,
is challenged not only by conscience, but by the speculative reason.
And there is a close parallelism between the two conflicts. When
religion and morals are opposed, men naturally say, ' Give us mor-
als ; away with religion.' And the answer is : ' True religion is
moral : that which is not moral is not true ; and morality without
religion will not only leave the religious consciousness unsatisfied,
but fall short of its own true perfection.' So when religion and
philosophy are opposed, men say once more, ' Give us reason ;
away with religion.' And the answer again is : ' True religion is
rational : if it excludes reason, it is self-condemned.' And reason
without religion fails of its object, since, if philosophy can find no
place for religion, it cannot explain man.
But here again nothing is gained by confusing the issue, or deny-
ing the actual fact of the collision. We may say, with Lacordaire,
1 God is the proper name of truth, as truth is the abstract name of
God.' But it is not a matter of indifference from which point we
start, whether with religion we approach God first as a moral Being,
or with philosophy seek for Him as the truth of man and nature.
The motto of Oxford University, Dominus Illuminatio mea, alto-
gether changes its meaning if we read it Illuminatio Dominus mens.
As Reville says, 'A religion may become philosophical, but no
philosophy has ever founded a religion possessing real historical
power.' L And it is a fact patent to the observation of all, that it
is easier to make religion philosophical than to make philosophy in
any real sense religious. The reason of this is obvious. Religion
is not only first in the field, it covers the whole ground before
either morals or science have attained their full development, or
even emerged into conscious life. But when we speak of philoso-
phy, we have reached a stage in which the reason has already
separated itself from, and set itself over against, the religious con-
sciousness, and must either absorb religion into itself (in which case
1 History of Religions, p. 22.
II. The Christian Doctrine of God. 69
religion ceases to be religion) , or must leave religion outside, though
it may borrow and appropriate religious terms. If, then, the idea
of God is to appeal to both the religious consciousness and the
speculative reason, it must be by claiming philosophy for religion,
not by claiming religion for philosophy. It is from within, not
from without, that religion must be defended.
In Greece the traditional polytheism was challenged, as we have
seen, at once on the side both of morals and metaphysics. To
Xenophanes, indeed, the unity of God is even more essential than
His morality, and the attack on anthropomorphism is as much an
attack upon the number of the gods of Hesiod as upon the im-
moral character attributed to them. In the unity, however, which
Xenophanes contends for, the religious idea of God is so atten-
uated that we hardly know whether the One God is a person, or
an abstraction. Indeed, it is hard to see how a champion of
Eleaticism could consistently have held the personality of God, as
we understand it, without falling under his own charge of an-
thropomorphism. In Plato the same difficulty appears, only
complicated or relieved by the fact that while from the moral side
he talks like a theist, from the metaphysical his teaching is pan-
theistic. Is the 'Idea of God' personal? Is it a God we can
love and worship, or only a God we can talk about ? Is the vision
of Er a concession to popular views, or the vehicle of moral and
religious truth ? The question is hardly more easy to decide with
regard to Aristotle. The religious atmosphere, which lingers on
in Plato, has disappeared. What of the religious belief? Did
Aristotle in any intelligible sense hold the personality of God?
Great names are ranged on both sides of the mediaeval con-
troversy. Who shall decide? But whether or no anything of
religion survived in philosophy, it was not strong enough to with-
stand the attack of the moral and the speculative reason, still less
to claim these as its own. It is not on the side of religion, but of
speculation, that we are debtors to the Greeks.
Among the Jews, on the other hand, speculation seems hardly
to have existed. Religion was satisfied to make good her claim
to the region of morals. God was One, and He was Righteous ;
but the mystery which enveloped His nature the Old Testament
does not attempt to fathom. ' Clouds and darkness are round
about Him,' yet out of the thick darkness comes the clear, un-
faltering truth that ' Righteousness and judgment are the habitation
of His seat.' Jewish religion and Greek speculation had little
contact, and less kinship, till the best days of both were passed.
But in the days of the dispersion we get the beginning of the
yo The Religion of the Incarnation.
mingling of those streams which were only united under the higher
unity of Christianity. ' With the Jews of the East/ it has been
said, ' rested the future of Judaism; with them of the West, in a
sense, that of the world. The one represented old Israel, groping
back into the darkness of the past ; the other young Israel, stretch-
ing forth its hands to where the dawn of a new day was about to
break.' x The Septuagint translation threw open to the Greek
world the sacred books of Israel. The Apocrypha, with all its
glorification of Judaism, was both an apology and an eirenicon. 2
It seemed as if in Wisdom personified might be found a middle
term between the religion of Israel and the philosophy of Greece,
and the life of righteousness might be identified with the life of
true wisdom. The Jews of Alexandria were thus willing to find a
strain of truth in Greek philosophy, and Alexandrian Greeks were
found ready ' to spiritualize their sensuous divinities.' 3 But the
result was a compromise, in which the distinctive elements of each
were not harmonized, but lost. There was no fusion as yet of
Jewish and Greek thought, only each was learning to understand
the other, and unconsciously preparing for the higher synthesis of
Christianity.
Whether we think of Christ as the ' Son of Man' or as the Re-
vealer of God, Christianity is bound to transcend national distinc-
tions, and to claim not only the whole of humanity, but the whole
of man, his reason no less than his heart and will. And this
Christ did in a special way. He not only speaks of Himself as
'the Truth,' and as having come 'to bear witness to the Truth,'
but the very complement (if we may say so) of His revelation of
the Father, was the sending ' the Spirit of Truth/ who should teach
His disciples all things. This possession of ' truth ' is always
spoken of by Christ as a future thing, implicit indeed in Himself,
Who is the Truth, but only to be explicitly declared and brought
to remembrance when the Spirit of Truth should come. He was
to guide them ' into all truth.' ' Ye shall know the truth, and the
truth shall make you free.' It was inevitable, then, that the ques-
tion should arise, — Will this religion, which has broken through
the narrowness of Judaism, and yet by its belief in a God of right-
eousness and love combated and triumphed over heathen immoral-
ity, have the power to assimilate and absorb the philosophy of
Greece ? The great crisis in the world's history, as we see it, look-
ing back from the security of eighteen centuries, was this : Will
1 Edersheim, Life and Times, i. 17.
2 See Edersheim, i. 31, etc.
3 Hegel, Philosophy of History, p. 343, Eng. tr.
ii. The Christian Doctrine of God. 71
Christianity, with all its moral triumphs, become a tributary to
Greek philosophy, as represented by the schools of Alexandria, or
will it claim and transform the rational, as it has transformed the
moral, progress of humanity? The answer of Christianity is un-
hesitating. Christianity is truth, and there is only one truth.
Christianity is wisdom, and there is only one wisdom ; for the wis-
dom of the world is not wisdom, but folly. And at once the rival
claim is made. Why not a division of territory? Knowledge for
the philosopher ; faith for the Christian. The Gnostics taught, as
a modern philosopher teaches, that religion is 'reason talking
naively,' and that, good as it is for ordinary people, the Gnostic
can afford to do without it. Every one knows the answer of the
Apostles to the insidious suggestions of Gnosticism. To St. Peter
it is ' a damnable heresy, even denying the Lord Who bought us.' 1
To St. Paul it is the ' science falsely so called ; ' 2 the ' knowledge
which puffs up;' 3 the 'wisdom of this world.' 4 To St. John,
Cerinthus was 'the enemy of the truth.' 5 To St. Polycarp, Mar-
cion is ' the first-born of Satan.' It never occurred to the Apostles,
or the Apologists after them, to retreat into the fastnesses of a
reasonless faith. For with them faith was implicit knowledge, and
the only knowledge that was true.
It was the collision of Christianity with Greek thought which
gave rise to Christian theology in the strict sense of the term. Its
necessity was the claiming of Greek as well as Jew ; its justification
was the belief in the presence of the Spirit of truth ; its impulse the
desire ' to know the things which are freely given to us by God.' 6
The first Christians were not theologians. They were ' unlearned
and ignorant men.' When Christ preached, the common people
heard Him gladly, the publicans and the harlots believed Him, the
poor found in His teaching ' good news,' and a few fishermen
devoted their lives to Him. But the Scribes and Pharisees stood
aloof; and the rationalistic Sadducees asked Him captious ques-
tions ; and the Herodians, the Erastians of the day, tried to involve
Him with the secular power. It was only when challenged by an
earnest, but non-religious philosophy, that reason came forward, in
the strength of the Spirit of truth, to interpret to itself and to the
world the revelation of Christ. Religion and theology in different
ways have to do with the knowledge of God and of spiritual truth.
They have the same object, God, but their aims and their methods
are different. Religion knows God ; theology is concerned with
1 2 St. Pet. ii. 1. 2 1 Tim. vi. 20. 8 1 Cor. viii. 6.
4 I Cor. iii. 19. 5 Euseb. iii. 28. 6 1 Cor. ii. 12.
72 The Religion of the Incarnation,
the idea of God. Religion sees ; theology thinks. Religion begins
and ends in an almost instinctive attitude of worship ; theology
rationalizes and defines the characteristics of the Object of worship.
As reason seeks to interpret feeling, so theology interprets religion.
It makes explicit what is implicit in religion. ' As the intellect is
cultivated and expanded, it cannot refrain from the attempt to
analyze the vision which influences the heart, and the object in
which it centres ; nor does it stop till it has, in some sort, suc-
ceeded in expressing in words, what has all along been a principle
both of the affections and of practical obedience.' * It takes the
facts which the religious consciousness has seized, seeks to bring
them into distinctness before the mental vision, to connect them
with one another in a coherent system, and find in them the explan-
ation and unity of all that is. Christian theology grows naturally
out of the Christian religion. But religion is a divine life ; theol-
ogy a divine science.
This explains the fact that though both religion and theology
have to do with the knowledge of God, and ideally work in per-
fect harmony, yet they are often found opposed. Theology is
always in danger of becoming unreal. What is an interpretation
for one age becomes a tongue not understanded ' in the next.
Hence when a revival of religious life comes, it frequently shows
itself in an attack on the received theology. Theology is no
longer regarded as the scientific expression of the very truths
which religion values ; it is conceived of as the antithesis of
religion, and reformers dream of a new theology which shall be
for them what, though they know it not, the old theology was to
their predecessors, the handmaid and guardian of religious truth.
When Martin Luther said that ' an old woman who reads her Bible
in the chimney-corner knows more about God than the great
doctors of theology,' he was emphasizing the severance which in
his day had come to exist between a religious life and theological
orthodoxy. And when in his ' Table Talk ' he says, ' A jurist may
be a rogue, but a theologian must be a man of piety,' he touches
a real truth. A hundred years later, amid the confusions and
unrealities of the seventeenth century, John Smith, 2 the Cambridge
Platonist, said the same. ' They are not always the best skilled in
divinity,' he says, ' that are most studied in those pandects into
which it is sometimes digested.' ' Were I to define divinity, I
should rather call it a divine life than a divine science.'' Techni-
1 Newman's Arians, ch. ii. § i.
2 Natural Truth of Christianity, §§ I, 2.
II. The Christian Doctrine of God. 73
cally, no doubt, he was wrong, for theology is a science, and not a
life ; but, like Luther, he was vindicating the truth that it is possible
for quite simple people to know God, though they have no knowl-
edge of theology, and that theology, when it becomes speculative
and abstract, ceases to be theology. A theologian, as Mazzini says
of an artist, ' must be a high-priest or a charlatan.'
But the world dislikes a high-priest, and good people dislike a
charlatan. And the consequence is that theology, ancient or mod-
ern, is attacked from two very different points of view, by those
who look upon it as the antithesis of 'the simple Gospel,' and
by those who approach it from the side of speculative thought.
Theology claims to be a divine science. Religious people attack
it because it is a science ; philosophers because it claims to be
divine. To the former, religion expressed in rational terms ceases
to be religion ; to the latter, that science is no science which
claims for itself unique conditions. Yet St. Paul seems to recognize
both the necessity and the uniqueness of theology when he says
to the Greeks of Corinth, 'We received not the spirit of the
world, but the spirit which is of God, that we might know the
things that are freely given us by God.'
It is the relation of Christian theology to philosophy and science
with which we are specially concerned. But it is impossible to
pass by the objection to theology which comes as it were ab i?itra
from the side of religion. For if it is valid, then Christianity may
as well give up at once any idea of being the religion of man.
Yet people say, 'Why have a theology? Human reason cannot
search out " the deep things of God ; " it will only put new difficul-
ties in a brother's way : why not rest content with the words of
Holy Scripture, with simple truths like " God is love," and simple
duties like " Love one another," and leave theology alone ? ? Now,
without denying what George Eliot calls 'the right of the indi-
vidual to general haziness,' or asserting that every Christian must
be a theologian, we may surely say that Christianity is bound to
have a theology. And even individual Christians, if they ever
grow into the manhood of reason, must have a theology or cease
to be religious. The protest against theology from the side of
religion looks modest and charitable enough till we remember that
religious haziness is generally, if not always, the outcome of moral
laziness ; that it implies the neglect of a duty and the neglect of a
gift, — the duty of realizing to the reason the revelation of Christ,
and the gift of the Spirit of Truth to enable us to do it. More
than this, the protest against theology in the interests of religion is
irrational and suicidal. To tell a thinking man that he need not
74 The Religion of the Incarnation.
interpret to his reason what religion tells him of God, is like saying
to him, ' Be religious if you will, but you need not let your re-
ligion influence your conduct.' If Christianity had been content
to be a moral religion, if it had abandoned its claim to rationality
and had left Greek speculation alone, it must have accepted either
the Gnostic division of territory, or recognized an internecine
conflict between religion and philosophy. And it did neither ; but,
under the guidance of the Spirit of Truth, Christian theology arose
and claimed the reason of the ancient world.
Thus as the religion of the Old Testament claims morality for
God, so Christianity goes farther and claims to hold the key to the
intellectual problems of the world. So far as the nature of God is
concerned, Christianity met the intellectual difficulties of the first
centuries by the Doctrine of the Trinity.
From time to time people make the discovery that the doctrine
of the Trinity is older than Christianity. If the discoverer is a
Christian apologist, he usually explains that God has given antici-
patory revelations to men of old, and points out how they fall
short of the revelation of Christianity. If he is an opponent of
Christianity, he triumphantly claims to have unmasked the doctrine
and tracked it down to a purely natural origin. ' People think,'
says Hegel, ' that by pronouncing a doctrine to be Neo-Platonic,
they have ipso facto banished it from Christianity.' * Men have
found the doctrine, or something like it, not only in the Old Tes-
tament, but in Plato and Neo-Platonism, and among the Ophite
Gnostics, in the Chinese Tao-T^-Ching and the { Three Holy
Ones ' of Bouddhism, in the Tri-murti of Hinduism, and else-
where. Why not ? Revelation never advances for itself the claim
which its apologists sometimes make for it, — the claim to be some-
thing absolutely new. A truth revealed by God is never a truth out
of relation with previous thought. He leads men to feel their
moral and intellectual needs before He satisfies either. There
was a preparation for Hebrew monotheism, as there was a prepara-
tion for the Gospel of Christ. There was an intellectual prepara-
tion for the doctrine of the Trinity, as there was a moral preparation
for the doctrine of the Incarnation. If the Christian doctrine of
the Incarnation is distinguished from the avatars of Hinduism,
and the incarnations of Thibetan Lamaism, by its regenerative moral
force, the Christian doctrine of the Trinity is no less distinguished
from the pseudo-trinities of Neo-Platonism and its modern devel-
opments by the fact that for eighteen centuries it has been the
1 Phil, of Hist., p. 343, Eng. tr.
II. The Christian Doctrine of God. 75
safeguard of a pure Monotheism against everything which menaces
the life of religion.
But Christian theology is not " a philosophy without assump-
tions." It does not attempt to prove sola ratione the doctrine of
the Trinity, but to show how that which reason demands is met
and satisfied by the Christian doctrine of God. Starting with the
inheritance of faith, the belief in the Divinity of Christ, and trust-
ing in the guidance of the Spirit of Truth, it throws itself boldly
into the rational problem, fights its way through every form of
Unitarianism, and interprets its faith to itself and to the world
at large in the doctrine of the Triune God. Its charter is the
formula of Baptism, where the " treasures of immediate faith are
gathered up into a sentence, though not yet formulated into a
doctrine." x
To the Greek mind two things had become clear before Chris-
tianity came into the world, and it would be easy to trace the
steps by which the conclusions were reached. First, Reason, as
relation-giving, seeks for unity in the manifoldness of which it is
conscious, and will be satisfied with nothing less. But Eleaticism
had convincingly proved that an abstract unity can explain noth-
ing. Quite apart from questions of religion and morals, the
Eleatic unity was metaphysically a failure. Plato had seen this,
and yet the ' dead hand ' of Eleaticism rested on Platonism, and
the dialogue Parmenides showed how powerless the Doctrine of
Ideas was to evade the difficulty. Thus the Greeks more than
2000 years ago had realized, what is nowadays proclaimed as if
it were a new discovery, that an absolute unit is unthinkable,
because, as Plato puts it in the Philebus, the union of the one and
the many is ' an everlasting quality in thought itself which never
grows old in us.' The Greeks, like the Jews, had thus had their
* schoolmaster to bring them to Christ.' They had not solved,
but they had felt, the rational difficulty ; as the Jews had felt, but
had not overcome, except through the Messianic hope, the separ-
ation of man from God. But as the Trinitarian doctrine took
shape, Christian teachers realized how the Christian, as opposed
to the Jewish, idea of God, not only held the truth of the Divine
Unity as against all polytheistic religions, but claimed reason on
its side against all unitarian theories. They did not, however,
argue that it was true because it satisfied reason, but that it
satisfied reason because it was true.
They started, indeed, not with a metaphysical problem to be
1 Dorner, Hist, of Doct., i. 362, etc.
y6 Tlie Religion of the Incarnation.
solved, but with a historical fact to proclaim, the fact of the
Resurrection, and a doctrinal truth to maintain, the Divinity of
Him who rose. And starting from that basis of fact revealed in
Christ, they found themselves in possession of an answer to diffi-
culties which at first they had not felt, and thus their belief was
justified and verified in the speculative region.
The truth for which they contended, which was enshrined in
their sacred writings, was that ' the Father is God, the Son is God,
and the Holy Ghost is God. And yet they are not three Gods,
but one God.' But the Fathers do not treat this doctrine merely
as a revealed mystery, still less as something which complicates the
simple teaching of Monotheism, but as the condition of rationally
holding the Unity of God. ' The Unity which derives the Trinity
out of its own self,' says Tertullian, ' so far from being destroyed,
is actually supported by it.' 1 'We cannot otherwise think of
One God,' says Hippolytus, ' but by truly believing in Father, and
Son, and Holy Ghost' 2 'The supreme and only God,' says Lac-
tantius, ' cannot be worshipped except through the Son. He who
thinks that he worships the Father only, in that he does not wor-
ship the Son also, does not worship the Father.' 3 ' Without the
Son the Father is not,' says Clement of Alexandria, 'for in that
He is a Father He is the Father of the Son, and the Son is the
true teacher about the Father,' 4 So Origen argues : If God had
ever existed alone in simple unity and solitary grandeur, apart from
some object upon which from all eternity to pour forth His love,
He could not have been always God. His love, His Father-
hood, His very omnipotence would have been added in time,
and there would then have been a time when He was imperfect.
' The Fatherhood of God must be coeval with His omnipotence ;
for it is through the Son that the Father is Almighty.' 5 This
was the line of argument afterwards developed by St. Athana-
sius when he contended against the Arians, that the Son was the
reality or truth 6 of the Father, without whom the Father could not
exist ; and by St. Augustine, when he argues that love implies one
who loves and one who is loved, and love to bind them together. 7
Even one so unphilosophically minded as Irenseus 8 cannot but
see in the Christian doctrine of the relation of the Father and the
Son the solution of the difficulty about the infinity of God : ' Im-
mensus Pater in Filio mensuratus ; mensura Patris Filius.' W T hile
1 Adv. Prax., ch. iii. 5 De Princ, I. ii. § 10.
2 Cont. Noet., § xiv. 6 Adv. Arianos, i. § 20.
3 Inst., iv. c. 29. 7 De Trin., viii. 10, and ix. 2.
4 Strom., v. 1. 8 Iren., Adv. Hzer., IV. iv. 1, 2.
ii. The Christian Doctrme of God. 77
philosophy, with increasing hopelessness, was asking, How can we
have a real unity which shall be not a barren and dead unity, but
shall include differences? Christianity, with its doctrine of God,
was arguing that that which was an unsolved contradiction for
non-Christian thought, was a necessary corollary of the Christian
Faith. 1
The other truth which Greek thought had realized was the
immanence of reason in nature and in man. When Anaxagoras
first declared that the universe was the work of intelligence, we are
told that he seemed Mike a sober man among random talkers.'
But both Plato and Aristotle accuse him of losing the truth which
he had gained, because he made intelligence appear only on occa-
sions in the world, dragged in, like a stage-god, when naturalistic
explanations failed. 2 The conception of creation out of nothing
was of course unknown to Anaxagoras. Intelligence is only the
arranger of materials already given in a chaotic condition. With
Aristotle, too, it is reason which makes everything what it is. But
the reason is in things, not outside them. Nature is rational from
end to end. In spite of failures and mistakes, due to her mate-
rials, nature does the best she can and always aims at a good end. 3
She works like an artist with an ideal in view. 4 Only there is this
marked difference : Nature has the principle of growth within
herself, while the artist is external to his materials. 5 Here we have
a clear and consistent statement of the doctrine of immanent
reason as against the Anaxagorean doctrine of a transcendent
intelligence. If we translate both into the theological language of
our own day, we should call the latter the rieistic, the former the
pantheistic, view ; or, adopting a distinction of supreme impor-
tance in the history of science, we might say that we have here,
face to face, the mechanical and the organic view of nature. Both
were teleological ; but to the one reason was an extra-mundane
cause, to the other an internal principle. It was the contrast
between external and inner design, as we know it in Kant and
Hegel ; between the teleology of Paley and the ' wider teleology '
of Darwin, and Huxley, and Fiske ; between the transcendent and
immanent views of God, when so held as to be mutually exclusive.
It is these two one-sided views which the Christian doctrine
of God brings together. Religion demands as the very condition
of its existence a God who transcends the universe ; philosophy
as imperiously requires His immanence in nature. If either
1 Cf. pp. 278-281. 2 Plat., Pha?d., 98 B. ; Arist., Met. A., 4.
3 P. 455 b i7- The references are to the Berlin edition.
* P. 199*8, 18; 4i5 b i7 ; 73 ia2 4- 5 ?• 1070*7, 1033^8, 753*3.
7 3 The Religion of the Incarnation.
Religion denies God's immanence, or Philosophy denies that He
transcends the universe, there is an absolute antagonism between
the two which can only be ended by the abandonment of one or
the other. But what we find is, that though Philosophy (meaning
by that the exercise of the speculative reason in abstraction from
morals, and religion), the more fully it realizes the immanence of
God, the more it tends to deny the transcendence, religion not
only has no quarrel with the doctrine of immanence, but the
higher the religion, the more unreservedly it asserts this immanence
as a truth dear to religion itself. The religious equivalent for
' immanence ' is ' omnipresence,' and the omnipresence of God is
a corollary of a true monotheism. As long as any remains of
dualism exist, there is a region, however small, impervious to the
Divine power. But the Old Testament doctrine of creation, by
excluding dualism, implies from the first, if it does not teach, the
omnipresence of God. For the omnipotence of God underlies
the doctrine of creation, and omnipotence involves omnipresence.
Hence we find the Psalmists and Prophets ascribing natural
processes immediately to God. They know nothing of second
causes. The main outlines of natural science, the facts of genera-
tion and growth, are familiar enough to them, yet every fact is
ascribed immediately to the action of God. He makes the grass
to grow upon the mountains ; He fashions the child in the womb ;
He feeds the young ravens ; He provides fodder for the cattle ;
He gives to all their meat in due season ; when He lets His
breath go forth, they are made ; when He takes away their breath,
they die and return to dust.
This doctrine of the omnipresence of God, as conceived by
religion, had however yet to be fused with the philosophical doc-
trine of immanence. And here again the fusion was effected by
the Christian doctrine of God, as Trinity in Unity. The earlier
Apologists concern themselves first with the vindication of the
Divine attributes, — God's separateness from the world as against
Greek Pantheism, His omnipresence in it as against a Judaizing
deism. But the union of God's transcendence with His imma-
nence, and with it the fusion of the religious with the philo-
sophic idea of God, is only consciously completed by the Doctrine
of the Trinity. 1 The dying words of Plotinus, expressing as they
did the problem of his life, are said to have been: 'I am
striving to bring the God which is within into harmony with the
God which is in the universe.' And the unsolved problem of
1 Dorner, Hist, of Doct., i. 366.
it. The Christian Doctrine of God. 79
Neo-Platonism, which is also the unsolved problem of non-Chris-
tian philosophy in our day, is met by the Christian doctrine of
God. All and more than all that philosophy and science can
demand, as to the immanence of reason in the universe, and the
rational coherence of all its parts, is included in the Christian
teaching : nothing which religion requires as to God's separateness
from the world, which He has made, is left unsatisfied. The old
familiar Greek term AOTOS which, from the days of Heracleitus,
had meant to the Greek the rational unity and balance of the
world, is taken up by St. John, by St. Clement, by St. Athanasius,
and given a meaning which those who started from the Philonian
position never reached. It is the personal Word, God of God,
the Only Begotten of the Father, who is one in the Holy Spirit
with the Father. ' The Word was God.' * By Him all things
were made.' ' He the All-powerful, All-holy Word of the Father
spreads His power over all things everywhere, enlightening things
seen and unseen, holding and binding all together in Himself.
Nothing is left empty of His presence, but to all things and
through all, severally and collectively, He is the giver and sus-
tainer of life. . . . He, the Wisdom of God, holds the universe
like a lute, and keeps all things in earth and air and heaven in
tune together. He it is Who binding all with each, and ordering
all things by His will and pleasure, produces the perfect unity of
nature, and the harmonious reign of law. While He abides un-
moved forever with the Father, He yet moves all things by His
own appointment according to the Father's will.' 1 The unity of
nature is, thus, no longer the abstract .motionless simplicity of
Being, which had been so powerless to explain the metaphysical
problems of Greece. It is the living Omnipresent Word, co-
eternal and consubstantial with the Father, and the philosophical
truth becomes an integral part of that Christian doctrine of God,
which, while it safeguarded religion and satisfied reason, had won
its first and greatest victories in the field of morals.
VII. The Christian doctrine of God triumphed over heathen
morality and heathen speculation neither by unreasoning protest
nor by unreal compromise, but by taking up into itself all that was
highest and truest in both. Why then is this Christian idea of
God challenged in our day? Have we outgrown the Christian
idea of God, so that it cannot claim and absorb the new truths of
our scientific age? If not, with the lessons of the past in our
mind, we may confidently ask, — What fuller unfolding of the
1 St. Athan., Contra Gentes, § 42.
8o The Religion of the Incarnation.
revelation of Himself has God in store for us, to be won, as in the
past, through struggle and seeming antagonism ?
The fact that the Christian Theology is now openly challenged
by reason is obvious enough. It almost seems as if, in our intel-
lectual life, we were passing through a transition analogous to that
which, in the moral region, issued in the Reformation. Even
amongst those who believe that Christian morality is true, there
are to be found those who have convinced themselves that we
have intellectually outgrown the Christian Faith. 'The only God,'
we have been told lately, 1 'whom Western Europeans, with a
Christian ancestry of a thousand years behind them, can worship,
is the God of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob ; or rather, of St. Paul,
St. Augustine, and St. Bernard, and of the innumerable " blessed
saints," canonized or not, who peopled the ages of Faith. No
one wants, no one can care for, an abstract God, an Unknowable,
an Absolute, with whom we stand in no human or intelligible
relation.' ' God, as God,' says Feuerbach, 2 ' the infinite, universal,
non-anthropomorphic being of the understanding, has no more
significance in religion than a fundamental general principle has
for a special science ; it is merely the ultimate point of support,
as it were, the mathematical point of religion.' Yet it is assumed
that this is all that remains to us, and we are left in the following
dilemma : ' An anthropomorphic God is the only God whom
men can worship, and also the God whom modern thought finds it
increasingly difficult to believe in.' 3
In such a state of things it is natural that men should turn to
pantheism as a sort of middle term between religion and phi-
losophy, and even claim, for the unity of the world, the venerable
name and associations of God. But the remarkable thing is that
in the numberless attempts to attack, or defend, or find a substi-
tute for Theism, the Christian, or Trinitarian, teaching about God
rarely appears upon the scene. Devout Christians have come to
think of the doctrine of the Trinity, if not exactly as a distinct
revelation, yet as a doctrine necessary for holding the divinity of
Christ without sacrificing the unity of God. Ordinary people
take it for granted that Trinitarianism is a sort of extra demand
made on Christian faith, and that the battle must really be fought
out on the unitarian basis. If unitarian theism can be defended,
it will then be possible to go farther and accept the doctrine of
the Trinity. It is natural that when Christians take this ground,
1 Morison, Service of Man, p. 48.
2 Quoted by W. S. Lilly, Nineteenth Century, Aug., 1888, p. 292.
8 Morison, Service of Man, p. 49.
II. The CJiristian Doctrine of God. 8 1
those who have ceased to be Christian suppose that, though Chris-
tianity is no longer tenable, they may still cling to ' Theism,' and
even perhaps, under cover of that nebulous term, make an alliance
not only with Jews and Mahommedans, but with at least the more
religious representatives of pantheism. It is only our languid
interest in speculation or a Philistine dislike of metaphysics, that
makes such an unintelligent view possible. Unitarianism said its
last word in the pre-Christian and early Christian period, and it
failed, as it fails now, to save religion except at the cost of reason.
So far from the doctrine of the Trinity being, in Mr. Gladstone's
unfortunate phrase, ' the scaffolding of a purer theism,' non-Chris-
tian monotheism was the ' scaffolding ' through which already the
outlines of the future building might be seen. For the modern
world, the Christian doctrine of God remains as the only safeguard
in reason for a permanent theistic belief. 1
It is not difficult to see how it is that this truth is not more
generally recognized. The doctrine of the Trinity, by which the
Christian idea of God absorbed Greek speculation into itself, had
but little point cTappui in the unmetaphysical western world. It
bore the hnpri7natur of the Church ; it was easily deducible from
the words of Holy Scripture ; it was seen to be essential to the
holding of the divinity of Christ. But men forgot that the doc-
trine was ' addressed to the reason ; ' 2 and so its metaphysical
meaning and value were gradually lost sight of. In the days of
the mediaeval Papacy, ecclesiastical were more effective than
metaphysical weapons, and Scholasticism knew so much about the
deepest mysteries of God that it almost provoked an agnostic
reaction, in the interests of reverence and' intellectual modesty.
With the Reformation came the appeal to the letter of Holy
Scripture, and the age of biblical, as contrasted with scientific,
theology. The only scientific theology of the Reformation period
1 It is far from our purpose to undervalue the work of Dr. Martineau.
No more earnest and vigorous, and so far as it goes, no truer defence of
religion has been published in our day. But his strength lies mainly in his
protest against what destroys religion, and in his uncompromising assertion
of what religion, as a condition of its existence, demands. He has done
little to show us how these demands can be rationally satisfied, how the
personal God, which religion demands, is even an intelligible idea. He
wavers between a view which logically developed must result in pantheism,
and a view implying a distinction in the Divine nature, which carries him
far in the Trinitarian direction. More often he contents himself with leav-
ing the speculative question alone, or storming the rational position by the
forces of religion and morals. See A Study of Religion, vol. ii. p. 145, com-
pared with p. 192.
2 Newman's Arians, p. 84.
6
82 The Religion of the Incarnation.
was the awful and immoral system of John Calvin, rigorously
deduced from a one-sided truth.
Then came the age of physical science. The break-up of the
mediaeval system of thought and life resulted in an atomism, which,
if it had been more perfectly consistent with itself, would have
been fatal alike to knowledge and society. Translated into science
it appeared as mechanism in the Baconian and Cartesian physics ;
translated into politics it appeared as rampant individualism,
though combined by Hobbes with Stuart absolutism. Its theory
of, knowledge was a crude empiricism; its theology unrelieved
deism. God was ' throned in magnificent inactivity in a remote
corner of the universe,' and a machinery of ' second causes ' had
practically taken His place. It was even doubted, in the deistic
age, whether God's delegation of His power was not so absolute
as to make it impossible for Him to ' interfere ' with the laws of
nature. The question of miracles became the burning question
of the day, and the very existence of God was staked on His
power to interrupt or override the laws of the universe. Mean-
while His immanence in nature, the 'higher pantheism,' which is
a truth essential to true religion, as it is to true philosophy, fell
into the background.
Slowly but surely that theory of the world has been undermined.
The one absolutely impossible conception of God, in the present
day, is that which represents Him as an occasional Visitor. Science
had pushed the deist's God farther and farther away, and at the
moment when it seemed as if He would be thrust out altogether,
Darwinism appeared, and, under the disguise of a foe, did the
work of a friend. It has conferred upon philosophy and religion
an inestimable benefit, by showing us that we must choose between
two alternatives. Either God is everywhere present in nature, or
He is nowhere. He cannot be here, and not there. He cannot
delegate His power to demigods called ' second causes.' 1 In
nature everything must be His work or nothing. We must frankly
return to the Christian view of direct Divine agency, the imma-
nence of Divine power in nature from end to end, the belief in
a God in Whom not only we, but all things have their being, or
we must banish Him altogether. It seems as if, in the providence
of God, the mission of modern science was to bring home to our
unmetaphysical ways of thinking the great truth of the Divine
immanence in creation, which is not less essential to the Christian
idea of God than to a philosophical view of nature. And it comes
1 Cf. Fiske, Idea of God, pp. 103, 104; Martineau, A Stud)'' of Religion,
ii. 172, 173.
ii. The Christian Doctrine of God. &$
to us almost like a new truth, which we cannot at once fit in with
the old.
Yet the conviction that the Divine immanence must be for our
age, as for the Athanasian age, the meeting-point of the religious
and philosophic view of God is showing itself in the most thought-
ful minds on both sides. Our modes of thought are becoming
increasingly Greek, and the flood, which in our day is surging up
against the traditional Christian view of God, is prevailingly pan-
theistic in tone. The pantheism is not less pronounced because
it comes as the last word of a science of nature, for the wall which
once separated physics from metaphysics has given away, and
positivism, when it is not the paralysis of reason, is but a tem-
porary resting-place, preparatory to a new departure. We are not
surprised then that one who, like Professor Fiske, holds that ' the
infinite and eternal Power that is manifested in every pulsation of
the universe is none other than the living God,' and who vindi-
cates the belief in a final cause because he cannot believe that ' the
Sustainer of the universe will put us to permanent intellectual con-
fusion,' should instinctively feel his kinship with Athanasianism,
and vigorously contend against the view that any part of the
universe is ' Godless.' 1
Unfortunately, however, the rediscovery of the truth of God's
immanence in nature, coming, as it has done, from the side of a
scientific theory which was violently assailed by the official guar-
dians of the Faith, has resulted for many in the throwing aside of
the counter and conditioning truth, which saves religion from pan-
theism. It seemed as if traditional Christianit," were bound up with
the view that God is wholly separate from the world and not im-
manent in it. And Professor Fiske has been misled 2 into the
belief that St. Augustine is responsible for that false view. It is
almost incredible to any one who has read any of St. Augustine's
writings, that, according to this view, he has to play the role of the
unintelligent and unphilosophical deist, who thinks of God as
1 a crudely anthropomorphic Being, far removed from the universe,
and accessible only through the mediating offices of an organized
church.' 3 And not only is St. Augustine represented as a deist,
but St. Athanasius is made a pantheist, and the supposed conflict
between science and religion is, we are told, really the conflict
between Athanasian and Augustinian ideas of God. 4 Yet, as a
matter of fact, St. Athanasius and St. Augustine both alike held the
1 Idea of God, cf. § v. and pp. 105-110.
2 Apparently by Professor's Allen's Continuity of Christian Thought.
3 Fiske, Idea of God, p. 94. 4 Ibid., § vii.
84 The Religion of the Incarnation.
truths which deism and pantheism exaggerate into the destruction
of religion. If St. Athanasius says, ' The Word of God is not
contained by anything, but Himself contains all things. . . . He
was in everything and was outside all beings, and was at rest in
the Father alone ' x : St. Augustine says, ' The same God is wholly
everywhere, contained by no space, bound by no bonds, divisible
into no parts, mutable in no part of His being, filling heaven and
earth by the presence of His power. Though nothing can exist
without Him, yet nothing is what He is.' 2
The Christian doctrine of God, in Athanasian days, triumphed
where Greek philosophy failed. It accepted the challenge of
Greek thought, it recognized the demands of the speculative
reason, and found in itself the answer which, before the collision
with Hellenism, it unconsciously possessed. It is challenged
again by the metaphysics of our day. We may be wrong to
speculate at all on the nature of God, but it is not less true now
than in the first centuries of Christianity, that, for those who do
speculate, a Unitarian, or Arian, or Sabellian theory is as impossible
as polytheism. If God is to be Personal, as religion requires,
metaphysics demands still a distinction in the Unity which unitari-
anism is compelled to deny. But, further, the Christian doctrine
of God is challenged by the science of nature. Science, imperi-
ously and with increasing confidence, demands a unity in nature
which shall be not external but immanent, giving rationality and
coherence to all that is, and justifying the belief in the universal
reign of law. But this immanence of God in nature unitarian
theism cannot give, save at the price of losing itself in pantheism.
Deistic it might be, as it was in the last century ; deistic it can
be no longer, unless it defiantly rejects the truth which science is
giving us, and the claims which the scientific reason makes.
It remains then for Christianity to claim the new truth and meet
the new demands by a fearless reassertion of its doctrine of God.
It has to bring forth out of its treasury things new and old, — the
old, almost forgotten truth of the immanence of the Word, the
belief in God as ' creation's secret force,' illuminated and con-
firmed as that is by the advance of science, till it comes to us with
all the power of a new discovery. Slowly and under the shock of
controversy Christianity is recovering its buried truths, and realizing
the greatness of its rational heritage. It teaches still that God is
the eternally existent One, the Being on Whom we depend, and in
1 De Incarn., c. 17.
2 De Civ. Dei, vii. c. xxx. ; cf. too De Gen. ad lit, iv. c. 12 ; Enchir.
ad Laur., c. 27.
ii. The Christian Doctrine of God, 85
Whom we live, the source of all reality, and the goal to which
creation moves, the Object alike of religion and philosophy, the
eternal Energy of the natural world, and the immanent Reason of
the universe. It teaches that He is the eternally Righteous One,
and therefore the Judge of all, irrevocably on the side of right,
leading the world by a progressive preparation for the revelation of
Himself as Infinite Love in the Incarnation of the Word, stimu-
lating those desires which He alone can satisfy, the yearning of the
heart for love, of the moral nature for righteousness, of the specu-
lative reason for truth. When men had wearied themselves in the
search for a remedy for that which separates men from God, the
revelation is given of Him Who ' shall save His people from their
sins.' And when reason had wandered long, seeking for that
which should be Real and yet One, a God Who should satisfy alike
the demands of religion and reason, the doctrine of the Trinity is
unfolded. It was the gradual revelation of God answering to the
growing needs and capacity of man.
VIII. It follows from the point of view adopted in the foregoing
essay that there can be no proofs, in the strict sense of the word, of
the existence of God. Reason has for its subject-matter the pro-
blem of essence, not of existence, the question, ' What is God?'
not ' Is there a God ? ' Proof can only mean verification a posteriori
of a truth already held. We approach the problem with an un-
reasoned consciousness of dependence on a Being or Beings who
are to us invisible. This we interpret crudely, or leave uninter-
preted. The belief may express itself in ancestor worship, or
nature worship, or what not. But as oar moral and intellectual
nature develops, its light is turned back upon this primitive unde-
fined belief. Conscience demands that God shall be moral ; and
with the belief that He is, there come confidence and trust, deep-
ening into faith and hope and love : the speculative reason demands
that God shall be One, the immanent unity of all that is. And the
doctrine of God which is best able to satisfy each and all of these
demands persists as the permanent truth of religion. But neither
conscience nor the speculative reason can demonstrate 1 God's
existence. And it is always possible for men to carry their distrust
of that which is instinctive so far as to assume that it is always
false because they have found that it is not always true. Reason
cannot prove existence. The so-called proof a contingentia
(which underlies H. Spencer's argument for the existence of the
1 St. Thos. Aq., Sum. Theol., I. i. Quaest. 2, says that the Existence of God
is demonstrable ; but he explains that he does not mean strict demonstration,
demonstratio apodeictica, but demonstratio ab effectibus.
86 The Religion of the Incarnation.
Unknowable), is an appeal to that very consciousness of depend-
ence which some people consider a weakness and a thing to edu-
cate themselves out of. The appeal to the consensus gentium can
establish only the generality, not the strict universality, of religion.
It will always be possible to find exceptions, real or apparent, to
the general rule ; while as for what is known as the ontological
argument, which on principles of reason would justify the instinc-
tive belief, it requires a metaphysical training to understand it, or
at least to feel its force. There remain, however, the two great
arguments from conscience and from nature, which are so fre-
quently discussed in the present day.
With regard to the first, there is no doubt that the belief in God
will in any age find its strongest corroboration in the conscience.
Even in the mind of a Felix the ideas of * righteousness, temper-
ance, and judgment to come ' had a strange and terrifying cohe-
rence. There is that much of truth in the statement that religion
is founded in ' fear.' But the argument from conscience has been
weakened by being overstated. Conscience, as we know it, has
won, not indeed its existence, but the delicacy of its moral touch,
and the strength of its ' categorical imperative,' from the assured
belief in a real relationship between man and a holy and loving
God. When that belief has ceased to exist, conscience still sur-
vives, and it is possible and justifiable to appeal to it as a fact
which can be explained by religion, but without religion must be
explained away. But it is a mistake to suppose that we can take
the untrained and undeveloped conscience, and argue direct from
it to a righteous God. The lumen naturale, in its lowest develop-
ment, gives but a faint and flickering gleam. We cannot argue
back from it to a God of love, or even a God of righteousness,
unless we interpret it in the fuller light of the conscience which
has been trained and perfected under the growing influence of the
belief. The idea of ' duty,' which is so hard to explain on utilita-
rian grounds, is not to be found, as we know it, in Greek ethics.
For it implies a fusion of morals with religion as we can trace, it in
the history of Israel, and the teaching of Christian ethics. If it
is impossible to explain duty as the result of association between
the ideas of public and private advantage, it is no less impossible
to make it an independent premise for a conclusion which is pre-
supposed in it.
The argument from nature is closely parallel. It is hard for those
whose lives have been moulded on the belief in God, the Maker of
heaven and earth, to understand the inconclusiveness of the argu-
ment to those who have abandoned that belief, and start, as it were,
II. The Christian Doctrine of God. Sj
from outside. Consequently it has been made to bear more than
it can carry. No doubt the evolution which was at first supposed
to have destroyed teleology is found to be more saturated with tele-
ology than the view which it superseded. And Christianity can
take up the new as it did the old, and find in it a confirmation of
its own belief. But it is a confirmation, not a proof, and taken by
itself is incomplete. It is a great gain to have eliminated chance,
to find science declaring that there must be a reason for everything,
even when it cannot hazard a conjecture as to what the reason is.
But apart from the belief of our moral nature, that in the long run
everything must make for righteousness, that the world must be
moral as well as rational, and that the dramatic tendency in the
evolution of the whole would be irrational if it had not a moral
goal, the science of nature is powerless to carry us on to a personal
God. But the strength of a rope is greater than the strength of its
separate strands. The arguments for the existence of God are, it
has been said, ' sufficient, not resistless, convincing, not compell-
ing.' x We can never demonstrate the existence of God either from
conscience or from nature. But our belief in Him is attested and
confirmed by both.
In this matter, the belief in God stands on the same level with
the belief in objective reality. Both have been explained away by
philosophers. Neither can be proved but by a circular argument.
Both persist in the consciousness of mankind. Both have been
purified and rationalized by the growth of knowledge. But the
moment reason attempts to start without assumptions, and claims
exclusive sovereignty over man, a paralysis of thought results.
There have been, before now, philosophers who professed to begin at
the beginning, and accept nothing till it was proved ; and the result
was a pure Pyrrhonism. They could not prove the existence of an
external world. They believed it, even if they did not, like Hume,
exult in the fact that belief triumphed over demonstration, but
there was no sure ground for believing that the world was not a
mere cerebral phenomenon, except the curiously rational cohe-
rence of its visions. Even Professor Huxley, in his ultra-sceptical
moods, admits this. He says 2 that ' for any demonstration that
can be given to the contrary effect, the " collection of perceptions,"
which makes up our consciousness, may be an orderly phantasma-
goria generated by the Ego, unfolding its successive scenes on the
background of the abyss of nothingness.' But no one, least of all
1 The Existence of God, by Rev. R. F. Clarke, S. J., p. 6.
2 Huxley's Hume, p. 8i.
83 The Religion of the Incarnation.
a man of science, believes this to be so. He takes reality for
granted, and only tries to interpret it aright, i. e., in such a way as
to make a rational unity of the facts perceived. Tell a scientific
specialist, — ' I am not going to let you beg the question. You
must first prove that nature exists, and then I will hear about
the science of nature,' and he will say, 'That is metaphysics/
which to him is probably a synonym for an intellectual waste of
time. ' Look at nature,' he will say; 'what more do you want?
If nature had been merely a phantasmagoria there would have been
no science of nature. Of course you must make your " act of
faith." x You must believe not only that nature exists, but that it
is a cosmos which can be interpreted, if you can only find the key.
The proof that nature is interpretable, is that we have, at least in
part, been able to interpret her. There were people in John
Locke's day who professed to doubt their own existence, and he
was content to answer them according to their folly. " If any one,"
he says, 2 " pretends to be so sceptical as to deny his own existence
(for really to doubt of it is manifestly impossible), let him, for me,
enjoy his beloved happiness of being nothing, until hunger, or some
other pain, convince him to the contrary." ' We do not call a
scientific man unreasonable if he answers thus, though he is justi-
fying his premises by his conclusion. We know that he that would
study nature must believe that it is, and that it is a rational whole
which reason can interpret. And ' he that cometh to God must
believe that He is, and that He is the rewarder of such as dili-
gently seek Him.' We feel our kinship with both before the instinc-
tive consciousness is justified by reason.
And there is a remarkable parallelism in the process of verifica-
tion. The counterpart of the theological belief in the unity and
omnipresence of God is the scientific belief in the unity of nature
and the reign of law. But that belief, though implicit in the sim-
plest operation of reason, 3 is not consciously attained till late in
the history of science. And even when it is reached, it is not at
once grasped in all its wealth and fulness. It is thought of as
mere uniformity, a dull, mechanical repetition of events, which is
powerless to explain or include the rich variety of nature and the
phenomena of life and growth. It is to meet this difficulty that
1 ' The one act of faith in the convert to science, is the confession of the
universality of order and of the absolute validity, in all times and under all
circumstances, of the law of causation. This confession is an act of faith,
because, by the nature of the case, the truth of such propositions is not sus-
ceptible of proof.' — Huxley, in Darwin's Life and Letters, ii. 200.
2 Essay IV. 10, § 2.
3 Cf. Green's Works, ii. 284.
II. The Christian Doctrine of God. 89
J. S. Mill naively assures us that ' the course of nature is not only
uniform, it is also infinitely various.' * But soon the truth is
grasped, that the reign of law is a unity which is higher than mere
uniformity, because it is living, and not dead, and includes and
transcends difference. It is the analogue in science to that
higher and fuller view of God in which He is revealed as Trinity
in Unity.
But as these parallel processes of verification go on, the truth is
forced upon the world that religion and philosophy must either be
in internecine conflict, or recognize the oneness of their Object.
'We and the philosophers,' says St. Clement, ' know the same God,
but not in the same way.' 2 Philosophy and religion have both
been enriched by wider knowledge, and as their knowledge has
become deeper and fuller, the adjustment of their claims has
become more imperatively necessary. Few in our day would will-
ingly abandon either, or deliberately sacrifice one to the other.
Many would be ready to assent to the words of a Christian Father :
' When philosophy and the worship of the gods are so widely sepa-
rated that the professors of wisdom cannot bring us near to the
gods, and the priests of religion cannot give us wisdom, it is man-
ifest that the one is not true wisdom, and the other is not true
religion. Therefore neither is philosophy able to conceive the
truth, nor is religion able to justify itself. But where philosophy
is joined by an inseparable connection with religion, both must
necessarily be true, because in our religion we ought to be wise,
that is, to know the true Object and mode of worship, and in our
wisdom to worship, that is, to realize in action what we know.' 3
It is sometimes argued : You have let in more than the thin
end of the wedge. You admit that ' it is the province of reason to
judge of the morality of the Scripture.' 4 You profess no antago-
nism to historical and literary criticism. Under the criticism of
reason, Fetichism has given way to Polytheism, Polytheism to
Monotheism, even Monotheism has become progressively less
anthropomorphic. Why object to the last step in the process, and
cling to the belief in a Personal God ? Simply because it would
make the difference between a religion purified and a religion
destroyed. The difference between the 30,000 gods of Hesiod,
and the One God of Christianity, is a measurable difference ; the
difference between a Personal God and an impersonal reason is,
so far as religion is concerned, infinite. For the transition from
1 Log., Bk. III. ch. in. § 2. 2 Strom., vi. 5.
3 Lact, Institt., IV. iii. 4 Butler's Analogy, Pt. II. ch. iii. p. 183.
go The Religio?i of the Incarnation.
Monotheism to Pantheism is made only by the surrender of reli-
gion, though the term ' theism ' may be used to blur the line of
separation, and make the transition easy.
Religion has, before all things, to guard the heritage of truth,
the moral revelation of God in Christ, to ' contend earnestly for
the faith once delivered to the saints,' and to trust to the promised
guidance of the Spirit of Truth. And reason interprets religion to
itself, and by interpreting verifies and confirms. Religion there-
fore claims as its own the new light which metaphysics and science
are in our day throwing upon the truth of the immanence of God •
it protests only against those imperfect, because premature, syn-
theses, which in the interests of abstract speculation would destroy
religion. It dares to maintain that ' the Fountain of wisdom and
religion alike is God ; and if these two streams shall turn aside
from Him, both must assuredly run dry.' For human nature
craves to be both religious and rational. And the life which is not
both is neither.
III.
THE PROBLEM OF PAIN.
J. R. ILLINGWORTH.
III.
THE PROBLEM OF PAIN.
The problem of pain, always prominent in a sensitive age, has
been exceptionally emphasized in the literature of modern pessi-
mism as an objection to Theism in general, and Christianity in par-
ticular. The existence of pain is urged as incompatible with the
belief in a God Who is at once omnipotent and benevolent, that is,
with Theism in its ordinary form ; while Christianity is further
charged with being a religion of pain, a religion which has increased
the sum of actual, and the expectation of prospective, pain, darken-
ing the shadow that lies upon our race. Suffering is not a subject
upon which anything new can be said. It has long ago been
probed to the utmost limit of our capacity, and remains a mystery
still. But, in face of the adverse use now made of it, it may be
well to bear in mind how much has been said and is to be said
upon the other side.
To begin with, there are two classes of pain, animal and human,
which, however intimately they may be connected, must, for clear-
ness, be considered apart. The universality of pain throughout
the range of the animal world, reaching back into the distant ages
of geology, and involved in the very structure of the animal organ-
ism, is without doubt among the most serious problems which the
Theist has to face. But it is a problem in dealing with which emo-
tion is very often mistaken for logic. J. S. Mill's famous indictment
of nature, for example, is one of the most emotional pieces of rhe-
toric of which a professed logician was ever guilty. When a cer-
tain class of facts is urged in objection to our Christian belief, we
are entitled to ask how many of those facts are known, and how
many are only imagined. There is of course a scientific use of the
imagination, but it is only permissible within the bounds of possible,
or at least conceivable, verification. Imaginative conjectures
which, from the nature of the case, will never admit either of veri-
fication or disproof are poetry and not science, and must be treated
as such in argument. With all the changes that have passed over
94 The Religion of the Incarnation.
our knowledge, we may still do well to attend to the caution with
which Butler begins his Analogy : —
' One cannot but be greatly sensible how difficult it is to silence
imagination enough to make the voice of reason even distinctly
heard ; as we are accustomed from our youth up to indulge that
forward delusive faculty, ever obtruding beyond its sphere ; of some
assistance indeed to apprehension, but the author of all error : as
we plainly lose ourselves in gross and crude conceptions of things,
taking for granted that we are acquainted with what indeed we are
wholly ignorant of.'
This needs repeating, because much of the popular knowledge
of the day consists in the acceptance of results without examination
of the methods of their attainment ; somewhat as, in the country-
man's simple faith, a thing must needs be true because he has seen
it in a book. While the case in point is further confused by the
fact that imagination has an important bearing on all our conduct
towards the lower animals, and cannot, for that purpose, be too
emotionally developed. But it is one thing to err on the safe
side in practice, and another to convert such possible error into
argument.
What then do we really know about the suffering of animals ?
No reasonable man doubts that they suffer. But the degree and
intensity of their suffering is almost entirely a matter of conjecture.
We speak of, and are affected by the mass of animal suffering ; but
we must remember that it is felt distributively. No one animal
suffers more because a million suffer likewise. And what we have
to consider is the amount which an individual animal suffers. We
have no knowledge, but we are entitled to meet conjecture by con-
jecture. We may fairly suppose that the animals do not ' look
before and after,' and it is this that gives its sting to human pain.
Again, they would seem, like children, to give strong indications of
slight pain. Further, many muscular contortions which simulate
extreme suffering are believed on scientific evidence to be due to
quite other causes. And then there are the phenomena of fascina-
tion, which may well resemble the experience of Livingstone in the
lion's mouth. While many pains are prophylactic and directly
contribute to the avoidance of danger and maintenance of life.
All these considerations may mitigate our view of animal suffering.
But a stronger argument is to be drawn from our profound ignor-
ance of the whole question. Animals can perceive colors invisible
to us ; they seem to have organs of sensation of whose nature we
know nothing ; their instincts are far more numerous and finer than
our own ; what compensations may they not have ? Again, what
in. The Problem of Pain. 95
are they? Had they a past? May they not have a future? What
is the relation of their consciousness to the mighty life which
pulses within the universe? May not Eastern speculation about
these things be nearer the truth than Western science ? All these
questions are in the region of the unknown, and the unknowable ;
and in face of them the Theistic position is simply this. We
believe, on complex and cumulative proof, in an omnipotent and
benevolent Creator. That belief is a positive verdict of our reason,
interpreting evidence which we consider irresistible. And against
such a conclusion no presumption of the imagination, which from
the nature of the case cannot possibly be verified, has any logical
validity at all ; not to mention that such presumptions admit of
being met by as probable presumptions on the other side. We
decline to arraign our Creator for a deed which we have not even
the means of knowing that He has done.
' All difficulties as to how they [the animals] are to be disposed
of are so apparently and wholly founded in our ignorance that it is
wonderful they should be insisted upon by any but such as are
weak enough to think they are acquainted with the whole system
of things. . . . What men require is to have all difficulties cleared ;
and this is, or at least for anything we know to the contrary it may
be, the same as requiring to comprehend the Divine nature, and
the whole plan of providence from everlasting to everlasting.' 1
But with human suffering the case is different, for here we are
in a measure behind the scenes. We watch the process no longer
from the outside, but from within ; and though it still remains mys-
terious, its mystery is full of meaning. In saying this we make two
assumptions : first, that moral evil is an ultimate fact for us, in our
present state of being, in the sense that it can neither be explained
nor explained away ; and secondly, that character, and not pleas-
ure, being, and not feeling, or, to phrase it more generally, the
greatest goodness of the greatest number, is the primary end of
ethics. The first of these assumptions most men are willing to
admit, while the few philosophical attempts to disprove it have con-
spicuously failed. The second has the assent of all moralists
except the hedonists, and those who without being aware of it are
hedonists in disguise : the pessimism, for example, which makes
so much of pain, being simply disappointed hedonism. Starting
then from these premises, the problem of practical ethics is the
formation of character in the face of moral evil. And in the solu-
tion of this problem pain and sorrow have a place which no other
known agency conceivably could fill.
1 Butler, Analogy.
g6 The Religion of the Incarnation,
To begin with its simplest if lowest aspect, pain is a punishment ;
and without importing any a priori notions into the question, we
find punishment to be a necessary element in the evolution of
character. Punishment is a complex thing, and the tendency of
civilization is to lay stress upon its corrective rather than its vindic-
tive aspect. But we must remember that with uncivilized races
this cannot be the case ; and that pains and penalties, considered
simply as retrospective vengeance for the past, have been histori-
cally, and in some cases still are, essential to our social develop-
ment. Indeed, it is a shallow view that regards vengeance as a
survival of savagery. Vengeance is intimately bound up with our
sense of justice, and the true difference between the savage and
the sage is that what the one eagerly inflicts upon his neighbor,
the other would far more willingly inflict upon himself. Plato
expressed this once for all when he said that the sinner who is
punished is happier than the sinner who escapes scot free. We
rightly shrink, as far as possible, from sitting in judgment on our
fellow-men ; but we feel none the less that our own ill deeds
demand a penalty, which may vary from bodily suffering to interior
shame, but which in one form or another must be endured before
we can recover our self-respect. And self-respect is a necessary
factor in all moral progress. Punishment, then, considered as ven-
geance, is a necessity for the social development of barbarous
races ; and though less obviously, quite as really for the personal
progress of the civilized man.
Now, without committing ourselves to the statement that suffer-
ing was introduced into the world by sin, which is not a Christian
dogma, though it is often thought to be so, a vast amount of the
suffering in the world is obviously punishment, and punishment of
a very searching kind. For not only are obvious vices punished
with remorse, and disease, and shame, but ignorance, impatience,
carelessness, even mistakes of judgment, are punished too, and
that in a degree which we are apt to consider disproportionate ;
forgetful that consequences are God's commentaries, and^ this
apparent disproportion may reflect light upon the real magnitude
of what we often are too ready to consider trivial things.
But these punishments, it is urged, fall on the innocent as well
as the guilty. And this leads us to another point of view. Pam
is not only punitive. It is also corrective and purgatorial. And
this again is a fact of ordinary experience, quite apart from the
further consideration of why it should be so. Among primitive
races the penalties of law, by the merely mechanical process of
forcibly restraining certain actions, slowly elevate the social tone.
in. The Problem of Pain. 97
And as men rise in the scale of development and begin to be a
law to themselves, the same process is continued within the indi-
vidual mind. The pains and penalties of evil doing, physical and
mental, tend to correct and purify the character; and when we
say that men learn wisdom by experience, we mostly mean by
experience of something painful. Of course, the most obvious
form of this correction is that in which the suffering can be recog-
nized by the sufferer as merited, because due to his own misdeeds.
But apart from such causal connection, what we call unmerited
suffering exercises the same influence in an even greater measure.
Its forces, not being exhausted in the work of neutralizing past
evil, are able to expand and expend themselves in a positive
direction, elevating, refining, dignifying the character to an infi-
nite degree. The men of sorrows are the men of influence in
every walk of life. Martyrdon. is the certain road to success in
any cause. Even more than knowledge, pain is power. And all
this because it develops the latent capacities of our being as no
other influence can. It requires no mystic insight to see the
truth of this. However unable we may be to account for it, it is
a fact of every-day experience, visible to ordinary common-sense.
And this being so, there is nothing of necessity unjust in what we
call unmerited suffering, not even in the sad inheritance by chil-
dren of the results of parental sin. For while the sight of the mis-
erable entail may, if rightly used, become the parent's punishment,
its imposition may be the child's call to higher things. True, like
all other useful agencies, it often fails of its end ; but such failure
is of the problem of evil, not of the problem of pain.
And, lastly, with men, as with animals, suffering is largely pro-
phylactic. Bodily pain sounds the alarm-bell of disease in time
for its removal. Mental and moral pain arrest the issues of igno-
rant or evil courses before it is too late. While the desire to
remove pain from ourselves, or better still from others, is among
the strongest incentives of the scientific discoverer, the patriot,
the philanthropist. And though it may seem a fallacy to credit
pain with the virtues which spring from the desire for its removal,
common-sense rises above logic and recognizes the real value of
a spur without which many of our noblest activities would cease.
Now, though all these considerations naturally lead on into the-
ology for their further treatment, yet it should be noticed that they
are in no sense exclusively theological. The penal, the corrective,
the preventive, and the stimulating uses of pain are all recognized
in the average man's philosophy of life. Indeed, they are too
obvious to need dwelling on at any length. But the point to be
7
98 The Religion of the Incarnation.
noticed is, that taken together, they cover a very great deal of
ground. For it is hardly too much to say that in one or other of
its various aspects, every human being has need of suffering for the
due development of his character. And this is a fact which should
go far to outweigh much brilliant declamation of the pessimists.
Pessimism, in fact, stereotypes and gives a fictitious permanence to
what is only one among our many moods of thought. It harps
upon the fact that ve naturally shrink from pain. It ignores the
fact that we are conscious of being the better for it, and unable to
conceive progress without it. And though these considerations
afford no solution to the speculative mystery of pain, they make in
the direction of a speculative solution. They do not explain why
pain exists, but they show us that its existence, in the only region
in which we can really test it, is eminently useful, and therefore
consistent with providential and beneficent design. Their precise
logical relation to the Theistic argument might be put as follows :
Arguments drawn from many departments of life and thought con-
verge in favor of Theism, but one large and important department,
that of human suffering, blocks the way. When, however, we iso-
late and examine that department, we find that even within its
limits the evidence of provident purpose is prominent, if not pre-
ponderant. Its prominence is certainly enough to neutralize the
negative bearing of the department upon the general argument.
Its preponderance, which many if not most men would admit,
carries us farther, and makes the net evidence of the whole depart-
ment an affirmative contribution to Theism.
So far common-sense carries us. But when we turn to the place
of pain in the religions of the world, two further thoughts are
suggested. In the first place, the belief in a future life, which is
common to almost all religions, at once opens endless vistas of
possibility before us. The pain which has failed to purify here,
may yet purify hereafter ; the high-handed wrong-doing, which
has seemed to go unpunished here, may there meet with its right-
eous due. The pains which we have thought excessive here, may
there be found to have worked out for us a far more exceeding
weight of glory. And so the particular difficulty which arises from
the unequal incidence of earthly suffering may one day find its
adequate solution. No doubt there is an element of truth in the
familiar taunt that belief in a future life has been a curse as well as
a blessing to the world. In some stages of culture, for example,
the future life has been supposed only to emphasize the inequal-
ities of the present : the slave living on in everlasting slavery, and
the warrior in incessant war. But this has been a partial and a
in. The Problem of Pain. 99
passing phase of thought, which rapidly gave way before more
ethical conceptions. The ethical conceptions in their turn, which
were based on future rewards and punishments, confessedly could
not produce a very high type of morality. But they have filled
their place, and that a large one in the history of human develop-
ment, while even after ceasing to be the dominant motives, they
still witness to the ineradicable expectation of our race, that holi-
ness and happiness, sin and failure, shall one day coincide. More
serious and sad is the fact that distorted dreams of future punish-
ment have often reflected a lurid light upon the whole of life ;
goading zealots into cruelty, sinners into madness, thinkers into
unbelief; and have lingered on, as savage survivals, even into
Christian times, to the hopeless obscuration, in many minds, of
the creed that God is Love. But even here we must draw dis-
tinctions. Early races express intensity by an accumulation of
material metaphors, — fecundity by a hundred breasts, omnipo-
tence and omniscience by a hundred arms or a thousand eyes.
And so, when they saw the unrighteous man enjoy the fruits of
his unrighteousness, and die in unrebuked defiance of laws human
and divine, their sense of outraged justice could not but express
itself in terms of material horror. We have grown to be more
pitiful, more refined in our moral thinking, less dogmatic about
unknown things ; yet neither our moral experience nor our Chris-
tianity has availed to remove the dread of that unutterable ' pain
of loss' which the passing of a soul in obdurate impenitence has
ever suggested to the mind of man. And however confidently
therefore we may put aside the distortions, and debasements, and
interested exaggerations which have darkened the thought of
future punishment, we must remember that the thought itself was
no alien introduction into history, but due to the instinctive crav-
ing of the human heart for justice, — man's own tremendous verdict
on his sin. 1 But the universality, or at least extreme generality, of
the belief in a continued existence, is quite distinct from the par-
ticular pictures of it which the imagination has variously drawn ;
much as the universality of conscience is distinct from its varying
content among diverse races and in different ages. And the
broad fact remains that from the dawn of history the majority of
mankind have believed in and looked with confidence to a future
life to rectify, and therefore justify, the inequalities of earthly suf-
fering ; however much their views have varied as to what should
constitute rectification.
1 Cf. pp. 43 x -433*
ioo The Religion of the Incarnation,
Secondly, there is an instinctive tendency in all religions, from
the savage upwards, to view pain, whether in the form of asceticism
or sacrifice, as inseparably connected with an acceptable service of
the gods or God. The asceticism of poor Caliban foregoing his
little mess of whelks, and that of the Hindoo whose meritorious
sufferings are expected to prevail, by intrinsic right, with Heaven ;
the hideous holocausts of Mexico, and the paper substitutes for offer-
ings of the parsimonious or hypocritical Chinee are widely different
things. But they all spring from a common instinct, variously dis-
torted, yet persistent through all distortions, and progressively
refined, till it culminates in the Hebrew substitution of the broken
heart for the blood of bulls and of goats. It is the custom of some
modern writers to represent the higher forms of sacrifice as merely
survivals of the savage desire to propitiate the gods by food. But
this is not an adequate analysis even of the savage creed. Natur-
ally enough the primitive hunter, to whom food is the chief good,
may think food the worthiest offering to the gods. But it is not
simply food, but his own food, that he offers, the choicest morsel,
that which it costs him something to forego. In other words, the
root of sacrifice is self-sacrifice, however crudely it may be ex-
pressed. Of course, the primitive hypocrite would seek to evade
personal suffering as naturally as the civilized hypocrite will give
alms at another man's expense. But sincerity must come before
hypocrisy, and the sacrificial instinct is in origin sincere. Its first
account of itself may be irrational, and its earlier manifestations
often blundering and repulsive ; and if it were now only a survival,
the same should be true of its later forms, for survivals are not
commonly improved in the process of surviving. But so far from
this being the case, it has been refined by successive developments,
and is as integral an element of later as of earlier religions, being
in fact the symbolic statement that a more or less painful self-
surrender is the necessary condition of all human approach to the
divine. Natural religion then, in the widest use of the term, car-
ries us on beyond common-sense, in attributing a mysterious value
to suffering here, and expecting an explanation of its anomalies
hereafter. The first belief may be called mystical, the second
hypothetical ; and yet the two together have done more to recon-
cile man to his burden of sorrow than all the philosophic com-
ments on the uses of adversity ; for they have seemed to lift him,
though blindfold, into a loftier region, where he felt himself in-
breathing power from on high. And so here, as in other things,
natural religion leads on into Christianity.
The relation of Christianity to the problem of pain, may be best
in. The Problem of Pain. ioi
seen by contrasting it with the empirical optimism of common-
sense. Enlightened common-sense, as we have seen, is fully
aware of the uses of sorrow ; but it looks at the usefulness through
the sorrowfulness, as a compensation which should make the wise
man content to bear his pain. The change which Christianity has
effected consists in the reversal of this view of the subject. Once
for all, it has put the value before the painfulness in our thoughts.
The Author and Finisher of our faith, ' for the joy that was set
before Him, endured the Cross, despising the shame,' and ' our
light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a far
more exceeding weight of glory, while we look not at the things
which are seen, but at the things which are unseen/ It bids us
not wait ' till the sorrow comes with years,' but take up our cross,
from the first moment of our conscious discipleship. And accord-
ingly the real Christian looks at sorrow, not from without, but from
within, and does not approach its speculative difficulty till he is
aware by experience of its practical power. Consequently he
cannot explain himself to the merely external critic. He may
urge in argument such general considerations as have been touched
upon above, and meet the pleas of pessimism with the counter-
pleas of philosophic optimism ; but if pressed for the inner secret
of his own serenity, he can only answer with the esoteric invita-
tion, ' Come and see.' Enter the dim sanctuary of sorrow through
the shadow of the Cross. Abide there, and as your eyes grow
accustomed to the darkness, the strange lines upon its walls which
seemed at first so meaningless, will group themselves into shapes
and forms of purposeful design.
Once for all the sinless suffering of the Cross has parted sin
from suffering with a clearness of distinction never before achieved.
The intellectual Greek had tended to confuse the two as kindred
forms of ignorance ; the weary Oriental as kindred consequences
of our imprisonment in the body, ' the too, too solid flesh ; '
the self-righteous Jew viewed blindness, or death from a falling
tower, as evidence of exceptional sin. Everywhere in the ancient
world the outlines of the two were undefined, and their true rela-
tion of antagonism misunderstood. But the sight of perfect sinless-
less, combined with perfect suffering, has cleared our view forever.
Sin, indeed, always brings suffering in its train ; but the suffering
we now see to be of the nature of its antidote, — an antidote often
applied indeed with inexorable sternness, but in its intention wholly
merciful. Thus every sin has its appropriate suffering. Bodily
indulgence brings bodily disease ; cruelty ends in cowardice ;
pride and vanity in shame. And though the suffering of itself
102 The Religion of the Incarnation.
cannot convert the sinner, it can and does prevent both the grati-
fication and contagion of the sin. Then comes the more terrible
sorrow of remorse ; and remorse is potential penitence, and peni-
tence potential purification. But while sin thus involves suffering,
suffering does not involve sin. It is not only an antidote, but one
of those antidotes which taken in time is prophylactic. And this
is not only true of the pains of self-denial and self-sacrifice, the
voluntary bearing of the cross, but of many an involuntary sorrow
also. Delicate health, Plato's bridle of Theages, inherited pain, spir-
itual privation, bereavement, may all refine the character and train
the eye to that purity of heart that shall see God. Pain, in fact,
in its manifold methods, is like the angel of the Eastern story, —
changing its form incessantly to cope with the shifting shapes of
sin, and passing by turns into a lion, a bird, a sword, a flood, a
flame, in sleepless eagerness to follow and find, and slay and
quench and burn away the least last lingering particle of evil. So
far from being our enemy, it is our safest ally in the battle of life,
and we fail through shrinking from the stern alliance. We suffer
because we sin ; but we also sin because we decline to suffer.
Still, the very sharpness of the severance between sin and suffer-
ing on the Cross forces upon us the further question : Why should
the sinless suffer? The vicarious suffering of Christ is said to con-
flict with our sense of justice. And it does so, as misrepresented
in much popular theology. But rightly viewed, it is the climax
and complete expression of the process to which we owe the entire
evolution of our race. The pleasures of each generation evapo-
rate in air ; it is their pains that increase the spiritual momentum
of the world. We enter into life through the travail of another.
We live upon the death of the animals beneath us. The neces-
sities, the comforts, the luxuries of our existence are provided by
the labor and sorrow of countless fellow-men. Our freedom, our
laws, our literature, our spiritual sustenance, have been won for us
at the cost of broken hearts, and wearied brains, and noble lives
laid down. And this is only the human analogue of that trans-
ference of energy by which all life and movement is forever car-
ried on. The sun is so much the cooler by the heat it daily gives
to earth; the plant and tree the weaker by the force that has
matured their fruit; the animal generations exhausted in con-
tinuing their kind. And how should their Creator draw all men
unto Him but through the instrumentality of His own great law of
sacrifice ? If we shrink from our share in the conditions of the
solemn legacy, it is easy to persuade ourselves that the system of
things is wrong. But if we accept it, and resolve that we too in
in. The Problem of Pain. 103
our turn will spend and be spent for others, we find beneath all
the superficial suffering the deep truth of the benediction, ' It is
more blessed to give than to receive.' And in the experience of
that benediction we see further still into the mysterious significance
of sorrow.
Further ; but not yet to the end. For the human heart desires
more than merely to work for others. It desires to be one with
those for whom it works. Love is the highest form of that unity ;
but even short of actual love, we instinctively crave communion
and sympathy with our kind. And it is no morbid view of life to
say that sorrow brings about this union in a way that joy does not.
There is something, under our present conditions, in the very
expansiveness of joy which dissociates, while sorrow seems to
weld us, like hammer strokes on steel. It is the nationality whose
members have together struggled for existence, the soldiers who
have faced the shock of battle side by side, the persecuted party,
the husband and wife who have known common suffering, that are
most intimately, indissolubly one. Nor is this union merely nega-
tive, like the bond which fellow-prisoners feel, and yet would
eagerly escape from if they could. It is due to a distinct sense
that the common crisis has aroused all that is highest and noblest
and most spiritual, and therefore most sympathetic, in the soul.
But again, it is only in the light from the Cross that we can see
why pain should possess this power. For in that light we under-
stand how pain unites us to each other, because, as even natural
religion dimly felt, it unites us to God, and therefore through Him
to those who in Him live and move and have their being. It
unites us to God because it purifies us, because it detaches us
from earth, because it quickens our sense of dependence, because
it opens our spiritual vision, and above all because He too, as
man, has suffered. But the mystics who have seen farthest into
heavenly things have felt that it unites us to God in still more vital
wise, as being, at least in its form of sacrifice, the very beating of
the heart of love. And so they have raised the question : Has
it not an antitype far in the illimitable depths of the unseen? For
we are told that God is Love ; and love, as we know it, must be
shown in sacrifice ; though the sacrifice grows painless in propor-
tion as the love is pure. And when we recall how in the days of
our Lord's ministry on earth, Father, Son, and Holy Spirit bore
their witness each to other, but no one of the Holy Persons ever
to Himself, we are led on to wonder whether 'in the light that no
man can approach unto,' where the Three are One, some higher
analogue of what we call sacrifice does not forever flame ; whose
104 The Religion of the Incarnation.
radiant reflection on the universe only becomes shadow wheti it
falls on a world of sin. But however these high things may be,
the simplest Christian feels and knows that, in his present state,
the unitive way, the way to union with both God and man, is the
'via dolorosa,' the way of the cross, — a serious and solemn belief,
which is very far from leading to complacency, in presence of the
awful spectacle of animal and human pain, but still is based on
sufficient experience to justify the hope that all its mystery will
be one day solved. More than this we do not expect, for the
intellect, in our Christian view, is as much on its probation and
as liable to error as the will ; and inordinate curiosity not less
misleading than inordinate desire.
IV.
PREPARATION IN HISTORY FOR
CHRIST
EDWARD S. TALBOT.
IV.
PREPARATION IN HISTORY FOR CHRIST
The paradox of Divine mystery implied in the words 'The
Word was made flesh,' is not exhausted by a right understanding
of the Person of Christ. It extends to the relations between
Christ and History. On the one hand, the Incarnation of the
Son of God appears as supreme, solitary, unique, transcending all
analogies of experience, all limitations of nationality or generation,
determined before the world was, beyond the power of any ante-
cedents to produce, the entry of a new thing into the world. It
appears, in short, as a miracle. But, on the other hand, it appears
as an historical event, occurring at a particular date, appealing to
the feelings and fulfilling the hopes of the time, a climax and a
new point of departure in the historical order. It does this,
necessarily, because this is involved in the act of taking flesh, of
entering simply, literally, naturally into the conditions of human
life. Such a thing occurs, and must occur, in the natural order.
To say this is not to dictate what a Divine revelation must be, but
only to show what Christianity asserts of itself. In this way it was
good in God's sight that His revelation should come.
It follows from this, in the first place, that there must be two
ways, both valid and necessary, of approaching in thought and
study Christ manifest in the flesh. We may treat the fact of His
appearing with little or no reference to historical relations, for its
own inherent unchanging truth and meaning. We may also treat
it as clothed in historical event, to be understood in its relations
with what went before and followed after and stood around. The
two methods supplement one another. It may be true that the
simple personal claim which the solitary figure of Jesus Christ
makes upon us, by its unalterable moral dignity and beauty, its
typical humanity, its unearthly authority, is the strongest that can
be made : none the less may that claim be confirmed and rein-
forced if we see the same figure as it were upon an historical
throne ; if it should become clear that what went before (and
io8 The Religion of the Incarnation.
what followed after) does, in any way, pay homage to Him ; if
the manner of His appearing in place and time be calculated to
heighten the impression which the fact of it makes.
And in the second place, it follows that to start in any historical
treatment of the subject of this paper from the central twofold
assertion as to Christ, made by St. John in the phrase, ' The Word
was made flesh,' is to obtain at once the right clew to the lines which
it should follow.
( i ) To do so is not to beg the question or to fetter the inquiry,
but only to define what kind of evidence, if any, the study of
Christ's relation to foregoing history can yield. We see that it
must be such as works in us the conviction that He both does,
and does not, occur ' naturally ' at the time and place when He
appeared ; that history leads up to Him and prepares His way,
and yet that no force of natural antecedents can account for Him
or for His work. It is true that evidence for either side of this
two-sided impression may have sufficient weight to determine
faith, especially with individual minds. The contrast between
Christ and all else in history, arresting the attention and suggesting
the thought of special Divine presence, may of itself be a spring
of faith ; or, upon the other hand, a clear discernment of His
natural supremacy in history may lead a man on to higher truth.
But the true evidence, as corresponding to the true and full claim,
will be that which suggests the conclusion with simultaneous and
equal force from either side.
(2) If the aim is not evidence but instruction, and we desire
simply to understand better what is true of our Lord's relation to
history, it will still advantage us greatly to start from the same
point. We shall be able to recognize freely and without fear of
contradiction or confusion, on the one side, the way in which the
lines of history, of human experience, aspiration, achievement,
character, need, lead up to Christ and issue in Him ; and on the
other, the unearthly and peculiar greatness of Him Who spake as
never man spake, Who taught as one that had authority and not
as the Scribes, Who was not convinced by any of sin ; Whose
daily intimacy with a disciple issued in that disciple's confession,
' Thou art the Christ, the Son of the Living God.' Such a method,
starting from the Christian claim, and trying to trace out all that
it involves, need not be only for the believer, any more than
the quest for evidence or witness is for those only who do not
believe. The Christian tests the foundations, and welcomes every
corroboration, of his faith ; while, in dwelling on the character of
the work and of its relations to all else, the non-believer may come
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 109
to find the conviction grow upon him that it was indeed ' wrought
of God.'
(3) From the same point, we see at once to what double mis-
understanding or double attack the Gospel not only may but must
be liable. On the one side, it may be refused a hearing as miracu-
lous ; it may be understood as violating the natural order which it
transcends ; it may be regarded and resented as an anomaly in
history. On the other side, a consideration of the aptness of its
occurrence when and where it did occur, and of its harmonious
relations to many lines of tendency, will suggest the suspicion that
it may be after all only a result, though a supreme and surprising
result, of historical forces. In a word, it may be accused at once
from separate, possibly from the same, quarters as too supernatural
and too natural to be what it claims to be. It is all important to
notice at the outset that liability to this double attack is an inevi-
table incident of its true character and of that which makes its
glory ; namely, the presence of true Godhead under truly human
conditions.
But to return to the main point.
The importance and interest of the subject of this paper may
be inferred, as we have seen, directly from what the Incarnation
claims to be. But we are not left to infer it for ourselves. Noth-
ing is clearer or more striking than the place which it occupied
from the outset in the declaration of the Gospel. Jesus Himself
spoke of the Scribes of the kingdom as ' bringing forth out of their
treasure things new and old ; ' and laid it down as a first principle
of His kingdom that He was ' not come to destroy, but to fulfil.' *
While with surprising and commanding clearness He centres men
upon Himself, and distinguishes Himself from all who came before
Him, from 'the prophets and the law which prophesied until
John ; ' He yet with evident care draws the new out of the old,
and fits it on to the old ; He delineates His own mission as a
climax in a long appeal of God to Israel, 2 and the opposition to
Him and His, as a chapter of denouement in the history of an old
conflict between God and the ungodly. 3 He sees a ' necessity \
for the happening of things to fulfil what had been said of old. 4
The very pith of the disciples' ignorance is their failure to see
how the features of His work and character had been traced
beforehand, and the supreme teaching which they receive from
Him is that which discloses His correspondence to the whole
1 St. Matt. xiii. 52 ; v. 17. 2 St. Matt. xxi. 33-38.
8 St. Matt., v. 12; xxiii. 30-37. 4 St. Mark xiv. 49; St. Luke xxii. yj.
no The Religion of the Incarnation.
tenor of the Scriptures of the past. 1 The teaching of the Apostles,
and of those who followed them, is faithful to these lines. Though
they have to convince the world of an Event which works a revo-
lution, which is to turn men from darkness to light ; though their
perfect confidence in their own truth makes them see the things
that went before as elements, * weak and beggarly elements,' 2 and
they have moreover battles to fight against these ' elements ' set up
again as antagonists ; though their adherence to the Old Testament
was an ever-fruitful source of difficulty and attack (of which
Judaizing and Gnostic controversies are the record), — yet never-
theless they unswervingly maintained the inspiration of the Old
Testament, and stood upon it ; and we distinguish without hesita-
tion as their normal, primary, characteristic method that of appeal
to the correspondence between their Gospel and every hope and
word of Israel's faith : the ' revelation of the mystery . . . is . . .
by the scriptures of the prophets . . . made known to all nations.' 3
The Hebrews, who wistfully look back to their temple, law, and
ritual, are not taught a stern forgetfulness of what had been, nor
led vaguely to spiritualize its meaning, but are led to recognize in
each part of the ancient system a line which leads up to Christ.
Finally, the disciple who sets the true being of his Master in
monumental and awful splendor as the Word Who ' was with God
and was God ' now made manifest in the flesh, in the same breath
carries us to the very core and source of all that can be implied in
preparation by declaring the same Word to have been 'in the
world' before, to have been the author of all things, and the
unseen light of men. 4
The relation of Christ to history, or the preparation for the
Gospel, is then no afterthought of our own or any recent time.
It was Augustine's saying that Christianity was as old as the
world : 5 and Tertullian's (one of almost venturesome boldness)
that in the previous history Christ was schooling Himself for
incarnation. 6 But it is not difficult to see that our own time is
one which is specially fitted to appreciate and handle this aspect
of the Christian truth. Our cultivation of the historical method,
1 St. Luke xxiv. 25, 26, 44.
2 Gal. iv. 9.
3 Rom. xvi. 26. So the pages of the early apologists are, to our feeling,
almost cumbered by the profuseness of their appeal to these Scriptures.
4 St. John i. 1, 14, 9, 10.
5 Ep. cii. 12.
6 De Carne Christi vi. Eum Christum qui jam tunc et adloqui . . . hu-
manum genus ediscebat in carnis habitu: cp. adv. Prax. xvi. ediscebat Deus
in terris cum homimbus conversari.
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 1 1 1
our historical realism or sense of the relation of persons or events
to historical setting, our recognition of the part played in forming
structure, function, character, by gradual process, by heredity, by
evolution, our developed understanding of the links by which the
parts and successions in all nature, and not least in what is human,
are bound together, — all these go to form a habit of mind which
in presence of such a Revelation as that of the Gospel will at once
busy itself, whether for satisfaction, for edification, for controversy,
or for interpretation, with the relation of the Truth to the world
into which it came, to all from amongst which it sprung. In such
a time it is natural that attack should try to show that facts which
historical criticism has done much to secure, and a Life which it
has become impossible to treat as a myth, are simply explicable
according to the natural laws of historical causation. It is natural
that Christianity should be explained as the flower and bloom of
Judaism, or as sprung from the fusion of Greek and Jewish influ-
ences in a Galilean medium. Such explanations may not be new,
but they are urged with new resources and a more subtle inge-
nuity. They have the advantage of being the sort of explanations
which are naturally most congenial to the time. But out of the
very stress of such attacks may come a special corroboration of
Christian truth. The experiment is crucial : it can hardly be
expected that attack of this kind can ever command greater skill
and resource than it does at present. If therefore it should be
proved to fail ; if we are able to look men in the face and ask
whether, when all allowance is made for the subtle * chemistries ?
of history and for the paradoxical way in which historical results
spring from what precedes them, it is possible to think that Jesus
Christ and His religion were a mere growth from antecedents, —
then we have here the prospect of such a confirmation of faith as
no age less historically scientific could, in that kind, give and
receive.
But this negative result, great as its value may be, can only be
part of what Christian science may yield in this sphere for the
elucidation and support of faith. It should surely be able to
display with greater breadth and delicacy than ever before that
correspondence between the Revelation of Christ and what went
before it, which was of old indicated by saying that Christ came
in the * fulness of the time.' It should be able to enhance, and
not (as men fear) to impair, the evidence of a Divine presence
and influence, preparing for that which was to come, moulding
the plastic material of history for a ' far-off Divine event.' It may
seem as if this was not so. It may seem, for example, as if the
1 1 2 The Religion of the Incarnation.
severity and activity of historical and linguistic criticism had
dimmed the clearness of those correspondences between prophetic
utterances spoken centuries before Christ and the points in Him
or His work whereby they were fulfilled, which were once so clear.
It may seem, it is evidently true, that stricter canons of interpreta-
tion forbid for us that unbounded use of the happy expedient of
allegory which could make everything in the Old Testament speak
of Christ. But even if this were so (and with regard to prophecies
we only partially grant it), is there no countervailing gain to
reckon ? The hand of God may be seen in what is marvellous,
startling, exceptional, unexplained. Can it not be seen as dis-
tinctly and as persuasively in what is orderly, steadfast, intelligible,
and where our reason, made in God's likeness, can follow along in
some degree with the how and the why of His working? It was
Christ's will to give special signs, yet the curiosity which * sought
after a sign ' was not honored by Christ like that wisdom which
' discerned the signs of the times,' and so could see the force of
the special signs that were given because it saw them in their true
moral and spiritual context. 1 Have we any reason to hope that
our time may be suffered to do (and even be doing) something
for the interpretation of the witness of history to Christ which has
not been done before, and which is even an advance upon what
has been done? Let us consider for a moment (in order to
answer this question) what it is which specially engrosses the
interest and admiration of all of us in the different branches of
modern study and inquiry. It is the beauty of process. The
practical men among us watch process in its mechanical forms as
contrived by invention. The naturalists and the men of science
have to an extraordinary extent developed our perception of it in
nature; they show us its range, and its incredible delicacy, flexi-
bility, and intricacy ; they show us its enormous patience in the
unceasing yet age-long movements which by microscopic or less
than microscopic changes accumulate the coal, or lessen the
mountain ; they show us the wonderful power of adaptation by
which it accommodates itself to surroundings, and appropriates
and transforms them to its need. The embryologist develops its
wonders as it makes ' the bones to grow in the womb of her that
is with child.' And the historians in their sphere do the like : it
is for them, if not the beginning and end of their work, at least
the most powerful of their methods, to show the processes by
which institutions, customs, opinions, rise and decline ; to arrange
1 St. Matt. xi. 4, 5 ; xii. 39 ; xvi. 3.
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 1 1 3
the facts so as to display on their chart the steps of growth, the
stages of decay ; to show influences blending to form events, and
parting again to destroy or re-shape them.
There is beauty in all this, more than we can, perhaps, alto-
gether analyze or explain. As living beings we sympathize with
the life and movement of it all (or, as in the case of intricate
machinery, with the imitation of life) compared with what stands
stark, solid, unchanging ; as intelligent beings we revel and delight
in its intricacy, and, further, we are gratified by the way in which
it subdues with explanation what would be anomalous, abrupt,
motiveless, in the way of change or event. It gives us something
like the pleasure which we take in the beauty of the exquisite
subtle curves and shaded surfaces of a Raphael figure compared
with the rough outline of a Diirer woodcut. But we could not
long rest in the admiration of mere process, whether delicate or
colossal. There is a rational element present in, or controlling,
our sense of beauty, which asks whence and whither, which de-
mands unity in detail ; and this finds altogether new and delightful
gratification when it can see a relation, a meaning, a grouping, a
symmetry, of which processes are the ministers and instruments.
It is, then, this idea of beauty in process that we bring with us
as we approach to behold the facts and method of God's Redemp-
tive Work. It is altogether too strong in us to be left behind as
we cross the threshold of this region ; it is too much connected
with all our thinking and experience. It is very possible that
there may be exaggeration about it in us : and it is indispensable
for us to recognize this, 'le de'faut de notre qualite.' But all the
same we cannot disown, though we must control, what is so
specially our own. And if our love of process is prepared to be
critical, it is also prepared to be gratified : and there is opened a
prospect of fresh witness to the truth of the unchanging Gospel,
if it should be found that its introduction into this world is ushered
in by all the beauty of process, with all the grandeur of slow
unhasting preparation, the surprises of gradual transformation, the
delicacies of combination, which process allows.
Such a sight is much more than wonderful, and has in it, if our
ideas of what is Divine are not very narrow, much more evidence
of God's hand than any mere wonder can have. But it is as
wonderful as anything can be. And if we still plead that our sense
of wonder stipulates for exceptionalness, it has its own way of satis-
fying this, — the way of uniqueness. For those features which we
admire in process are capable, if combined with a certain degree
of grandeur, completeness, and particularity, of conveying to us the
8
1 14 The Religion of the Incarnation.
impression of a unique thing. We may dismiss as a dialectical
refinement the objection which has been made that, as is doubtless
true, ' everything is unique.' None the less, there is a meaning
in our ordinary language when it applies the epithet ' unique ' to
certain persons, classes, or things. A man of science may prop-
erly speak of a certain uniqueness in the way in which natural
conditions are combined so as to make life possible ; a historian
will certainly miss truth if he does not recognize a special unique-
ness in certain historical epoch-making moments. In propor-
tion-as we believe in Mind ordering the things of nature and
history, such uniqueness will have speaking significance. And as
uniqueness has its degrees, and rises according to the scale,
quantity, character, and completeness of that which goes to make
it up, so its significance will rise proportionately, until at last,
arriving at uniqueness, which seems to us absolute, we gain evi-
dence that there is before us a Supreme Thing, a true centre to
the world. The evidence is not indeed demonstrative, but it is
in a high degree corroborative, and it is the highest which history
can offer. It is this evidence of uniqueness which, as it seems to
me, we of the present day may with special fitness seek, and shall
with special welcome find, —
( i ) In the shaping of world-history towards the Christian era.
(2) In the special preparation of the Jewish nation.
Within the compass of a paper like the present, it is impossible
to do more than indicate the lines which, even without any high
degree of special education, a Christian's thought may travel in
tracing the Divine work of preparation and witness.
I. In the first part of our inquiry the distinction between an
outward and an inward working suggests itself as convenient,
though necessarily imperfect : the one consisting in a moulding of
the material facts of history, — such as the geographical distribu-
tion of peoples, and the political and social order; the other, in a
like use of the changes in thought, feeling, and the like.
(1) It can never be altogether too hackneyed to dwell on the
strange value to the world's history of the two peninsulas which we
know as Greece and Italy, thrust out into that Mediterranean Sea,
which was itself so remarkable as a centre and ' medium ' of the
western world, binding its many nations together. They share
with other lands of the temperate zone all its possibilities of hardy
and vigorous life ; but, besides this, their sky and sea, their con-
veniences and difficulties, had a special stimulus to give to their
early inhabitants. They were extraordinarily well suited to be the
seed-plots of civilization. And these seed-plots were aptly fertil-
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 1 1 5
ized, first by the Phoenicians, — those carrier-birds of antiquity,
dropping seed along the Mediterranean coasts, — and then by the
happy contact between Greece and the other Greece opposite, to
which the island bridges of the y^Egaean linked it, where, on the
narrow strip of coast plain and rich river valley between the sea
and the high plateaus of Asia Minor, the Ionians enjoyed, as
Herodotus says, 1 the fairest climate in the world. Upon this
debouched, with the rivers from the interior, the highways along
which travelled westward the civilization or the power of the dimly
known but highly important early Phrygian monarchy, or from yet
farther east, of the mighty Assyria. The recent discoveries of Pro-
fessor Ramsay and others re-interpret and emphasize to us this
early connection between the Asian lands and Greece in Europe,
of which, the Lion Gate of Mycenae is a monument. What Greece
thus took with her left hand she could pass across with her right to
yet another Greece — ' Great Greece' — in Sicily and Southern
Italy. But we may easily fail to recognize how much all this deli-
cate and tender growth depended on favorable circumstance, and
we cannot too carefully mark how space was made awhile for it to
spring. The ' hills stood about ' both peninsulas on the North
to shelter them from intrusion ; but this barrier, sufficient for ordi-
nary times, would hardly have resisted the heavy thrust of the
later pressure of population from the East and Northeast, which,
when it did begin, so nearly crushed Rome, and which, if it had
come earlier, might have easily stifled Greek and Roman civiliza-
tion in the cradle. The reader of the Persian wars will watch
almost with awe within how little Greece came of what appeared
alike to Asiatic and Greek a certain subjection to the Persian. A
difference of twenty years earlier, the chance of a different temper
in the little Athenian people, the use by Darius of the methods of
Xerxes, would, humanly speaking, have decided the other way the
fate of western civilization. It is easier again to admire than to
explain the happy fortune which brought the mountain kingdom of
Macedon to its moment of aggression just too late to hurt the
flowering and fruitage of Greece, just in time to carry its seed
broadcast over Eastern, Syrian, and Egyptian lands. From all the
sequence of the Grasco-Roman history which follows, and in which
nothing is more important to all the purposes of Providence than
the simple fact of the order of these two, — Greek first, Roman sec-
ond, — we can here select only one feature of capital importance,
viz., the transformation of a world intensely localized and sub-
1 Hdt., i. 142.
1 1 6 The Religion of the Incarnation.
divided into one as singularly united and homogeneous. Follow
St. Paul and see his circuits, watch him claiming the safeguard of
the same Roman citizenship in the Macedonian town and in the
capital of Palestine, laying hold at Caesarea on the horns of a cen-
tral tribunal of justice at Rome, borne thither by the sails of the
carrying trade in the ' ship of Alexandria,' meditating a journey
into Spain, numbering among his Roman converts, as seems prob-
able, one who had a direct connection with Roman Britain, writing
in the same Greek to Rome and to the highlanders of Galatia,
never' crossed in his journeys by any track of war, never stopped
by any challenge of frontier or custom-house : these are so many
object-lessons to show what the ' Pax Romana ' and the Roman
unity of power and organization imported for the growth of a
world-religion. This was the time when it could be complained
that it was impossible to flee from the Caesar's wrath, because the
Caesar owned the world. And to make the impression more dis-
tinct, let the eye travel backward a little, or forward a little : back-
ward into the second or even the first century b. c, when this
same Mediterranean world was still in greater part an unconsoli-
dated chaos of political debris ; when the tumult of the Macedonian
and Syrian wars of Rome and then of her desolating civil strife
filled the world with noise and occupied its thought and destroyed
its peace ; when the sea was impassable because of pirates, and
when the West was still in great part unsubdued and formidable
barbarism ; or forward, across the space during which the Gospel
had spread its influence and struck its roots and won its power, to
the time so soon following, when the lands that had known no war
were again traversed by the armies of rival emperors, and the bar-
barians began to dismember the West, and the gloom of a great
fear preoccupied men's hearts. To say nothing of the Middle
Ages, what unity of the Mediterranean world and the lands affili-
ated to it has the whole of later history got to show that can com-
pare for a moment with the unity of the early Empire, focussed in
its cosmopolitan capital, Rome?
And in this there is much more than a mechanical provision for
the progress of a world-religion. It is not merely that its heralds
find a complete facility of communication, peaceful conditions,
and a ' lingua franca ' ready for their use. We must realize how
the unity had been obtained. It had been by pulverizing separate
nationalities, separate patriotisms, separate religions ; by destroy-
ing or leaving only in a municipal form the centres round which
human energy and loyalty had been wont to gather. Thus the
world had been turned into that ' cold and icy plain ' of which M.
IV. Preparation in History for Christ. 1 1 7
Renan speaks. And it is not too much to say that this process
had destroyed just so many barriers to the entrance of Christianity.
We have only to realize what had been previously the universal
character of the worships of the western world, viz., that they had
been local, the common and exclusive possession of the citizens of
one place or state, and inextricably bound up with the being and
welfare of that particular community. Such religions, and people
bred under them, would have met Christianity, not so much with
criticism of its doctrines, or with rival doctrines of their own, as
with ideas and a frame of mind so alien to a spiritual and universal
religion like the Gospel that it would have found no foothold in
attacking them. Conceive the force with which what even in the
second century after Christ the heathen objector urged, ' It is
not creditable to alter the customs handed down to us from our
fathers,' 1 would have come from the Roman of the earlier Repub-
lic, or the Greek of the times of freedom. Nay, we may without
rashness hazard the conjecture that had it been possible for the
Gospel to overcome these conditions it would have done so prema-
turely and with loss ; that they were in their time and place minis-
ters of good ; that they were bound up with that vigorous energy
of development within one small limited horizon, by which, as
we shall see, the preparation of the heathen world was carried
out.
It was the negative aid of the Empire to Christianity that it
destroyed these. But it lent more positive help. It created a
demand, or at least a need, for a universal religion. Of this
there are several proofs. The religious phenomena of the time
other than Christianity supply the first. There is an attempt, or
more than one attempt, to provide such a religion. There is the
attempt by way of comprehension, of making all the gods live
together as joint inhabitants of a common Pantheon. There is the
attempt by way of construction, in the worship of the one Power
about which there was no doubt, the Goddess Rome, and of the
Emperor, her deified representative. There is also, we may perhaps
add, the attempt by way of philosophic thought. For philosophy
at this time had a religious bent which increased not improbably
as the circulation of Christian thought stole unknown through the
veins of society ; and it felt after the One Being whose Personal
existence and Fatherhood it waveringly discerned, but whom yet
it could not steadily distinguish from a personified order of nature.
Such a religious idea, needed to complete Cicero's commonwealth
1 Clem. Alex., Protrept, ex. init.
1 i 8 The Religion of the Incarnation.
of the Universe comprehending gods and men, may be seen with
increasing clearness in Seneca, Epictetus, and Aurelius. The need
of a universal religion is thus directly shown. But other proofs, as
clear though less direct, are to be drawn from the other depart-
ments of human thought. For literature was already a unity, into
which whatever the genius of provincials like Lucan, or Seneca,
or Pliny contributed was gathered up. And it is a commonplace
that the greatest constructive result of the imperial period was the
creation or development of a universal code of law.
(2) In what has been last said we have almost crossed the ima-
ginary line by which we were to divide the preparation in external
fact from that which was more inward in thought and feeling. To
deal with this latter may seem almost ridiculous ; since to do so
must involve the presumption of summarizing in a few lines the
drift of the literature and thought of antiquity. Yet, in the briefest
words, it may be possible to suggest a few true outlines of the
shape which an account of that drift should take. It would cer-
tainly represent the mental history of the classical world in its rela-
tion to the Gospel as supplying a double preparation, positive and
negative, — a positive preparation by involving ideas which the Gos-
pel could work into its own fabric, or a frame of mind which would
make for it a suitable ' nidus ' and a receptive soil ; a negative
preparation by the breakdown of human nature's own constructive
and speculative efforts, and by the room thus left for a revelation
which would unite the broken and useless fragments of thought
and minister to unsatisfied needs. And of these the negative
seems the more predominant and the more direct. In so saying
we are guided by what appears to be the teaching of the New
Testament. It seems as though the main upshot of that time was,
and was meant to be, the failure of the world ' by wisdom ' x to find
the truth ; though when this has been recognized and acknowl-
edged, then the world might find, as we may find, that all the
while in this unattaining and abortive thought God had put
impulses from His own wisdom, and prepared materials for His
own coming work. It is the typical history of the ' natural man j '
and though what is primary and indispensable is that the natural
man should learn the poverty and misery of his own state, and be
ready to die to his life, yet the natural man too is the true though
perverted work of God, and in his thoughts and instincts, his
emotions and speculations, must be found a witness to which the
revelation will appeal, and a response which it will elicit. It is
1 1 Cor i, 21.
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 119
impossible not to follow the track so suggested, and to see in the
early stages of Greek life the lusty youth-time of the natural man.
Casting off the bright and truthful simplicity, and the happy story-
telling of its childhood, it begins (we speak of the times between
600 and 450 b. c.) to try its young energies upon the problems of
the world ; it suggests its explanations, quick, ingenious, one-sided,
changing, of how the world came to be : ' it came from water,'
1 from air,' ' from fire ; ' ' it came from the dance of atoms ; ' ' nay,
but these give us only the how ; it came from something more than
these, it came from mind ; ' ' are you sure what it is ? fix upon any
part of it, and you will find it slip through your fingers, for all is
change, and change is all we know : ' these are the quick premieres
ebauches of its young speculation. But already there is a sound of
alarm in the air. That challenge asking whether there was an ' it '
at all ; and if so, whether by parity of cavil there was any solidity
in the other assumptions of thought, in 'good ' and 'evil,' 'truth'
and ' falsehood,' ' beauty ' and 4 ugliness ;' or at least anything
beyond such mere relative and convenient meaning as there is in
' big ' or ' little,' ' thick ' or ' thin,' ' wet ' or ' dry,' — this sobers men.
Thought feels its own dangers. It must try its hand more seriously
at some true constructive work ; and so there follows that great
period in which, steadied by the strong grip and sharp discipline of
the great prophet of natural conscience and natural instinct, Socra-
tes, it addresses itself to its great task of wringing her secret from
the world. It is done and necessarily done in the sheer self-
reliance of the unaided mind, yet of the mind in the fullest sense of
the word ; not the mere critical understanding, but the whole spir-
itual and rational energy of the man, not disowning its depen-
dence on a discipline of character and a severe and painful training
of its own powers. The results, so splendid and yet so inadequate,
so rich in great intuitions and suggestions, so patient and success-
ful in much of its detail, is preserved to us in the work of Plato and
Aristotle. Christian thought can never be interested in disparaging
that work ; Christian thinkers at different times have done special
honor to different aspects of it ; and the position of Aristotle in the
works of Dante, and of Aquinas, and in the frescoes of the Spanish
chapel, is the sign of the ungrudged admiration given by what in
our modern way we might regard as among the least appreciative
and discriminating of Christian times. But the most ungrudging
admiration cannot prevent our seeing, and history compels us to
see, what it lacked. It lacked a foundation upon a Rock. It had
the certainty, if certainty at all, which belongs to profound intui-
tions and to a wide interpretation of experience, not that which
120 The Religion of the Incarnation.
makes a definite, settled, and, above all, communicable conviction.
All the while narrower, pettier, more captious, or more ordinary
minds had been asking ''what is truth ' in a very different spirit;
had displayed the independence and captiousness of youth, and not
its hopeful and trustful creativeness. And more and more this
lower element began to prevail. When it became a question, not
of projecting systems which should impress and absorb the higher
minds of a few generations, but of providing that which should pass
on with men, the common run of men, into the advancing years,
and stand the strain of the world's middle life ; then it was found
that the human mind unaided was more powerful to destroy than
to build or to maintain. The dark horse of Plato's chariot pulled
down his fellow ; in the unaided human understanding the critical
faculty proved stronger than the constructive ; without the point of
attachment in a central truth to which men's high thoughts could
reach and cling, or (to change the figure) without a clearly dis-
closed goal of truth towards which they could be seen to tend and
converge, they could not maintain or justify themselves ; ' the car-
nal mind ' was against them and unworthy of them ; as regards any
real adoption of them by mankind for fruitful and trustworthy con-
victions, they passed away, according to that law of which the
modern poet speaks : —
' Eternal hopes are man's,
Which when they should maintain themselves aloft
Want due consistence : like a pillar of smoke,
That with majestic energy from earth
Rises, but, having reached the thinner air,
Melts and dissolves, and is no longer seen.' l
We shall not be wrong in saying that the course of philosophy
after Aristotle displayed increasingly the collapse of the experiment
of speculative self-reliance. Scepticism was not confined to the
' Sceptics,' nor even shared only by the Epicureans ; it deeply
underlay the philosophy of the Stoics. But as with advancing
life men, baffled in their early sanguineness, fall back (both for
good and evil) and content themselves with the energies of prac-
tical life, so the mind of that day, baffled and despairing of the
speculative problem, did not abandon, but transferred, its self-
reliance ; men threw themselves with a sort of defiance into the
organization of conduct ; ' imperturbableness ' and ' self-sufficiency '
became watchwords of their thought. 2 This is the character of
Stoicism ; this explains its vogue and wide indirect influence ; its
3 Wordsworth, Excursion, iv. 2 'Arapa^la (Epicurean) : avrapKeia.
iv. Preparation in History for Christ, 121
curious likeness to its apparently quite alien contemporary, Epicu-
reanism, in a common cultivation of self-sufficingness ; and, finally,
its ready alliance with the natural tendencies of Roman character
when it passed from Greece to Rome.
Here again was a great experiment, which had no mean success.
We admire almost with awe its unsparing thoroughness, its austerity,
its unworldliness, its courage, its endurance. In its later forms,
when some power has touched it with gentleness, we yield it even a
warmer and tenderer admiration. Only what we cannot do is to
disguise its failure as a great spiritual experiment. We cannot for-
get how it left the mass of men untouched, how it concentrated
strength by what it neglected of human sympathy and effort, how
it revealed a disease and palsy of human nature which it could not
cure, how at its heart it had no certainty of conviction to give
peace and to resist the forces of decay. Humanity will never,
perhaps, wind itself higher. But it was a height on which human
strength is insufficient to stand. There lacked a sure word of
truth ; the joy and fruitfulness of an inspiration ; a grace which
could minister to the weakness, as well as summon the forces, of
human nature. We cannot be blind to its failure unless we share
it ; unless, that is, we are trying to satisfy ourselves by some philo-
sophy of life which misses its secrets, has no key to many of its
problems, and at heart despairs of its solution. The experiment
of moral self-reliance, then, failed in its turn.
But we spoke of a positive as well as a negative upshot to all
this Gentile history ; a positive contribution to the preparation for
Christ. Where shall we look for this? Surely alongside of, and
in the same plane with, the failures. If one chief result of the
history of the ancient world was to exhibit the insufficiency of
man's efforts to find truth and righteousness and life, this must
be completely shown in proportion as the efforts were noble, and
therefore in proportion as they realized (though, at the moment,
only for disappointment) the capacities, the possibilities, the true
desires and ideals of man. If man the race, like man the indi-
vidual, was finally to find salvation by dying to himself, to his own
natural man, he could only do this when it had been adequately
and magnificently proved both that he could not save himself, and
how splendidly worth saving he was. He must do his best, that
he may despair of his best. Do we not feel that this is just what
was worked out by the histories of Greece and Rome ? They are
splendid experiments of human power. Diverse in their method,
they combine in this result. In Greece the experiment is by way
of spontaneity, of free lively development, conditioned only by its
122 The Religion of the Incarnation.
own instincts of taste and beauty. And Rome represents the
alternative plan of seeking strength by discipline, by subordination,
by distrust of novelty, by sacrifice of individuality to the corporate
life, and of sentiment and opinion to the rule of law. Both realize
deathless types of matured human life, of its beauty, its brilliant
graces, its dignity, its honor, its strength. Perhaps, according to
the one-sidedness which limits so severely the works and lives of
men, .it might have been impossible that these possibilities of his
nature should have been first realized with the same solidity and
fulness in presence of those mighty truths, speaking of what was
above man, which brooded over the history of the Jews and came
forth into the world with the Gospel. Yet they are indispensable
to the fulness of the Christian work ; they are the human material ;
and that material must be first-rate in its kind. We owe it per-
haps permanently to Greece and Rome that we recognize fully the
grace of God's original workmanship in man, the validity of his
instincts, his individual value, the sacredness and strength of all
his natural social bonds, the wisdom and power possessed by his
incorporated life. These are things which we could never have
realized if all the world had been brought up in the barbarous
societies of ancient Europe or under the great despotisms of Egypt
and Asia. The religions of Asia may perhaps show us by contrast
the immense importance to a religion of being able to build with
sound and adequate materials on the human side. That Greece
and Rome did contribute specially in this way to the work of the
true religion, may be shown by the way in which men have again
and again turned back to these original sources for fresh impulses
of liberty or vigor.
But these things had their day and passed. The age of Pericles
and of Demosthenes, the great days of the Roman Republic, are
only epochs in the history, long past at the era of our Lord.
We look to see whether there is any positive preparation for Him
and His Gospel in the whole drift of that history, and especially
in tendencies which took a developed form closer to the era of
Christianity. 1
General and popular impressions about the character and course
of the history will put us on the track of a true answer. It is
impossible to look at the history of the classical v/orld without get-
1 The words 'era of Christianity' are used intentionally rather than the
more precise 'era of Christ,' because anything which (without being influ-
enced unless in the most impalpable way by Christianity) prepared the world
through the first and even the second century of the era to receive the
Gospel may be fairly included as preparation for the revelation of Christ.
IV. Preparation in History for Christ. 1 2 3
ting a double impression, that it is a history of failure and degen-
eracy, and yet that it is a history of bettering and progress. If we
take the world at the Christian era, the times of political brilliancy
and energy are over, and men are sinking into a uniformity of
servility and stagnation ; morally the ancient severity is lost, and
the laws of Augustus are feebly coping with the results of a general
dissoluteness as to morality and marriage ; economically society is
disfigured by a vast slave system, by the disappearance of honest
and thriving free labor, and by great developments of luxury and
pauperism; in literature, though it is the 'golden age,' the signs
are not wanting, in artificiality and the excessive study of form, of
imminent rapid decline into the later rhetorical culture ; in philo-
sophy speculation had run itself out into scepticism and self-destruc-
tion ; and in religion a disbelief in the ancient gods and a doubt
of all Divine providence is matter of open profession. And yet
there is a bettering. The laws of the Empire become a model of
humanity, equitableness, and simplicity. Seneca and Epictetus
rise to thoughts of moral purity and sublimity and delicacy which
at times seem hardly unworthy of the New Testament ; and their
humane and comprehensive ideas have cast off the limitations
which the narrow life of Greek cities set to those of their greater
predecessors.
Here then is a great clearing of the stage, and a great predis-
posing of thought and sentiment, for a religion which proclaimed
a good tidings for all men without distinction of ' Jew or Greek,
Barbarian and Scythian, bond or free ; ' for a religion of compas-
sion ; for a religion wholly spiritual and unpolitical. There are
traces distinct and widespread of special tendencies to such a
religion, and they are connected with the best side of the life of
the time. The enormous diffusion of the ' collegia ' or clubs, in
which the members were drawn together without distinction of
rank, or even of free and slave, in a partly religious bond, shows
the instinct of the time feeling for a religion of brotherhood.
There is a delicacy of family life as seen in Plutarch, in Pliny, in
Fronto, which shows readiness for a religion such as should regen-
erate the simple instincts and relations of humanity. In the posi-
tion and function of the philosophers (who sometimes half remind
one of mendicant friars, 1 sometimes of the confessor or chaplain
in families of rank, in their relation to education and to the vicis-
situdes of later life) there is implied a concentration of thought
and interest upon character and upon the discipline of individual
1 Capes, Age of Antonines.
1 24 The Religion of the Incarnation.
life, a sensibility to spiritual need, which all indicates a ground pre-
pared for Christian influence. And, finally, whether it be from the
stealing in of Eastern influences, or from a reaction against the
cold scepticism of Ciceronian times, or from a half-political, half-
genuine sense of the necessity of religion to society, or from a
sort of awed impression created by the marvellous fortune of
Rome, or from the steady impact of the clear strong deep religious
faith of the Jews scattered everywhere, and everywhere, as we
know, to an extraordinary extent leavening society, or, as time
went on, from a subtle influence of Christianity not yet accepted
or even consciously known, — there was, it is notorious, a return
towards religion in the mind of men. The temples were again
thronged ; priests became philosophers. In Neo-Platonism thought
again looks upward, and the last phase of Greek philosophy was,
in the phrase of the dry and dispassionate Zeller, 1 ( a philosophy of
Revelation ' which sought knowledge partly in the inner revelation
of the Deity and partly in religious tradition. This movement was
indeed a rival of Christianity ; it came to put out some of its
strength in conscious rivalry, or it tried in Gnostic heresies to
rearrange Christianity on its own lines ; but it was the result and
witness of a disposition of men's hearts which made way for the
Gospel.
It was not, then, merely true that the failures of the heathen
world left it empty, hungering, distrustful of itself; nor merely that
the world of that particular epoch gave extraordinary facilities of an
outward kind for the diffusion of a world-religion ; but also that in
some of its most characteristic and deepest workings, in thoughts and
dispositions which it had purchased at a great cost of ancient glories
and liberties and of all that was proud and distinctive in Greek and
Roman religion, there was that which would make men ready for
Christianity and cause it to be to them, as it could not have been
to their ancestors, intelligible, possible, and congenial.
II. Dr. Westcott has drawn, in a useful phrase, the invaluable
distinction between a tendency towards, and a tendency to produce,
the truth of Christianity. 2
1 Philosophy of the Greeks: Eclectics, p. 20 (tr. Alleyne).
2 Gospel of the Resurrection (3d ed.), p. 72. It is interesting to notice
that according to so dispassionate an observer as M. Gaston Boissier (La
Religion Romaine d'Auguste aux Antonins), who has done so much to trace
the better tendencies of the imperial period, the evidence suggests some such
distinction, even as regards some of the main practical results of Christi-
anity. For example, there was a tendency to ameliorate slavery on princi-
ples of general humanity, but there was no hint of a possibility of an end to
slavery. There were some signs of mutual interest between classes, but no
IV. Preparation in History for Christ. 125
If we have been able to trace a real shaping of the lines inward
and outward of the world's order disposing it for a true religion,
the impression which this makes on us must be enormously increased
if (r) we can see that that religion, when it comes, is most obviously
a thing which comes to the Gentile world, and does not grow out of
it either by blending of tendencies, or by constructive individual
genius ; and if (2) we are able to indicate another and perfectly
distinct course of shaping and preparation which at the required
moment yielded the material and equipment for the religion which
was to go out upon the world.
That this was so is in a sense upon the face of history. The
Christian Church, it has been said, appeared at first as a Jewish
sect. ' The salvation ' Christ declared was ' of the Jews.' He
came ( ' not to destroy but) to fulfil ' the system amidst which He
arose. Such sayings put us upon the track of a special preparation
for the Gospel. Let us follow it. And (as the phrase is chosen to
imply) we look here for something kindred indeed in many of its
methods to that general preparation which we have hitherto traced,
but yet more coherent, positive, and concentrated. For we pass
in a sense at this point (to use language of the day), from the prep-
aration of an environment suitable to the Gospel, to a preparation
of the organism itself. Such language is obviously open to criti-
cisms and misconceptions of more kinds than one. But it is suffi-
ciently defensible historically and theologically to justify us in gain-
ing the clearness which it gives.
I shall attempt to present the signs of this preparation by con-
sidering successively these three points : —
(1) The relations between Israel and the world at the Christian
era.
(2) The fitness of Israel to be the seed-plot of a world-religion,
and of the world-religion given by Christ.
(3) The character of the process by which the Israel, so fitted,
and so placed, had come to be.
(1) Many a reader of Mommsen's History of Rome will have
been surprised by finding that the ideal political construction'
which the writer's knowledge and imagination have, ascribed to
Caesar was to consist of three elements, — the Roman, the Hellenic,
and the Jewish. 1 Yet striking as the paradox is, it is chiefly in
the facts themselves. Whether we look at the ethnological char-
progress towards the effective appearance of a true philanthrophy such as
the Christian. In such cases, however, the validity of the distinctions must
be debatable and fluctuating. It is absolute as regards the Incarnation.
1 Bk. V. c. xi. The New Monarchy
126 The Religion of the Incarnation.
acter of the Jews amidst a system whose strength is from the West ;
or at their historical position, as a nation in some sense in deca-
dence, with a history of independence and glories long lost ; or at
the minuteness of their original seat, and its insignificance at that
time as (ordinarily) a subordinate district under the Roman pro-
vince of Syria, it is alike surprising that it should be possible to
speak of them as the third factor of the Roman Empire. Yet, in
the main, the same surprise is created by any acquaintance with
the. circumstances of the Jewish Dispersion, as it may be learnt
from easily accessible books, such as Edersheim's or Schurer's. 1
There is first the ubiquity of the race, — testified alike by Josephus,
Strabo, and Philo, and by the witness of inscriptions. They are
everywhere, and everywhere in force throughout the Roman world.
Outside the Roman world their great colonies in Babylon and
Mesopotamia are another headquarters of the race. They are
an eighth part (one million) of the population of Egypt ; they
yield ten thousand at the least to one massacre in Antioch. To
numbers and ubiquity they add privilege in the shape of rights
and immunities, begun by the policy of the successors of Alex-
ander, but vigorously taken up and pushed by Rome as early
as 139 b. c, greatly developed by Caesar, round whose pyre at
Rome they wept, and maintained by the almost consistent pol-
icy of the earlier Empire ; rights of equal citizenship in the
towns where they lived, and equal enjoyment of the boons granted
to citizens ; rights of self-government and internal administra-
tion ; and rights or immunities guarding their distinctive customs,
such as their observance of the Sabbath or their transmission
of tribute to Jerusalem. The opportunities thus secured from with-
out were vigorously turned to account by their trading instinct,
their tenacity, their power of living at a low cost, and above all
by their admirable freemasonry among themselves, which bound
Jews throughout the world into a society of self-help, and must
have greatly assisted the enterprises which depend on facility of
information, communication, and movement. So far we merely
get an impression of their importance. But there are other points
which, while they greatly heighten this impression, add to it that of
remarkable peculiarity. To ask what was their influence plunges
us into a tumult of paradoxes. They had, for example, every-
where the double character of citizens and strangers, speaking the
language of the countries where they dwelt, ' being Antiochenes,'
as Josephus says, ' at Antioch, Ephesians at Ephesus/ and so
1 Edersheim's Life and Times of Jesus the Messiah; Schiirer, History of
the Jewish People in the Time of Jesus Christ.
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. \2J
forth ; possessing and using the rights and franchises of citizens,
and yet every one of them counting the Holy Land his country and
Jerusalem his capital ; respecting the Sanhedrin of Jerusalem as the
supreme authority of the race ; sending up their tribute annually,
flocking thither themselves in vast numbers to keep the feasts, or
again not seldom returning there to die. They possessed in fact
the combined advantages of the most elastic diffusion, and the
strongest national concentration. Such a position could hardly
make their relations to their neighbors entirely simple or harmo-
nious. It ' involved an internal contradiction.' 1 It could not but
be felt that while enjoying all the advantages of citizenship, their
hearts were really elsewhere. From all the religious and social
side of the common life, which in the ancient world was far less
separable from the political than it is now, they were sensibly
aliens. They were visibly making the best of two inconsistent
positions. And accordingly the irritation against them in the
towns (we have a glimpse of it in Acts xix. 34) and the ensuing
encroachments and riots, form as chronic a feature of the position,
as does their protection by the Empire. But the causes of irrita-
tion went wider and deeper. It has been said that ' the feelings
cherished towards the Jews throughout the entire Grseco-Roman
w r orld were not so much those of hatred as of pure contempt.' 2
Their exterior was doubtless unlovely ; a Jewry, as M. Kenan
reminds us, was perhaps not more attractive in ancient than in
modern times. But what was even more offensive, especially to
that cosmopolitan age, and what struck it as altogether the domi-
nant characteristic of the Jews, was their stubborn and inhuman
perversity. They would be unlike all the rest of the world. Taci-
tus has even formulated this for them as the principle guiding
their whole action, reduced to practice in details which were sin-
gularly well fitted to exhibit its offensiveness. 3 His picture should
be read by any one who wishes to realize how cultivated opinion
thought of them ; and, even if evidence were lacking, we can see
that this was just the kind of dislike to be shared by all classes,
cultivated and uncultivated alike. Yet it is against the background
of this intense prejudice, ever more scornful and irritated as it was
exasperated by the incidents of daily contact at close quarters, that
we have to paint the phenomena, as striking and as abundantly
testified, of the vast and penetrating influence of the Jews over
their neighbors. These also lie upon the surface. In very various
degrees multitudes (of whom women doubtless formed a consider-
able majority) adopted the customs and brought themselves into
1 Schurer, II. ii. 273. 2 Schiirer, II. ii. 297. 3 Tac, Hist., v. 4.
128 The Religion of the Incarnation.
connection with the religion of the Jews. The boasts or claims of
Josephus, who refers any sceptical contemporary to ' his own coun-
try or his own family,' are confirmed by the admissions of classical
writers, by the indignant sarcasms directed against the converts,
and by the vivid touches in the Acts of the Apostles. 1 ' Victi vic-
toribus leges dederunt ' is the strong phrase of Seneca, and it was
a very persuasive influence which could cause it to be said that in
Damascus 'nearly the whole female population was devoted to
Judaism ; ' which could give St. Paul's Jewish opponents in the
towns of Greece and Asia Minor the power at one time of raising
the mob, at another of working upon the ' chief ' and ' honorable
women,' the ladies of the upper classes; or which could bring
' almost the whole city ' together in a provincial town because a
new teacher appears in the Jews' synagogue. 2 This influence had
its results in a considerable number of actual proselytes who through
circumcision received admission, somewhat grudging indeed and
guarded, within the Jewish pale, but still more in a much larger
number of adherents (the ' devout persons,' ' devout Greeks etc.,
of the Acts) 3 attracted by the doctrines, and acquainted with the
Scriptures of Israel, who formed a fringe of partly leavened Gentile
life round every synagogue.
We hardly need evidence to show us that to this picture of the
influence of Jew over Gentile, there need to be added another
which will show how the subtle, persuasive, and powerful culture of
the Graeco-Roman world made itself felt upon the Jews of the
Dispersion. The contrast between the Jews of Palestine and those
of the Dispersion, the translation of the Scriptures into Greek, the
rise of a literature which in different ways tried to recommend what
was Jewish to the heathen or to fuse what was Jewish with what
was Greek, the single figure of Philo at Alexandria, are all evi-
dences of an influence, which must have told continually with pen-
etrating power on all that was ablest and most thoughtful in the
Jewish mind. It was not the least considerable result of this that
all the great thoughts and beliefs of Israel learned to talk the lan-
guage of the civilized world, and so acquired before the time of
Christ an adequate and congenial vehicle.
Such was the position of Israel at the Christian era. It was one
which had been gradually brought about during the last three
centuries b. c. ; but it only came to its full growth in the last few
decades (the Jewish settlement in Rome may date from Pompey's
time) under favor of the imperial policy and the peace of the times :
1 Schiirer, II. ii. 308. 2 Acts xvii. 5, xiv. 5, xiii. 50, 44.
3 Acts xiii. 43, etc.
IV. Preparation in History for Christ. 129
and it was soon to change ; indeed the fall of Jerusalem a. d. 70
altered it within and without. Thus it stood complete during the
half-century in which the work of founding the Christian Church
throughout the Empire was accomplished, and then passed away.
We remark upon it how admirable an organization it offered for
the dissemination of a world-religion, originated upon Jewish soil.
The significance of this, occurring at the time when such a religion
actually appeared, is heightened when we observe that the position
had continued long enough fully to try the experiment of what by
its own forces Judaism could accomplish for the world. As St.
James argued, 1 ' Moses had,' now for a long time, ' in every city
them that preach him, being read in the synagogues every Sab-
bath day ' — and it might have so gone on forever without any
conversion of the Gentile world. That world could never have been
drawn within a system, which, however zealous to make proselytes,
had nothing better to offer to those whom it made than that they
might come in, if they liked, and sit down in the lowest place, tol-
erated rather than welcomed, dependents rather than members of
an intensely national community, leaving father and mother and all
that they had, not for a position of spiritual freedom, but for a
change of earthly nationality.
(2) But we trench upon the second question. What was the
nation that held this position of vantage ? What signs are there
about it which suggest a special preparation for a purposed result ?
It is one answer to this question to say that this wonderfully
placed people had, alone among the nations, a genuine faith, a
genuine hope, and a genuine charity. They at least, says Seneca,
when he complains of their influence, ' knew the reasons of their
customs.' There was a raison d'etre to their religion. In a world
which still kept up the forms of worship and respect for gods whose
character and existence could not stand the criticism of its own
best moral and religious insight, any more than that of its scepticism ;
or which was framing for itself thoughts of Deity by intellectual
abstraction ; or which was betraying its real ignorance of the very
idea of God by worshipping the two great powers which, as a matter
of fact, it knew to be mighty, Nature and the Roman Empire, — ■
the Jew had a faith, distinct, colossal, and unfailing, in a Living
God, Maker of heaven and earth. This we may be sure was the
inner secret of the true attraction which drew the hearts of such
men as Cornelius the centurion to the despised and repulsive Jew.
This God, they further believed, was their God for ever and ever.
1 Acts XV. 21.
9
130 The Religion of the Incarnation.
' Let us kneel,' they said, ' before the Lord our Maker, for He is
the Lord our God.' And therefore, let them have gained it how
they may, they had an indomitable hope, or rather, confidence,
which all unpropitiousness of outer appearances had only served to
stimulate, that He would bring them through, that He had a
purpose for them, and that He would bring it to pass : that the
world was no mechanical system of meaningless vicissitudes, but
an order, of which indeed they little realized the scope, moving
under the hand of a Ruler for a purpose of glory and beneficence.
That the confidence of the extraordinary destiny which under this
order was reserved for Israel, as well as the present possession of
the Divine law and covenant, should have produced an intense
sense of unity and fellowship, was a matter of course. The Roman
is obliged to recognize their mutual charity, however deformed, as
he thinks, by their antipathy to all who were not of their kindred
and faith.
But such an answer to our question, though it brings before us
a sign, and a sign of the very highest, that is of the moral and
spiritual, order, does not perhaps set us at the point from which
the whole meaning of the position opens to us most naturally. It
may do this more effectually to ask whether there was any material
in Judaism for a world-religion, and for that world-religion which
grew out of it ?
Perhaps if we performed the futile task of trying to imagine a
world-religion, we should, with some generality of consent, define
as its essentials three or four points which it is striking to find
were fundamentals of the religion of Israel, and at that time of no
other. We should require a doctrine of God, lofty, spiritual,
moral : a doctrine of man which should affirm and secure his
spiritual being and his immortality : and a doctrine of the relations
between God and man, which should give reality to prayer and to
the belief in providence, and root man's sense of responsibility in
the fact of his obligation to a righteousness outside and above
himself, a doctrine in short of judgment. It needs no words to
show how the religion of Israel in its full development not only
taught these truths, but gave them the dignity and importance
which belong to the corner-stones of a religion.
But then along with these that religion taught other beliefs as
clearly conceived, which seemed to be of the most opposite char-
acter : just as distinctive and exclusive as the former were univer-
sal. It taught the obligation in every detail of a very stringent
written law, and of a ceremonial and sacrificial system, centred at
Jerusalem, and forming the recognized communication between
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 1 3 1
God and man. It taught a special election of Israel and covenant
of God with Israel, a special purpose and future for Israel. Nor
was the conception of the participation by other nations in the
blessings of Messiah's rule (to which we, reading for example the
prophecies of Isaiah in the light of the sequel, cannot but give a
dominant place), more to an Israelite than a striking incident in
a distinctively Israelite glory.
It would seem then, combining these two sides, that there was
in Israel the foundation on which a religion for the world could
be laid, but that it could only be made available under stringent
and, as it might appear, impossible conditions. An attempt to
make a religion by extracting the universal truths in Judaism
would have been simply to desert at once the vantage-ground
which it was proposed to occupy, because it would have conflicted
directly with every Jewish instinct, belief, tradition, and hope. It
the thing was to be done, it must be done by some power and
teaching which, while extricating into clearness all that was truest
in the theology and morality of Israel, was also able to show to
the judgment of plain men and earnest seekers that it constituted
a true climax of Israel's history, a true fulfilment of the promises
and prophecies which Jews had now made matters of notoriety
everywhere, a true final cause of all the peculiar and distinctive
system of Israel. It must be able to take Israel to witness, and
therefore it must be able to convince men not only that it had a
high theology and a refined morality, but that God had ' visited
His people : ' and that ' what He had spoken unto the fathers He
had so fulfilled.' It must produce accordingly not only doctrine,
but fact. It must carry on, what was implied in the whole dis-
cipline of Israel, the assertion that truth was not a matter of
speculation, but a word from God ; or the knowledge of a dealing
of God with man clothing itself with reality, embodying itself in
fact, making a home for itself in history. It is true that the
Judaism of the synagogue in its idolatry of the law, had assumed
the appearance of a paper system, but in that form it had no
promise or power of expansion : and on the side where the reli-
gion of Israel admitted of development into some higher and wider
state, it was distinctly a religion not of theory or teaching only,
but of Divine action revealing itself in history.
It will not escape any observer of the beginnings of Christianity
that it was precisely this attempt which the Gospel of Jesus made.
If we watch St. Paul speaking to his Gentile audiences at Lystra
or Athens, he brings to bear upon the instincts of his hearers
the strong magnet of a clear and definite Theism. But these
132 The Religion of the Incarnation.
addresses themselves implicitly contain another element ; and we
must now look to them for examples of the process, the careful
earnest process, by which the Gospel did its rapid and yet most
gradual work of conversion. Unquestionably, as St. Paul himself
affirms, and as the Acts and the early apologetic writers show us,
it was done by asserting and making good the assertion with care-
ful proof and reasoning, that in the historical appearance and char-
acter of Jesus Christ, in his treatment while on earth, in Hie
resurrection and heavenly exaltation, was to be found the true,
natural, and legitimate fulfilment of that to which the Scriptures
in various ways, direct and indirect, pointed, and of that which
the hope of Israel, slowly fashioned by the Scriptures under the
discipline of experience, had learned to expect. This could be
pressed home most directly on Jews, but it was available also for
the large prepared class among Gentiles, to whom the pre-exis-
tence of these prophecies and anticipations was known as a matter
of fact, and to some of whom the Jewish Scriptures had been a per-
sonal discipline ; the truth of the Gospel was one ' now made
manifest and by the Scriptures of the prophets, according to the
commandment of the everlasting God, made known to all nations
for the obedience of faith.' The double requirement was fulfilled,
and a religion, intrinsically universal and eternal, was seen by spirit-
ually clear-sighted eyes to be in a most real and organic sense the
flower of Israel's stalk.
(3) If it has appeared that in the placing of the nation at the
era, and in its character and belief, there was something much to
be ' w r ondered at,' and, more definitely, something marvellously
suited, not indeed to generate such a religion as that of the Gos-
pel, but to foster and assist its growth when the seed of Divine
fact should be sown on the prepared soil ; then we shall ask,
finally, whether there is anything of like striking significance in the
way in which this state of things had come about? Let us pass by
the causes by which the people of Israel obtained their external
position. These, even including a thing so remarkable as the spon-
taneous restoration by an Oriental Empire of a deported people,
are not in themselves different from the ordinary workings of his-
tory ; though in combination they may contribute to deepen the
impression of a hand fashioning out of many elements, and in
many ways, a single great result. But how had the Jews come to
be what they were? how had they gained the religious treasure
which they possessed, and the tenacity of religious and national
life which played guardian to it? The whole course of Israel's
history must, in one sense, give the answer to this question : and
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 133
there are no controversies more difficult or more unsolved than
those which are now raging round the problem of that course, its
origin, stages, and order. But it may be possible to make some
reflections on it without entangling ourselves very much in those
controversies.
(a) At the outset it is impossible not to be struck by the inter-
est which the Jews themselves felt in the process of their history.
That interest belongs to the very centre of their life and thought.
It is not an offshoot of national vainglory, for (as has been so
often remarked) it resulted in a record full-charged with the inci-
dents of national failure and defection : it is not the result of a
self conscious people analyzing its own moral and other develop-
ment, for though the moral judgment is indeed always at work in
the narratives and the poems, it is more occupied in drawing out
the teaching of recurring sequences of sin and punishment than in
framing a picture of the whole. The result is to lay a picture of
development before us, but the aim is to treasure and record every
detail of God's dealings with the nation of His choice. This is
what gives continuity and unity to the whole ; this is what lends
to it its intense and characteristic uniqueness. And when we look
steadily at this, we perceive afresh, what familiarity almost con-
ceals from us, the distinctive quality of Israel's religion ; that it is
not a system of teaching, nor a tradition of worship, nor a personal
discipline, though it may include all these ; but that it is in itself
a belief in the working of God, Who is the God of all the earth,
but specially the God of Israel, and Who works indeed every-
where, but in an altogether special sense in Israel. In reflecting
on their history they contemplate the object of their faith. Hence
truth is to them not a philosophic acquisition, but lies in the words
which had come from God faithfully treasured and received : it
is revealed in word and act : goodness, in man or nation, is the
faithful adherence to those conditions, under which the good pur-
pose of God can work itself out and take effect : it is a corres-
pondence to a purpose of grace : and the centre and depositary of
their hope is neither the human race, nor any association for moral
and religious effort, but an organism raised by Him who raises all
the organisms of nature from a chosen seed, and drawn onwards
through the stages by which family passes into nation and king-
dom, and then through that higher discipline by which the natural
commonwealth changes into the spiritual community of the faithful
' remnant.' If any one will try to realize the impression which
Christianity made upon the heathen world, he will not fail to see
how the new truth was able to impress men because it found these
134 The Religion of the Incarnation.
conceptions of revelation, grace, and an organic society of God's
choice and shaping, all so strange and so impressive to the heathen
world, ingrained as the natural elements of religion in the men
whom it made its instruments.
But why did the Jews so regard their history? For the answer
w~ may revert to the other question, What made them what they
were at the Christian era? For they had gone through a crisis
calculated to destroy both their existence and their religion. It
has been in fashion with some writers to emphasize the resem-
blances, and minimize the differences, between the religion of
Israel and that of its neighbors. In view of this it becomes
important to note the specific peril of ancient religions. That
peril was that the close association of the nation with its god
caused the failure of the one to appear a failure of the other, and
to endanger or destroy the respect paid to him. The religion of
a subdued or ruined people was, as we may say, a demonstrated
failure. Sennacherib's defiance of Hezekiah urges this with a
conqueror's irony. 1 The case of the Ten Tribes had probably
given an illustration of it within the circle of Israel itself. And in
Judah, upon any showing, there was enough of the feeling that
Jehovah was responsible for His people, of the conviction that He
would certainly protect His own, of the confidence resting on
prosperity and liable to be shaken by its loss, to make the downfall
of the state, carrying with it that of the Temple and the outer
order of religion, an enormous peril to the religion itself, and with
it to the very existence of Israel. It is not difficult to discern the
agency by which the peril was averted. That agency was Prophecy.
Modern criticism, though it may quarrel with the inspiration or
predictive power of the prophets, has given fresh and unbiassed
witness to their importance as an historic phenomenon. Kuenen, 2
for example, points out how at every turning-point in Israel's later
history there stands a man who claims to bring a word of God to
the people. Prof. Huxley, 3 in a recent article, has told us that ' a
vigorous minority of Babylonian Jews,' that is, the Jews upon
whom the full forces of prophecy bore, ' created the first con-
sistent, remorseless, naked Monotheism, which, so far as history
records, appeared in the world . . . and they inseparably united
therewith an ethical code, which, for its purity and its efficiency as
a bond of social life, was, and is, unsurpassed.' Of whatever fact
may underlie this description, the prophets are at once evidence
and authors.
1 Isaiah xxxvi. 18. 2 Hibbert Lectures, 1882, p. 231.
3 Nineteenth Century, April, 18S6.
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 135
Now prophecy confronted the impending peril in the name of
Jehovah ; on the one side it displayed the enemy (whether as by
Isaiah it prescribed a bound to his advance, or as by Jeremiah
announced the catastrophe to be wrought by him) as himself
utterly in Jehovah's hands, His axe or saw for discipline upon the
trees of the forest ; on the other side it showed that Jehovah's
obligation to Israel was conditioned by His essential righteousness ;
that national disaster might be Jehovah's necessary vengeance, and
that His purpose for Israel — which it reasserted with fullest
emphasis — might need to be realized for an Israel purified by
such discipline, a shoot from the stock of the felled tree, the
remnant of an ' afflicted and poor people.' l And prophecy was
beforehand with all this ; it was not an afterthought to explain
away a calamity ; and so it fashioned in Israel at least a core of
spiritual faith, to which outward disaster of polity and religion,
however destructive, was not confounding, and which had stamina
enough in it to draw wholesome though bitter nourishment from
the hard Captivity discipline. This, when the flood came, was an
ark for Israel's religion, and, in its religion, for the national life,
which re-organized itself under new conditions round the nucleus
of the religion.
Thus, at the crisis and hinge of the historical development
which issued in the wonderfully placed and constituted Israel of
Christ's time, and which was crowned by the New Religion, we
find this agency, which in itself would arrest our wonder. The
more we look at it, the more wonderful it is. Every suggestion of
comparison with heathen oracles, divination and the rest, can only
bring out with more vivid effect the contrast and difference between
it and all such things. It claims by the mouth of men transpar-
ently earnest and honest, to speak from God. It brings with it
the highest credentials, moral, spiritual, historical : moral, for it
spends what at first sight seems all its strength in the intrepid and
scathing rebuke of the evils immediately round it, especially in the
high places of society, against the lust, cruelty, avarice, frivolity,
insolence, foul worships, which it found so rankly abundant ;
spiritual, for it speaks the language of an absolutely unworldly
faith, and accomplishes a great spiritual work, such as we can
hardly over-estimate, unless indeed with Prof. Huxley we distort
its proportions so as to prejudice the earlier religion from which it
sprang or the Christianity to which it contributed : historical,
because occurring at the very crisis of Israel's history (750-550),
1 Isaiah x. 15 ; xi. 1 ; Zeph. iii. 12.
136 The Religion 6f the Incarnation.
it gained credence and authority from the witness of events, and
dealt with an emergency of the most perilous and bewildering
kind, as not the most skilful opportunist could have dealt with it,
by a use, as sublime as simple, of the principles of righteousness
and faith. If we compare what the prophets did for their con-
temporaries and what they did for the future of Israel and the
world, and see that this was done, not by two sets of utterances
working two different ways, but by a single blended strain of
prophecy, we gain a double impression, of which the twofold force
is astonishing indeed. It is gained without pressing their claim to
predictive power, at least beyond the horizons of their own period.
But it is impossible for any careful and candid reader of the words
of the prophets to stop there, and not to feel that there is another
element in them, not contained in a passage here and there but
forever reappearing, interwoven with the rest, and evidently felt
by the prophets themselves to be in some sense necessary for the
vindication and completion of their whole teaching. It is an
element of anticipation and foresight. We see that this is so, and
we see in part the method of it. It is bound up with, it springs
out of all that is spiritually and morally greatest in the prophets.
Their marvellous, clear-sighted, steady certainty that the Lord who
sitteth above rules all, that He is holy, and that unrighteousness in
man or nations cannot prevail ; their insight piercing through the
surface of history to underlying laws of providential order ; the
strange conviction or consciousness, felt throughout the nation but
centring in the prophets, that this God had a purpose for Israel ; —
these deep things, which, however they came and whatever we
think of them, make Israel's distinctive and peculiar glory, were
accompanied by, and issued in, anticipations of a future which
would vindicate and respond to them. Just as the belief in a
future life for God's children was not taught as a set doctrine to
the Jews, but grew with the growth of their knowledge of the
Living and Holy God, and of man's relation as a spiritual being to
Him, so with the predictions of which we speak. As it was given
to the prophets to realize the great spiritual truths of present
because eternal moment which they taught, it was given to them
also to discern that these truths pointed to a future which should
bring them vindication. The cloudy time of trial and confusion
would one day come to a close ; the Sun whose rays they caught
would one day shine out ; the partial and passing deliverances in
which they taught men to see God's hand must one day issue in
a deliverance of deeper moment, of lasting and adequate signifi-
cance ; there would be an unbaring of God's arm, a manifesting of
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 137
His power to decide, to justify, to condemn, and it would be seen
in some final form why and how Israel was, in a distinctive sense,
the people of the God of the whole earth ; that union between
God and His people, of which the prophets were themselves medi-
ators and which was so miserably imperfect and so constantly
broken, would one day be complete ; and, finally, even the very
instruments which He was using in the present, the Anointed
King, the chosen Royal House, the Prophet-Servant of God, the
holy hill of Zion, were charged with a meaning of which the
significance was only in the future to become clear. Thus in this
free, deep, spiritual — let us say it out, inspired — manner the
predictions of prophecy emerge and gather shape. Thus among
the people which was most conservative and jealous of its own
religious privilege, the promise most deeply cherished was one in
which all nations of the earth should be blessed, and there is heard
the strange announcement of a 'new covenant.' Thus it comes
about that the most satisfying and satisfied of all religions becomes
the one which, in its deepest meaning, in the minds of its most
faithful followers, strains forward most completely beyond itself.
Thus, as it has been said, ' Prophecy takes off its crown and lays
it at the feet of One who is to be.' Thus a people who have
become intensely and inexorably monotheistic and to whom the
Deity becomes more and more remote in awful majesty so that
they do not dare to name His Name, carry down with them
Scriptures which discover the strange vision of a human King
with Divine attributes and strain towards some manifestation of
God in present nearness. Thus amidst the pictures in which, with
every varying detail, using the scenery, the personages, the nations,
the ideas of its own day, the instinct of prophetic anticipation
finds expression, there emerges, with gradually gathering strength,
a definite Hope, and some clear lineaments of that which is to be.
For, be it observed, at this point interpretation, declaring what
the prophets seem to us to-day to mean, passes into and gives
way to historical fact. The most sceptical cannot deny either that
the words in which the prophets spoke of the future did, as a mat-
ter of fact, crystallize into a hope, — a hope such as has no parallel
in history, and of which distorted rumors were able to stir and
interest the heathen world ; or that they were, long before the
time of Jesus, interpreted as sketching features, some general and
shadowy, some curiously distinct and particular, of Messiah's work
and kingdom.
And then, face to face with this, stands another fact as confess-
edly historical. For, ' in the fulness of the time,' it did appear to
138 The Religioii of the Incarnation.
men of many kinds who had the books in their hands, — men with
every reason for judging seriously and critically, and in most cases
with the strongest prejudice in favor of an adverse judgment, —
that these prophecies were fulfilled in a King and a Kingdom such
as they never dreamt of till they saw them. It would be a strange
chapter in the history of delusion if there were no more to add.
But there is to add, first, that the King and the Kingdom whereto
(in no small part upon the seeming perilous ground of this cor-
respondence with prophecy) these men gave their faith, have
proved to win such a spiritual empire as they claimed ; and, fur-
ther, that men like ourselves, judging at the cool distance of two
thousand years, are unable to deny that in the truest sense of ' ful-
filment/ as it would be judged by a religious mind, Jesus and His
Kingdom do i fulfil the prophets,' — fulfil their assertion of a
unique religious destiny for Israel by which the nations were to
profit, of a time when the righteousness of God should be revealed
for the discomfiture of pride and sin and for the help of the meek,
of a nearer dwelling of God with His people, of a new covenant,
and of the lasting reign of a perfect Ruler.
To some minds it may weaken, but to others it will certainly
intensify, the impression thus created, if they are asked to observe
that now and again there occur in the Jewish Scriptures words,
passages, events, in which with startling distinctness, independence,
and minuteness there stand forth features of what was to be. It is
as if the anticipation which fills the air with glow focussed itself
here and there in sparkling points of light which form and flash
and fade away again. We may confidently assert that in the case
of such passages as the 2 2d and 110th Psalms, or the 9th and
53d chapters of Isaiah, the harder task is for him who will deny
than for him who will assert a direct correspondence between
prediction and fulfilment. If they stood alone, general scientific
considerations might make it necessary to undertake the harder
task. Standing out as they do from such a context and back-
ground as has been here indicated, the interpretation which sees
in them the work of a Divine providence shaping out a ' sign ' for
the purpose which in each Christian age, and especially in the first,
it has actually subserved, is the interpretation which is truest to all
the facts. They are the special self-betrayal of a power which is
at work throughout, of which the spiritual ear hears the sound,
though we are often unable distinctly to see the footprints.
It seems then impossible, upon such a view of the phenomena
of prophecy as has been here roughly and insufficiently indicated,
to deny that whatever appearance of preparation we may dis-
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 139
cern in the condition, outward and inward, of the Jews in the
time of Christ, is strongly corroborated by a like appearance of
preparation in the process by which they had become what they
were.
{b) We have selected out of all the foregoing history the epoch
and the influence of the prophets for several reasons. They pre-
side over the most critical period of Israel's history. They seem
to bring to most pronounced expression the spirit and character
which pervades the whole of that history. They are known to us
through their own writings ; and we are therefore on ground where
(comparatively speaking) the premises are uncontroverted. And
as it is the fashion, perhaps, to discredit the argument of prophecy,
— partly, no doubt, on account of the technical form in which
it was ordinarily presented, — it is important to reassert that in all
its main strength that argument holds its ground, reinforced,
indeed, as we think, by the increased power to apprehend its
breadth and solidity which our more historically trained modern
minds should have gained. But selection of what is most salient
should imply no neglect of the rest ; and the argument, or view of
the facts, — which has here for clearness sake been abbreviated,
and mainly centralized upon the work and implications of proph-
ecy, — can be deepened as the drift of the great lines of Israel's
discipline is more deeply realized. Thus, for example, little or
nothing has been here said of the Law. Yet, without foreclosing
any discussion as to its sources and development, we can see that
the law of God was a factor in every stage of Israel's history, and
that in the making of the prepared Israel of Christ's time the law
in its fullest and most developed shape was, and had been for ages,
a paramount influence. No influence more concentrated and
potent can be found in history. And to see the deepest drift of
it we have no need to speculate on what might have been, or was
sure to be. Historical documents point us to what was. The
Epistles to the Romans and the Galatians, and the Epistle to the
Hebrews, lay open respectively two ways of its working. On
the one side it appears as a great witness for righteousness. Men
were schooled to live under a sense of peremptory obligation ; to
comply scrupulously, exactly, submissively with an unquestioned
authority. This sense and temper is liable to great abuse : it
lends itself when abused to a mechanical morality, to a morbid
casuistry, to the complacency of an external perfectness. It was
so abused very widely among the Jews. But it is nevertheless an
indispensable factor in a true morality, to which it lends the spe-
cial power of command ; and in Israel it conferred this power
140 The Religion of the Incarnation.
because it connected obligation with the will of a righteous God.
This is expressed in the repeated sanction, ' I am the Lord your
God,' following precept after precept of the law; and in the sum-
mary claim, ' Be ye holy, for I am holy.' Evidently here there is
that which transcends all mechanical schemes of obedience ; there
is an infinite standard. As such it pointed and impelled onwards
towards the true religion in which faith and holiness should be
entirely at one. As such meanwhile it stimulated and dismayed
the deeper spirits; stimulating them by the loftiness of its demand,
dismaying them by the proved impossibility of that perfect com-
pliance which alone was compliance at all. Thus the foundations
were laid of a temper at once robust and humble, confident and
diffident ; though they were laid upon a contradiction which the
law had in itself no power to resolve. There was indeed (here
we take up the guidance of the Epistle to the Hebrews) one part
of the law which acknowledged that contradiction, which half
promised to resolve it, but having no real power to do so, could
only shape and deepen the demand for some solution. This was,
of course, the sacrificial system. The sacrificial system opens up
quite other thoughts from those of strict demand and strict obedi-
ence. It points to quite another side of religious and moral
development. Yet it starts from the same truth of a Holy God
Who requires, and inasmuch as He is holy must require, a per-
fect obedience. Only it acknowledges the inevitable fact of dis-
obedience. It embodies the sense of need. It appeals to, and as
part of the Divine law it reveals, a quality in the Supreme Good-
ness which can go beyond commanding and condemning, to
forgive and reconcile. It creates in a word the spirit of humility,
and it feels, at the least, after a God of love.
What a profound preparation there is in this for the life which
Christ blessed in the Beatitudes and inaugurated by all that He
was and did, and for the truth of the Divine being and character
which was set forth in Him. Yet the law only prepared for this,
and made the demand which this met. It made no answer to
its own demand. It could not reconcile its own severity and its
own hopes of mercy ; its apparatus of sacrifice was in itself abso-
lutely and obviously insufficient for any solution of the contradic-
tion. It was a marvellous discipline which, while it trained its
people so far, demanded the more urgently something which all
its training could never give nor reach.
(c) The work of prophecy and the work of the law was also
(if we can distinguish causes which were so much affected by one
another) the work of history. To the work of the prophets,
IV. Preparation in History for Christ. 141
indeed, the history of both the past and the succeeding times was
essential, — the former to supply their work with a standing ground,
the latter to engrain its teaching into the life of the nation. We
look back, and we ask, What gave the prophets their advantage,
what was the fulcrum of their lever ? Trained to observe the pro-
cesses of religious evolution, we must refuse to believe with Pro-
fessor Huxley that a lofty monotheism and a noble morality sprang
out of the ground among a ' minority of Babylonian Jews.' But
we shall be prepared to find that the rudimentary stages differ
much from the mature. The beginnings of life, as we know them,
are laid in darkness ; they emerge crude and childish ; the physi-
cal and outward almost conceals the germ of spiritual and rational
being which nevertheless is the self, and which will increasingly
assert itself and rule. It may be so with that organism which God
was to make the shrine of His Incarnation. We may have to
learn that the beginnings of Israel are more obscure, more elemen-
tary, less distinctive from surrounding religions, than we had sup-
posed. We need not fear to be as bold as Amos in recognizing
that what was in one aspect the unique calling of God's Son out of
Egypt, 1 was in another but one among the Divinely ruled processes
of history, such as brought up the Philistines from Caphtor and
the Syrians from Kir. 2 We need not be more afraid than Ezekiel
to say that the peculiar people were an offshoot (if so it should be)
of natural stocks, with the Amorite for father and the Hittite for
mother. 3 But all this will hardly take from us that sense of con-
tinuous shaping of a thing towards a Divine event which has
always been among the supports of faith. We shall see that the
prophetic appeals imply a past, and that their whole force lies in
what they assume, and only recall to their hearers ; the special
possession of Israel by Jehovah, His selection of them for His
own, His deliverances of them from Egypt and onwards, giving
the earnest of a future purpose for which they were preserved, and
for which His definite promises were committed to them, to the
seed of Abraham, the house of Israel, the line of David. These
things the prophets imply, standing upon these they speak with
all the force of those who need only bid the people to realize and
to remember, or at most to receive from God some fresh confirma-
tion and enlargement of their hopes. 4
1 Hosea xi. 1. 2 Amos ix. 7. 3 Ezekiel xvi. 3.
* It is interesting to note that, according to the record preserved by
Israel of their own history, that which Kuenen says of later times, that ' at
each turning-point of the history stands a man who claims to bring a word
from God,' is exactly true of the older history too : Abraham, Moses,
M 2 The Religion of the Incarnation,
Or again, from the work of the prophets we look forward, and
when we have recovered from our surprise at seeing that a dreary
interval of five centuries separates the Evangelical prophecy, which
seemed so ready for the flower of the Gospel, from the time of its
blooming, we discern how the processes of that interval were util-
ized in realizing, engraining, diffusing the great truths of prophetic
teaching. The return without a monarchy and under an ecclesias-
tical governor, and the dispersion through many lands, necessitated
in act that transformation of the political into the spiritual polity,
almost of the nation into the Church, of which Isaiah's work was
the germ. The institution of the synagogues, which belongs to
this time and in which public, worship was detached from all local
associations and from the ancient forms of material sacrifice, was,
as it were, the spiritual organ of the new ubiquitous cosmopolitan
Jewish life. Yet contemporaneously the centralizing influences
gained strength. The conservative work of Ezra and of the Scribes
and Rabbis at whose head he stands, gathered up and preserved
the treasures which gave a consciously spiritual character to Israel's
national loyalty ; and guarded with the hedge of a scrupulous literal-
ism, what needed some such defence to secure it against the perils
implied in being carried wide over the world. By the resistance in
Palestine under Syrian rule to Hellenizing insolence, and in the Dis-
persion to the fascinations and pleasures of Hellenizing culture, and
by the great Maccabean struggle, the nation was identified with re-
ligious earnestness and zeal in a way of which we only see the cari-
cature and distortion in the Pharisaism which our Lord denounced.
Thus, if we compare our Lord's time with the great age of
prophecy, we see how much has been acquired. Time has been
given for the prophetic influences to work. There has been loss,
but there has also been gain. That conscious, explicit, and mag-
nificently uncompromising Monotheism, which, in the mouth of
the Evangelical prophet was quivering with the glow and passion of
freshly inspired realization, has, by ' the end of the age ' had time
to bring everything in the sphere of religion under its influence.
It had discovered its points of contact with the highest aspirations
of the Greek thought which on intellectual lines felt its way towards
God. And it had unfolded its own corollaries : it had drawn
Samuel, David, are all in this sense prophets. Yet there is no appear-
ance of a later age forming a past in its own likeness. The prophets
do not imagine an earlier row of prophets like themselves, put in like the
portraits of the early Scottish kings at Holyrood, to fill the blanks of history.
The early figures are not cut to prophetic pattern; they have each their dis-
tinct individuality of character and office, only they have a unity of Divine
commission and service.
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 143
along with it the great spiritual truths which cohere with the belief
in one Living and True God : and Israel in the Pharisee epoch had
passed, we hardly know how, into secure, if not undisputed, posses-
sion of the belief in a future life, in a world of spirits, and in the
spiritual character of prayer.
But there was another and more direct manner, in which the
work of history interlaced with what we have indicated as the work
of the law. In the formation of the temper of chastened confidence
which is so characteristic of later Israel, a part must evidently be
given to the discipline of national experience saddened by departed
glory, and with the shadows thickening over it. Just as we can
see that the populations of the Empire were in a sense more ready
to learn of Christ than the young self-reliant Greeks of Sparta or
Athens could have been, so we can see in such language as that of
the 119th Psalm or of the 9th chapter of Daniel a temper to which
the meek and lowly Christ would make an appeal which might
have been lost upon the rough times of the judges or the prosper-
ous age of the monarchy. Old age has come, and with it the wis-
dom of a chastened spirit. This is not difficult to see, and it is
important to take it into account. It means that the comparatively
normal discipline of life has brought with it (as doubtless it is
meant to do alike in personal and national life) a spiritual gain.
But it is important to see how much of the process and the effect
remains unexplained. The chastening is obvious, but whence the
confidence ?
It is in some far less normal cause, in something which seems dis-
tinctive of Israel, that we have to find the adequate explanation of
the whole result. We have to ask (as Pascal so keenly felt x ) why a
nation records its failures and misfortunes as being chastisements
of wilful, repeated, and disgraceful fault, and then jealously guards
the record as its most cherished possession. It would be easy to
suggest that there is in this an egotism clothing itself in humility :
and to pbint out that this egotism would explain the confidence
which still looked forward to the future, which anticipated great-
ness for an ' afflicted and poor people,' and a blessing to all the
nations of the earth from its own history. Only this is just to slur
the difficulty, and under the invidious word ' egotism ' to disguise
that wonderful instinct of a destiny and a mission which is so
strangely unlike egotism, and which allowed, or even produced, in
so profound a form the self-condemnation which egotism refuses.
Doubtless the effects of these preparing forces were felt, and
1 Pensdes, ii. 7, § 2.
144 The Religion of the Incarnation.
their meanings discerned, only by a few. Not only were they ' not
all Israel that were of Israel/ but the bulk of the nation and its
representative and official leaders were blind. They were off the
way, down the false tracks of literalist Rabbinism, or of one-sided
Essene asceticism, or of earthly visions of a restored kingdom, or
(as in Alexandria ) of a philosophized Judaism. The issues were
the crucifixion of the Lord, and ail which Judaism, without and
within the Church, did to extinguish the Gospel and persecute its
followers in its first age. It is right to refer to this, but there
are probably few to whom it would cause any difficulty. To the
observer of the world's history it is a common sight that the true
issues and the distinctive work of a people is worked out not
by the many, or by the prominent, but by the few, and often
the obscure. To the student of Jewish history that which has
made Israel what it is in world-significance appears throughout
the course of its history as a gold thread running through a
web of very different texture. It can be no surprise that the
end should be of a piece with the rest. There, in a climax of sharp-
est contrast, we see the antithesis which marks the history through-
out. The training issues in a St. Mary, a Simeon, in those who
1 waited for the consolation of Israel ' on the one side, and in the
' Scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites.' on the other. The natural
issue of Israel's life and tendencies is seen in the cold and sterile
impotence which, because it is the ' corruption of the best,' is the
most irreversible spiritual ruin ; while beside and amidst this there
was fashioned by a grace and power above nature, though in a
perfectly natural way, the true Israel which realize all that ' Israel
according to the flesh ' professed yet betrayed, guarded yet ob-
scured. And if we have at all rightly discerned as a principle of
Divine preparation that it should be negative as well as positive,
and should demonstrate to the world before Christ was given, how
little the world's own wisdom or effort could supply His place, we
shall not wonder that time was thus given for Israel to try out as
it were its second experiment, and to show that by its selfishness
and arrogance, by its ' carnalness/ it could warp and distort its
later spiritual constitution, even more than its former temporal one,
out of all likeness of what God woul£ have it be. 'The last state
of the man ' was i worse than the first. ' 1
But the observation of these predominant currents and forms of
Jewish life and thought and religion has this further value, that it
shows the variety, the energy, and the unlikeness to one another
1 St. Matt. xii. 45. It should be observed that the words were spoken of
'this wicked generation.'
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 145
of the tendencies present in Israel. They emphasize the fact that
the history of Israel was in no sense working itself out towards the
production by its own forces of the true religion which went
forth from the midst of it. They remind us how intractable the
problem of finding by human ingenuity the solution which could
harmonize in one issue elements so powerful and so alien from each
other ; which, with a perfect spiritual liberty could combine an
assertion of the permanent value of the law ; which with no with-
drawal from, and despair of the world could secure all that was
sought by Essene purity and self-denial; which, itself utterly
unworldly, could satisfy the idea of a restored monarchy and a
glory for Israel ; which while bringing no philosophy, could achieve
what Jewish philosophizing had desired, in a capture of the world's
reason by Jewish truth.
III. In the last words we touch that with which this essay may
perhaps fitly end. If its drift has been in any sense true, there
stands before us, as perhaps the most striking feature of the whole
situation, the co-existence of the tw r o preparations, the one gen-
eral, indirect, contributory, and consisting only in an impressive
convergence and centring of the lines of ordinary historical
sequences ; the other special, directly introductory, and character-
ized by the presence of a distinctive power, call it what we may, a
genius for religion, or more truly and adequately a special grace of
the Spirit of God, which is new and above ordinary experience,
even as life is when it enters the rest of nature, and reason is when
it appears in the world of life. The two preparations pursue their
course unconscious of one another, almost exclusive of one another.
Greek wisdom and Roman power have no dream of coming to
receive from the narrow national cult of humbled and subject
Israel. And Israel, even taught by the great prophets, could hard-
ly find a place in her vision of the future for any destiny of the
nations of the world. To this antagonism, or more strictly this
ignoring of one another, there are exceptions, exceptions of the
kind which emphasize the character of the situation which they
hardly modify. Two streams of such force and volume as those
of Jewish religion and classical life or culture could not touch and
leave one altogether uninfluenced, though the influence was charac-
teristically different. On the side of the world the spiritual needs
of individuals caused numbers, not inconsiderable, to receive influ-
ences which made them ready to act as seeding ground and ferment
10
146 The Religion of the Incarnation.
for the Gospel. On the side of Israel, the strong sense of mission
and of truth made the contact with Greek culture suggest the
ambition to use it as a great instrument, to teach it to acknowledge
and witness to the God of Israel, who was God of the whole earth ;
and the results, in the Greek of the Septuagint and in the Helleno-
Judaic writings of Alexandria and elsewhere, were invaluable in
fashioning language and thought for Christ's service. But all the
more distinctly, in the first case, does the antagonism, the gulf fixed,
the mutual aversion, the impossibility, humanly speaking, of fusion
between Jew and Gentile come out before our eyes. And in the
second case the unreal romancings of the Sibylline works, the
apparently isolated work of Philo, and the opportunism of a poli-
tician like Josephus, have all the character of hybrids, and show no
sign of the vital fusion by which out of a great wedlock a new
thing comes to be.
The two preparations stand apart : they go their own way.
There is indeed in them a strange parallelism of common human
experience and human need. Both have tried their experiments,
made their ventures, won their successes, gone through their dis-
ciplines of disenchantment and failure. Both are conscious of the
dying of life : in Israel there is ' no prophet more ;' outside it
philosophy has not the creativeness and energy of youth, but the
quiet acquiescence and mild prudence of age, and life, public and
private, is without adequate scope or aim. In both the ' tenden-
cies towards ' a Gospel are as far as possible from making a ' ten-
dency to produce ' one. In both there is the same desire for which
the Jew alone can find conscious expression ; it is ' Quicken me ! '
Both need life. Both have no help in themselves. But in the
lines which they follow and the hopes which they frame there
is neither likeness nor compatibility. 'The Greeks seek after
wisdom. 1 The intellect, and those who are distinctively men of
the intellect, can hardly imagine human advance otherwise than in
terms of the intellect. Philosophy conceives of it as a conquest
of philosophical result, or even as an increase of philosophical ma-
terial. It is the pain of an advanced and critical time, like that of
which we speak, to feel this, and yet to feel that the experiments
of speculation have gone far enough to show that by none of their
alternative ways can there be any way out to the peace of certain
truth. And yet it seems that without abdication of reason, there
is no possibility of going any other way : the Greeks (and in this
sense all the world was Greek) could only look for what they
wanted in the form of a new philosophy.
1 1 Cor. i. 22.
iv. Preparation in History for Christ. 1 47
But ' the Jews require a sign.' Totally different, but equally
exclusive, were the conditions under which the Jew could conceive
of a new epoch. The dread of exhausted resources did not haunt
him, for he looked not to human capacity, but to Divine gift and
interposition. But he thought that he knew the form in which
such interposition would come ; it was not to be primarily a
teaching (it is the Samaritan and not the Jew who is recorded as
expecting in Messiah one who, ' when He is come, will tell us all
things ' ] ) ; it must appear in action, ' with observation,' 2 with pomp
and scenic display, with signs, and signs which, in a very visible and
tangible sense, should seem to be from heaven, 3 in particular with
circumstances of triumph and conquest, and with an exaltation of
Israel to the glories of her monarchy many times enlarged.
Such are the demands : the things sought and needed ; the con-
ditions prescribed : definite, severally uncompromising, mutually
unlike, and even conflicting. And then from out of Israel, without
moral or political earthquake, without overwhelming display of
supernatural force, nay even, to a superficial eye, with all the
appearance of weakness and failure, without any rescue for Israel,
with no attempt to present itself in philosophical form, with none
of the strain and elaboration of a conscious effort to combine many
in one, but rather with a paradoxical and offending ' simplicity ' and
' foolishness ' of mere assertion, — there comes forth a Thing in
which on the one side Jews — whom we all recognize to be the
best Jews, Jews in the truest and deepest sense — find the whole
spirit and meaning, even down to its detail, of the life and the hope
of Israel summed up and fulfilled ; which left them no sense of dis-
appointment, but rather a consciousness of having had hopes only
too narrow and low ; which gave them the exulting sense of
' reigning as kings,' with a ' King of Israel : ' while on the other side
this same Thing was felt by ' Greeks ' as a ' wisdom ' flooding their
reason with a light of truth and wisdom (sop hid), which met the
search of philosophy {philo-sophia?) but also in simple and wise alike
drew forth and ministered to needs which philosophy had but half
seen and wholly failed to satisfy, enabling conscience to be candid
and yet at peace, building up a new cosmopolitan fellowship, and
restoring to human life dignity and value, not only in phrase and
1 St. John iv. 25. 2 St. Luke xvii. 20.
3 St. Matt. xii. 38 ; St. John vi. 30,-31, in each case following some of our
Lord's own signs.
4 This comes before us vividly in Justin Martyr's account of his own con-
version. Dial. c. Tryph. 3 ff. 'Thus and for this reason I am a philoso-
pher.'
148 The Religion of the Incarnation*
theory, but in truth. ' There came forth a Thing/ or rather there
came forth One, in Whom all this was done. The question arises,
'Whom say we that He is?' iVnd though the answer must be
reached in different ways by different men, and the witness to Him
in Whom is the sum of all, must needs be of many kinds ; yet the
convergence of many lines (as we have been permitted to trace it)
to One in Whom they are all combined and yet transcended, to One
Whom they can usher in but were powerless to produce, may be no
slight corroboration of the answer which was accepted, as we have
to remember, by the lowly Jesus with significant solemnity : ' Thou
art the Christ,' the Fulfiller of all high and inspired Jewish hope ;
' the Son of the Living God,' * His Son, — as the Son of Man, in
Whom all that is human reaches fulness ; and as the Son of God,
Who brings down to man what he has been allowed to prove to
himself that he cannot discover or create.
1 St. Matt. xvi. 16.
V.
THE INCARNATION AND DEVELOPMENT.
r
J. R. ILLINGWORTH.
V.
THE INCARNATION AND DEVELOPMENT,
I. The last few years have witnessed the gradual acceptance by
Christian thinkers of the great scientific generalization of our age,
which is briefly, if somewhat vaguely, described as the Theory of
Evolution. History has repeated itself, and another of the ' oppo-
sitions of science ' to theology has proved upon inquiry to be no
opposition at all. Such oppositions and reconciliations are older
than Christianity, and are part of what is often called the dialec-
tical movement ; the movement, that is to say, by question and
answer, out of which all progress comes. But the result of such
a process is something more than the mere repetition of a twice-
told tale. It is an advance in our theological thinking ; a definite
increase of insight ; a fresh and fuller appreciation of those ' many
ways ' in which ' God fulfils Himself.' For great scientific discov-
eries, like the heliocentric astronomy, are not merely new facts to be
assimilated ; they involve new ways of looking at things. And this
has been pre-eminently the case with the law of evolution ; which,
once observed, has rapidly extended to every department of
thought and history, and altered our attitude towards all knowl-
edge. Organisms, nations, languages, institutions, customs, creeds,
have al^come to be regarded in the light of their development, and
we feel that to understand what a thing really is, we must examine
how it came to be. Evolution is in the air. It is the category of
the age ; a ' partus temporis ;' a necessary consequence of our
vvider field of comparison. We cannot place ourselves outside
it, or limit the scope of its operation. And our religious opinions,
like all things else that have come down on the current of develop-
ment, must justify their existence by an appeal to the past.
It is the object of the following pages to consider what popular
misconceptions of the central doctrine of our religion, the Incar-
nation, have been remedied ; what more or less forgotten aspects
of it have been restored to their due place ; what new lights have
15*2 The Religion of the Incarnation.
been thrown upon the fulness of its meaning, in the course of our
discussion of the various views of evolution.
In face of the historical spirit of the age, the study of past theo-
logy can never again be regarded as merely a piece of religious
antiquarianism. And there are two classes of mind to which it
should be of especial service. Many an earnest worker in the
Christian cause, conscious how little the refinements of philosophy
can influence for good or evil the majority of men, and generously
impatient of all labor wasted, when the laborers are so few, is apt
to underestimate what he considers the less practical departments
of theology; forgetful that there are souls, and those among the
noblest, to whom the primary avenue of access is the intellect; and
who can only be led homeward by the illuminative way. The
Christian of this type may be materially helped towards welcom-
ing wider views, by being convinced that what he has been too
easily apt to regard as metaphysical subtleties, or as dangerous
innovations, or as questionable accommodations of the Gospel to
the exigencies of passing controversy, are, after all, an integral part
of the great Catholic tradition. On the other hand, many plau-
sible attacks upon the Christian creed are due to the inadequate
methods of its professed interpreters. Fragments of doctrine,
torn from their context and deprived of their due proportions, are
brandished in the eyes of men by well-meaning but ignorant apolo-
gists as containing the sum total of the Christian faith, with the
lamentable consequence that even earnest seekers after truth, and
much more its unearnest and merely factious adversaries, mislead
themselves and others into thinking Christianity discredited, when
in reality they have all along been only criticising its caricature.
Such men need reminding that Christianity is greater than its iso-
lated interpreters or misinterpreted in any age ; that in the course
of its long history it has accumulated answers to many an objection
which they in their ignorance think new ; and that, in the confidence
of its universal mission and the memory of its many victories, it
still claims to be sympathetic, adequate, adaptable to the problems
and perplexities of each successive age.
The general tendency of thought since the Reformation has
been in the direction of these partial presentations of Christianity.
The Reformers, from various causes, were so occupied with what
is now called Soteriology, or the scheme of salvation, that they
paid but scant attention to the other aspects of the Gospel. And
the consequence was that a whole side of the great Christian
tradition, and one on which many of its greatest thinkers had
lavished the labors of a lifetime, was allowed almost unconsciously
v. The Incarnation and Development* 153
to lapse into comparative oblivion ; and the religion of the Incar-
nation was narrowed into the religion of the Atonement. Men's
views of the faith dwindled and became subjective and self-regard-
ing, while the gulf was daily widened between things sacred and
things secular ; among which latter, art and science, and the whole
political and social order, gradually came to be classed.
Far otherwise was it with the great thinkers of the early Church ;
and that not from an underestimate of the saving power of the
Cross, which was bearing daily fruit around them, of penitence,
and sanctity, and martyrdom, but from their regarding Christian
salvation in its context. They realized that redemption was a
means to an end, and that end the reconsecration of the whole
universe to God. And so the very completeness of their grasp on
the Atonement led them to dwell upon the cosmical significance
of the Incarnation, its purpose to ' gather together all things in
one.' For it was an age in which the problems of the universe
were keenly felt. Philosophical thinking, if less mature, was not
less exuberant than now, and had already a great past behind it.
And the natural world, though its structural secrets were little
understood, fascinated the imagination and strained the heart with
its appealing beauty. Spiritualism, superstition, scepticism, were
tried in turn, but could not satisfy. The questionings of the intel-
lect still pressed for a solution. And the souls of Christians were
stirred to proclaim that the new power which they felt within
them, restoring, quickening, harmonizing the whole of their inner
life, would also prove the key to all these mysteries of matter and
of mind.
So it was that the theology of the Incarnation was gradually
drawn out, from the teaching of St. Paul and of St. John. The
identity of Him Who was made man and dwelt among us, with
Him by Whom all things were made and by Whom all things
consist y His eternal pre-existence as the reason and the word of
God, the Logos ; His indwelling presence in the universe as the
source and condition of all its life, and in man as the light of his
intellectual being; His Resurrection, His Ascension, — all these
thoughts were woven into one magnificent picture, wherein crea-
tion was viewed as the embodiment of the Divine ideas, and
therefore the revelation of the Divine character; manifesting its
Maker wi'h increasing clearness at each successive stage in the
great scale of being, till in the fulness of time He Himself became
man, and thereby lifted human nature, and with it the material
universe to which man is so intimately linked ; and triumphing
over the sin and death under which creation groaned and trav-
154 The Religion of the Incarnation.
ailed, opened by His Resurrection and then by His Ascension
vistas of the glorious destiny purposed for His creatures before the
world was. ' Factus est quod sumus nos, uti nos perficeret esse
quod est ipse.' 1
Such is the view of the Incarnation in what may be called its
intellectual aspect, which we find gradually expressed with increas-
ing clearness by the Fathers, from Justin to Athanasius. And
with all its deep suggestiveness, it is still a severely simple picture,
drawn in but few outlines, and those strictly scriptural. It was
born of no abstract love of metaphysic, and stands in striking
contrast to the wild speculations of the time. Its motive and its
method were both intensely practical ; its motive being to present
Christianity to the mind as well as to the heart ; and its method
no more than to connect and interpret and explain the definite
statements of St. Paul and St. John. Passing over the dark ages,
when thought was in comparative abeyance, and the energies of
the Church absorbed in the work of conversion and organization,
we come, in the twelfth and following centuries, to a second
period of intellectual ferment, less brilliant than that which char-
acterized the decadence of the old civilization, but instinct with
all the fire and restlessness of youth. Unsobered as yet by expe-
rience, and unsupplied with adequate material from without,
thought preyed upon itself and revelled in its new-found powers
of speculation. Fragments of the various heresies which the
Fathers had answered and outlived reappeared with all the halo of
novelty around them. Religions were crudely compared and
sceptical inferences drawn. Popular unbelief, checked in a meas-
ure by authority, avenged itself by ridicule of all things sacred.
It was a period of intense intellectual unrest, too many sided and
inconsequent to be easily described. But as far as the anti-Chris-
tian influences of the time can be summarized, they were mainly
two, — the Arabic pantheism, and the materialism which was fos-
tered in the medical schools : kindred errors, both concerned
with an undue estimate of matter. And how did Christian the-
ology meet them? Not by laying stress, like the later Deists,
upon God's infinite distance from the world, but upon the close-
ness of His intimacy with it ; by reviving, that is, with increased
emphasis, the Patristic doctrine of the Incarnation, as the climax
and the keystone of the whole visible creation. There is a greater
divergence of opinion, perhaps, among the Schoolmen than
among the Fathers ; and a far greater amount of that unprofitable
1 Irenasus.
v. The Incarnation and Development. 155
subtlety for which they are apt to be somewhat too unintelligently
ridiculed. But on the point before us, as on all others of primary
importance, they are substantially unanimous, and never fail in
dignity.
' As the thought of the Divine mind is called the Word, Who is
the Son, so the unfolding of that thought in external action {per
opera exteriord) is named the word of the Word.' x
' The whole world is a kind of bodily and visible Gospel of that
Word by which it was created.' 2
' Every creature is a theophany.' 3
' Every creature is a Divine word, for it tells of God.' 4
'The wisdom of God, when first it issued in creation, came not
to us naked, but clothed in the apparel of created things. And
then when the same wisdom would manifest Himself to us as the
Son of God, He took upon Him a garment of flesh, and so was
seen of men.' 5
' The Incarnation is the exaltation of human nature and con-
summation of the Universe.' 6
Such quotations might be multiplied indefinitely from the pages
of the Schoolmen and scholastic theologians. And the line of
thought which they indicate seems to lead us by a natural sequence
to view the Incarnation as being the predestined climax of crea-
tion, independently of human sin. The thought is of course a
mere speculation, 'beyond that which is written,' but from its first
appearance in the twelfth century it has been regarded with
increasing favor ; for it is full of rich suggestiveness, and seems
to throw a deeper meaning into all our investigations of the world's
gradual development.
Again, from the relation of the Word to the universe follows
His relation to the human mind. For ' that life was the light of
men.'
' The created intellect is the imparted likeness of God,' says
St. Thomas ; and again, ' Every intellectual process has its origin
in the Word of God Who is the Divine Reason.' ' The light of
intellect is imprinted upon us by God Himself {immediate a
Deo)? ' God continually works in the mind, as being both the
cause and the guide of its natural light.' ' In every object of
sensitive or rational experience God Himself lies hid.' 7 ' All
1 St. Thorn. Aq., c. Gent., iv. 13.
2 H. de Boseham (Migne), v. 190, p. 1353.
3 Scot. Er. (Migne), v. 122, p. 302. * St. Bonav., In Eccles., ci. t. ix.
5 H. de St. Victor (Migne), v. 177, p. 580.
6 St. Thorn. Aquinas. 7 St. Bonav. de Reduct., sub fin.
156 The Religion of the Incarnation.
intelligences know God implicitly, in every object of their knowl-
edge.' * ' Christ is our internal teacher, and no truth of any kind
is known but through Him ; though He speaks not in language
as we do, but by interior illumination.' 2 ' The philosophers have
taught us the sciences, for God revealed them to them.' 3
II. The point to be noticed in the teaching of which such pas-
sages are scattered samples, is that the Schoolmen and orthodox
mystics of the middle age, with Pantheism, materialism, rational-
ism surging all around them, and perfectly conscious of the fact,
met these errors, not by denying the reality of matter, or the capa-
city of reason, as later apologists have often done, but by claiming
for both a place in the Theology of the Word. And this Theology
of the Word was, in reality, quite independent of, and unaffected
by, the subtleties and fallacies and false opinions of the age, cob-
webs of the unfurnished intellect which time has swept away. It
was a magnificent framework, outside and above the limited knowl-
edge of the day and the peculiarities of individual thinkers ; an
inheritance from the Patristic tradition, which the Fathers, in their
turn, had not invented, but received as Apostolic doctrine from
Apostolic men, and only made more explicit by gradual definition,
during centuries when, it has been fairly said, ; the highest reason,
as independently exercised by the wise of the world, was entirely
coincident with the highest reason as inspiring the Church.' 4 We
have now to consider whether this view of the Incarnation, which,
though in the countries most influenced by the Reformation it has
dropped too much out of sight, has yet never really died out of the
Church at large, is in any way incompatible with the results of mod-
ern science ; or whether, on the contrary, it does not provide an
outline to which science is slowly but surely giving reality and
content.
And at the outset we must bear in mind one truth which is now
recognized on all sides as final, — viz., that the finite intellect can-
not transcend the conditions of finitude, and cannot therefore reach
or even conceive itself as reaching, an absolute, or, in Kantian
phraseology, a speculative knowledge of the beginning of things.
Whatever strides science may make in time to come towards
decomposing atoms and forces into simpler and yet simpler ele-
ments, those elements will still have issued from a secret laboratory
into which science cannot enter, and the human mind will be as
far as ever from knowing what they really are. Further, this initial
limitation must of necessity qualify our knowledge in its every
1 St. Thorn. Aq., de Verit., 22, 2, 1. 2 St. Bonav., Lum. Eccles. S. 12.
3 Id., Lum. Eccles. S. 5. 4 Mark Pattison.
v. The Incarnation and Development. T57
stage. If we cannot know the secret of the elements in their sim-
plicity, neither can we know the secret of their successive combina-
tions. Before the beginning of our present system, and behind the
whole course of its continuous development, there is a vast region
of possibility, which lies wholly and forever beyond the power of
science to affirm or to deny. It is in this region that Christian
theology claims to have its roots, and of this region that it pro-
fesses to give its adherents certitude, under conditions and by
methods of its own. And of those conditions and methods it fear-
lessly asserts that they are nowise inconsistent with any ascertained
or ascertainable result of secular philosophy.
As regards the origin of things, this is obvious. Science may
resolve the complicated life of the material universe into a few ele-
mentary forces, light, and heat, and electricity, and these perhaps
into modifications of some still simpler energy ; but of the origin of
energy (to irpwrov klvovv) it knows no more than did the Greeks of
old. Theology asserts that in the beginning was the Word, and in
Him was life, the life of all things created ; in other words, that
He is the source of all that energy, whose persistent, irresistible
versatility of action is forever at work moulding and clothing and
peopling worlds. The two conceptions are complementary, and
cannot contradict each other.
But to pass from the origin to the development of things : the
new way of looking at nature was thought at first both by its adhe-
rents and opponents alike to be inimical to the doctrine of final
causes. And here was a direct issue joined with Theology at once ;
for the presence of final causes or design in the universe has not
only been in all ages one of the strongest supports for natural
religion, it is contained in the very notion of a rational creation, a
creation by an Eternal Reason. And this was supposed to be
directly negatived by the doctrine of the survival of the fittest
through natural selection ; for if of a thousand forms, which came
by chance into existence, the one which happened to correspond
best with its environment survived, while the remainder disappeared,
the adaptation of the survivor to its circumstances would have all
the appearance of design, while in reality due to accident. If,
therefore, this principle acted exclusively throughout the universe,
the result would be a semblance of design without any of its reality,
from which no theological inference could be drawn. But this
consequence of natural selection obviously depends upon the
exclusiveness of its action. If it is only one factor among many in
the world's development, while there are instances of adaptation
in nature, and those the more numerous, for which it fails to account,
158 The Religion of the Incarnation.
what has been called its dysteleological significance is at an end.
Now its own author soon saw and admitted the inadequacy of the
theory of natural selection, even in biology, the field of its first
observation, to account for all the facts ; while countless phenom-
ena in other regions, such as the mechanical principles involved in
the structure of the universe, the laws of crystallography and chem-
ical combination, the beauty of nature taken in connection with its
effect upon the mind, irresistibly suggest design, and render the
alternative hypothesis, from its mere mathematical improbability,
almost inconceivable. And there is now, therefore, a general dis-
position to admit that the force of this particular attack upon the
doctrine of final causes has been considerably overstated.
But in the course of its discussion an important difference has
been brought to light between external and internal purposes or
ends. The kind of design in nature which first arrested early think-
ers was its usefulness to man. Even in scenery, it has been sug-
gested, they saw the utility before the beauty. And so they came
to look upon all natural phenomena as having for their final cause
the good of man ; and the world as a machine, a contrivance of
which the parts have no value except as contributing to the work
of the whole, and the whole exists only to produce a result outside
and independent of itself, an external end, as if corn should exist
solely to provide food for man. This was not an untrue concep-
tion ; a shallow thing to say of the reason for which Socrates
believed in God : but it was partial and inadequate, as Bacon and
Spinoza showed. And we have now come to regard the world, not
as a machine, but as an organism, a system in which, while the
parts contribute to the growth of the whole, the whole also reacts
upon the development of the parts ; and whose primary purpose is
its own perfection, something that is contained within and not
outside itself, an internal end : while in their turn the myriad parts
of this universal organism are also lesser organisms, ends in and for
themselves, pursuing each its lonely ideal of individual complete-
ness. Now when we look at nature in this way, and watch the
complex and subtle processes by which a crystal, a leaf, a lily, a
moth, a bird, a star realize their respective ideals with undisturbed,
unfailing accuracy, we cannot help attributing them to an intelli-
gent Creator. But when we further find that in the very course of
pursuing their primary ends, and becoming perfect after their kind,
the various parts of the universe do in fact also become means, and
with infinite ingenuity of correspondence and adaptation, subserve
not only one but a thousand secondary ends, linking and weaving
themselves together by their mutual ministration into an orderly,
V. The Incarnation and Development. 159
harmonious, complicated whole, the signs of intelligence grow
clearer still. And when, beyond all this, we discover the quality of
beauty in every moment and situation of this complex life ; the
drop of water that circulates from sea to cloud, and cloud to earth,
and earth to plant, and plant to life-blood, shining the while with
strange spiritual significance in the sunset and the rainbow and the
dewdrop and the tear ; the universal presence of this attribute, so
unessential to the course of nature, but so infinitely powerful in its
appeal to the human mind, is reasonably urged as a crowning proof
of purposeful design.
The treatment which these various aspects of teleology have
received, during the last few years, may be fairly called exhaustive ;
and the result of all the sifting controversy has been to place the
evidence for design in nature on a stronger base than ever : partly
because we feel that we have faced the utmost that can be urged
against it ; partly because, under scientific guidance, we have
acquired a more real, as distinct from a merely notional apprehen-
sion of the manifold adaptations of structure to function, which
the universe presents ; and these adaptations and correspondences,
when grasped in their infinite multiplicity, furnish us with a far
worthier and grander view of teleology than the mechanical theory
of earlier days.
All this is in perfect harmony with our Christian creed, that all
things were made by the Eternal Reason ; but more than this, it
illustrates and is illustrated by the further doctrine of His indwell-
ing presence in the things of His creation ; rendering each of
them at once a revelation and a prophecy, a thing of beauty and
finished workmanship, worthy to exist for its own sake, and yet a
step to higher purposes, an instrument for grander work.
1 God tastes an infinite joy
In infinite ways — one everlasting bliss,
From whom all being emanates, all power
Proceeds ; in whom is life for evermore,
Yet whom existence in its lowest form
Includes ; where dwells enjoyment, there is He :
With still a flying point of bliss remote,
A happiness in store afar, a sphere
Of distant glory in full view.'
And science has done us good service in recalling this doctrine
to mind. For it has a religious as well as a theological importance,
constituting, as it does, the element of truth in that higher Panthe-
ism which is so common in the present day. Whether the term
' higher Pantheism ' is happily chosen or not, the thing which it
160 The Religion of the Incarnation,
denotes is quite distinct from Pantheism proper, with its logical
denial of human personality and freedom. It is the name of an emo-
tion rather than a creed ; that indescribable mystic emotion which
the poet, the artist, the man of science, and all their kindred feel
in contemplating the beauty or the wonder of the world. Vague
as it is, and indefinite, this sentiment is still one of the strongest
of which our nature is susceptible, and should be recognized
as an integral element in all true religion. Yet for want of such
recognition on the part of Christians it is often allowed to gravitate
nearer and nearer to pure Pantheism, with which it has, in reality,
no essential affinity. We cannot therefore overestimate the impor-
tance of restoring to its due place in theology the doctrine of the
Divine immanence in nature to which this sentiment is the instinc-
tive witness. Fathers, schoolmen, mystics, who were quite as
alive to any danger of Pantheism as ourselves, yet astonish us by
the boldness of their language upon this point ; and we need not
fear to transgress the limits of the Christian tradition in saying that
the physical immanence of God the Word in His creation can
hardly be overstated, as long as His moral transcendence of it is
also kept in view.
' God dwelleth within all things, and without all things, above all
things and beneath all things,' x says St. Gregory the Great.
1 The immediate operation of the Creator is closer to everything
than the operation of any secondary cause,' says St. Thomas. 2
And Cornelius a Lapide, after comparing our dependence upon
God to that of a ray on the sun, an embyro on the womb, a bird
on the air, concludes with the words, ' Seeing then that we are thus
united to God physically, we ought also to be united to Him
morally.' 3
Here are three typical theologians, in three different ages, not
one of them a mystic even, using as the language of sober theology
words every whit as strong as any of the famous Pantheistic pas-
sages in our modern literature ; and yet when met with in that
literature they are commonly regarded as pleasing expressions of
poetic dreams, very far away from, if not even inconsistent with
what is thought to be dogmatic Christianity.
To sum up, then, the reopening of the teleological question has
not only led to its fuller and more final answer, but has inciden-
tally contributed to revive among us an important aspect of the
Theology of the Word.
1 Mag. Mor., ii. 12. 2 St. Thorn. Aq., ii. Sent. i. 1.
3 In Act. Apost, c. 17. v. 28.
v. The Incarnation and Development. 161
The next point upon which the theory of evolution came in
contact with received opinion, was its account of the origin of
man. Man, it was maintained, in certain quarters, was only the
latest and most complex product of a purely material process of
development. His reason, with all its functions of imagination,
conscience, will, was only a result of his sensibility, and that of his
nervous tissue, and that again of matter less and less finely organ-
ized, till at last a primitive protoplasm was reached ; while what
had been called his fall was in reality his rise, being due to the
fact that with the birth of reason came self-consciousness ; or the
feeling of a distinction between self and the outer world, ripening
into a sense, and strictly speaking an illusory sense, of discord
between the two.
Theologians first thought it necessary to contest every detail of
this development, beginning with the antiquity of man ; and some
are still inclined to intrench themselves in one or two positions
which they think impregnable, such as the essential difference in
kind between organized and inorganic matter, or again between
animal instinct and the self-conscious reason of man ; while others
are content to assume a sceptical attitude and point to the dis-
agreement between the men of science themselves, as sufficient
evidence of their untruth. But none of these views are theologi-
cally needed. The first is certainly, the second possibly unsound,
and the third, to say the least of it, unkind. It is quite true that
the evolution of man is at present nothing more than an hypo-
thesis, and an hypothesis open to very grave scientific objections.
The attempts to analyze reason and conscience back into uncon-
scious and unmoral elements, for all their unquestioned ingenuity,
are still far from being conclusive ; and then there is the geological
admissibility of the time which it would require, and that is still a
matter of hopeless controversy between scientific experts. And
even if these and numerous kindred difficulties were to be removed
in time to come, the hypothesis would still be no nearer demon-
stration ; for the only evidence we can possibly obtain of prehistoric
man is his handiwork of one kind or another, his implements or
pictures, things implying the use of reason. In other words, we
can only prove his existence through his rationality ; through his
having been, on the point in question, identical in kind with what
now he is. And suspense of judgment therefore upon the whole
controversy is, at present, the only scientific state of mind.
But there are facts upon the other side : the undoubted antiquity
of the human race ; the gradual growth which can be scientifically
traced, in our thought and language and morality, and therefore, to
1 62 The Religion of the Incarnation.
the extent that functions react upon their faculties, even in our
conscience and our reason too ; and then the immense presump-
tion from the gathering proofs of all other development, that
man will be no exception to the universal law. All these positive
indications at least suggest the possibility that the difficulties of the
theory may one day vanish, and its widest chasms close. And we
cannot therefore be too emphatic in asserting that theology would
have nothing whatever to fear from such a result. When we see
energy and atoms building up an harmonious order, we feel there
is an inner secret in the energy and atoms, which we cannot hope
to penetrate by merely watching them at work. And so, when we
see human minds and wills weaving a veil over the universe, of
thought and love and holiness, and are told that all these things
are but higher modes of material nature, we only feel that the inner
secret of material nature must be yet more wonderful than we sup-
posed. But though our wonder may increase, our difficulties will
not. If we believe, as we have seen that Christian Theology has
always believed, in a Divine Creator not only present behind the
beginning of matter, but immanent in its every phase, and co-operat-
ing with its every phenomenon, the method of His working, though
full of speculative interest, will be of no controversial importance.
Time was when the different kinds of created things were thought
to be severed by impassable barriers. But many of these barriers
have already given way before science, and species are seen to be
no more independent than the individuals that compose them. If
the remaining barriers between unreason and reason, or between
lifelessness and life should in like manner one day vanish, we shall
need to readjust the focus of our spiritual eye to the enlarged
vision, but nothing more. Our Creator will be known to have
worked otherwise indeed than we had thought, but in a way quite
as conceivable, and to the imagination more magnificent. And
all is alike covered by the words ' without Him was not anything
made that was made : and in Him was life.' In fact the evolu-
tionary origin of man is a far less serious question than the attack
upon final causes. Its biblical aspect has grown insignificant in
proportion as we have learned to regard the Hebrew cosmology
in a true light. And the popular outcry which it raised was largely
due to sentiment, and sentiment not altogether untinged by human
pride.
We may pass on therefore from the evolution of man and his
mind in general, to his various modes of mental activity in science
and philosophy and art. Here the Christian doctrine is twofold :
first, that all the objects of our thought, mathematical relations,
v. The Incarnation and Development. 163
scientific laws, social systems, ideals of art, are ideas of the Divine
Wisdom, the Logos, written upon the pages of the world ; and
secondly, that our power of reading them, our thinking faculty
acts and only can act rightly by Divine assistance ; that the same
* motion and power that impels ' ' all objects of all thought ' impels
also ' all thinking things.' And both these statements are met by
objection. In the first place, it is urged, there is no fixity in the
universe, and it cannot therefore be the embodiment of Divine
ideas. All things live and move under our eyes. Species bear no
evidence of having been created in their completeness; on the
contrary, they are perpetually undergoing transmutation, and cannot
therefore represent ideas" cannot have been created on a plan. For
ideas, in proportion to their perfection, must be definite, clean-cut,
clear. The answer to this objection is contained in what has been
already said upon the subject of organic teleology. But an anal-
ogy drawn from human thinking may illustrate it further. It is in
reality the ideas which our mind has done with, its dead ideas
which are clean-cut and definite and fixed. The ideas which at
any moment go to form our mental life are quick and active and
full of movement, and melt into each other and are ever develop-
ing anew. A book is no sooner finished and done with, than it
strikes its author as inadequate. It becomes antiquated as soon as
its ideas have been assimilated by the public mind. And that
because the thought of author and public alike is alive, and ever
moving onward ; incapable of being chained to any one mode of
expression ; incapable of being stereotyped. The highest notion
we can frame therefore of a mind greater than our own is of one
that has no dead ideas, no abstract or antiquated formulas, but
whose whole content is entirely, essentially alive. And the perpet-
ual development which we are learning to trace throughout the
universe around us would be the natural expression therefore of
that Logos Who is the Life.
But when we turn from the objective to the subjective side of
knowledge, we are met with a second objection. The doctrine
that the Divine Logos co-operates with the human reason, is
supposed to be inconsistent with the undoubted fact that many
earnest and successful thinkers have been, if not atheistic, at least
agnostic ; unable, that is, to attain to the very knowledge to which,
as it would seem on the Christian hypothesis, all intellectual effort
should inevitably lead. But this difficulty is only superficial. When
we say that the Divine reason assists, we do not mean that it super-
sedes the human. An initiative still lies with man ; and he must
choose of his own accord the particular field of his intellectual
164 The Religion of the Incarnation.
pursuit. When he has chosen his line of study, and followed it
with the requisite devotion, he will arrive at the kind of truth to
which that particular study leads, the physicist at laws of nature,
the philosopher at laws of thought, the artist at ideal beauty, the
moralist at ethical truth; and in each case, as we believe, by Divine
assistance, his discoveries being in fact revelations. But the
method, the education, the experience involved in different studies
are so distinct that few in a lifetime can reach the eminence that
teaches with authority, or even the intelligence that thoroughly
appreciates, more than one department of the complex world of
thought. And if a man wanders from his own province into unfa-
miliar regions, he naturally meets with failure in proportion to his
hardihood. In the case of the special sciences this is universally
recognized. No astronomer would think of dogmatizing on a
question of geology, nor a biologist on the details of chemistry or
physics. But when it is a question between science and philoso-
phy, the rule is often forgotten ; and the spectacle of scientific
specialists blundering about in metaphysics is painfully common in
the present day : while strange to say, in the case of theology this
forgetfulness reaches a climax, and men claim casually to have an
opinion upon transcendent mysteries, without any of the prepara-
tion which they would be the first to declare needful for success in
the smallest subsection of any one of the branches of science.
Nor is preparation all that is wanted. Science is impossible
without experiment, and experiment is the lower analogue of what
in religion is called experience. As experiment alone gives cer-
tainty in the one case, so does experience alone in the other. And
it is only the man who has undergone such experience, with all its
imperative demands upon his whole character and life, that can
justly expect satisfaction of his religious doubts and needs ; while
only those who, like St. Paul or St. Augustine, have experienced it
in an exceptional degree, are entitled to speak with authority upon
the things to which it leads. Here again a human analogy may
help us. For in studying a human character there are different
planes upon which we may approach it. There are the external
aspects of the man, the fashion of his garments, the routine of his
life, the regulation of his time, his official habits ; all which, it may
be noted in passing, in the case of a great character, are uniform,
not because they were not once the free creation of his will, but
because he knows the practical value of uniformity in all such
things ; and all these externals are open to the observation even of
a stranger. Then there are the man's thoughts, which may be
withheld or revealed at his pleasure ; and these can only be under-
v. The Incamatio7i and Development. 165
stood by kindred minds, who have been trained to understand them.
Lastly, there are his will and affections, the region of his motives,
the secret chamber in which his real personality resides ; and these
are only known to those intimate friends and associates whose
intuition is quickened by the sympathy of love. Now all these
stages are gone through in the formation of a friendship. First we
are struck by a man's appearance, and so led to listen to his con-
versation, and thence to make his acquaintance, and at last to
become his friend. And so with the knowledge of God. The man
of science, as such, can discover the uniformities of His action in
external nature. The moral philosopher will further see that these
actions ' make for righteousness ' and that there is a moral law.
But it is only to the spiritual yearning of our whole personality
that He reveals Himself as a person. This analogy will make the
Christian position intelligible ; but for Christians it is more than an
analogy. It is simply a statement of facts. For, to Christians, the
Incarnation is the final sanction of ' anthropomorphism,' revealing
the Eternal Word as strictly a Person, in the ordinary sense and
with all the attributes which we commonly attach to the name. 1
Consequently, upon all this we are quite consistent in main-
taining that all great teachers of whatever kind are vehicles of
revelation, each in his proper sphere, and in accepting their
verified conclusions as Divinely true ; while we reject them the
moment they transgress their limits, as thereby convicted of unsound
thinking, and therefore deprived of the Divine assistance which
was the secret of their previous success. And though such trans-
gression may in many cases involve a minimum of moral error, there
are abundant instances in the history of thought that it is not always
so. Francis Bacon, and the penitent, pardoned Abelard are typical,
in different degrees, of a countless multitude of lesser men.
' For our knowledge of first principles,' says St. Augustine, l we
have recourse to that inner truth that presides over the mind.
And that indwelling teacher of the mind is Christ, the changeless
virtue and eternal wisdom of God, to which every rational soul
has recourse. But so much only is revealed to each as his own
good or evil will enables him to receive.' 2
'Nor is it the fault of the Word,' adds St. Thomas, 'that all
men do not attain to the knowledge of the truth, but some remain
in darkness. It is the fault of men who do not turn to the Word
and so cannot fully receive Him. Whence there is still more or
less darkness remaining among men, in proportion to the lesser
1 C P- r- 53- 2 St. Aug, de Magist., 38, t. i. p. g\6.
1 66 The Religion of the Incarnation.
or greater degree in which they turn to the Word and receive Him.
And so John, to preclude any thought of deficiency in the illumi-
nating power of the Word, after saying " that life was the light of
men," adds " the light shineth in darkness, and the darkness com-
prehended it not." The darkness is not because the W T ord does
not shine, but because some do not receive the light of the Word ;
as while the light of the material sun is shining over the world, it
is. only dark to those whose eyes are closed or feeble.' 1
It has been necessary to dwell upon this doctrine because it has
an important bearing upon two further questions, which the phi-
losophy of evolution has brought into new prominence, the relation
of Christianity to previous philosophy and other religions. It was
the fashion, not long ago, to give an undue value to the part played
by environment or surrounding circumstances in the creation of
characters and institutions and creeds, to the exclusion of all
elements of native originality. And the attempt was made accord-
ingly, in various ways, to represent Christianity as the natural
product of the different religions and philosophies which were
current in the world at the time of its appearing. But the further
study of evolution has qualified this whole mode of thought by the
way in which, as we have seen above, it has led us to look at things
as organisms rather than machines. A machine has no internal
principle of unity. Its unity is impressed upon it from without.
And it may be granted therefore, for the sake of argument, that
we might conceive a machine or number of machines as formed
like the patterns in a kaleidoscope by a happy coincidence of
atoms ; and man, if he were only a machine, as strictly the creature
of circumstance. But an organism is a different thing. Depend-
ent as it is upon its environment in a hundred various ways, it
is yet more dependent upon its own selective and assimilative
capacity, in other words upon its own individuality, its self. And
so the notions of individuality, originality, personal identity have
been restored to their place in the world of thought. The old
error lingers on, and is sometimes crudely re-asserted, especially in
its anti-Christian bearing ; but it has been discredited by science,
and is in fact a thing of the past. And in consequence of this,
the attempt can no longer be plausibly made to account for Chris-
tianity apart from the personality of Jesus Christ. The mythical
theories have had their day. And it is recognized on all hands
that mere aspiration can no more create a religion than appetite
can create food. A foundation needs a founder.
1 St. Thorn. Aq., cont. Gent., iv. 13.
v. The' Incarnation and Development. 167
But the attack thus diverted from our religion glances off on our
theology. The Christian religion, it is granted, was founded by
Jesus Christ ; but its theological interpretation is viewed as a mis-
interpretation, a malign legacy from the dying philosophies of
Greece. This objection is as old as the second century, and has
been revived at intervals in various forms, and with varying
degrees of success. Modern historical criticism has only fortified
it with fresh instances. But it has no force whatever if we believe
that the Divine Word was forever working in the world in co-op-
eration with human reason ; inspiring the higher minds among the
Jews with their thirst for holiness, and so making ready for the
coming of the Holy One in Jewish flesh : but inspiring the Greeks
also with their intellectual eagerness, and preparing them to recog-
nize Him as the Eternal Reason, the Word, the Truth ; and to
define and defend and demonstrate that Truth to the outer world.
The fact that Greek philosophy had passed its zenith and was
declining did not make its influence upon Christianity an evil one,
a corruption of the living by the dead. It was only dying to be
incorporated in a larger life. The food that supports our existence
owes its power of nutrition to the fact that it too once lived with
an inferior life of its own. And so the Greek philosophy was
capable of assimilation by the Christian organism, from the fact
that it too had once been vitally inspired by the life that is the
light of men. And the true successors of Plato and Aristotle were
the men of progress who realized this fact ; not Celsus, Lucian,
Porphyry, but the Fathers of the Church.
Clement and Origen, Athanasius and Augustine, the Gregories
and Basil understood Greek philosophy as clearly as St. Paul un-
derstood Judaism, and recognized its completion as plainly in the
Incarnation of the Word. Nor was this view of the Incarnation in
the one case, any more than in the other, assumed for a merely
apologetic purpose. These men were essentially philosophers,
among the foremost of their age. They knew and have testified
what philosophy had done for their souls, and what it could not do ;
how far it had led them forward ; and of what longings it had left
them full. True, philosophy had as little expected Wisdom to be-
come incarnate, and that amongst the barbarians, the outcast and
the poor, as Judaism had expected Messiah to suffer, and to suffer
at the hand of Jews. But no sooner was the Incarnation accom-
plished, than it flooded the whole past of Greece no less than
Judsea with a new light. This was what it all meant ; this was
what it unwittingly aimed at ; the long process of dialectic and
prophecy were here united in their goal.
1 68 The Religion of the Incarnation.
1 Those who lived under the guidance of the Eternal Reason
(/jLtTa Xoyov jSioycravTes) as Socrates. Heraclitus, and such-like men,.
are Christians/ run the well-known words of Justin Martyr, ' even
though they were reckoned to be atheists in their day ' (Ap., i. 46).
Different minds have always differed, and will continue to differ
widely as to the degree in which Greek thought contributed to the
doctrines of the Trinity and the Incarnation. It is a difficult and
delicate question for historical criticism to decide. But the essen-
tial thing to bear in mind is that the Christian doctrine of the
Logos amply covers any possible view which criticism may estab-
lish upon the point. For, in the light of that doctrine, it is merely
a question of the degree in which the Eternal Word chose to reveal
Himself through one agency rather than another.
Any attack, therefore, upon our theology for its connection with
Greek thought, is powerless to disturb us ; since we accept the
fact but give it another, a deeper interpretation : while we rejoice
in every fresh proof that the great thoughts of the Greek mind
were guided by a higher power, and consecrated to a nobler end
than ever their authors dreamed of ; and that the true classic cul-
ture is no alien element but a legitimate ingredient in Catholic,
complete Christianity.
And the same line of thought gives us a clew to the history of
religious development, the latest field to which the philosophy of
evolution has been extended. For though a superficial comparison
of religions, with a more or less sceptical result, has often been
attempted before, as for instance in the thirteenth century, with its
well-known story of the three impostors ; anything like a scientific
study of them has been impossible till now. For now-for the first
time we are beginning to have the facts before us ; the facts con-
sisting in the original documents of the various historic creeds, and
accumulated observations on the religious ideas of uncivilized races.
In both these fields very much remains to be done ; but still there
is enough done already to justify a few generalizations. But the
subject is intensely complex, and there has been far too great a
tendency, as in all new sciences, to rush to premature conclusions.
For example, there is the shallow scepticism which seizes upon
facts, like the many parallelisms between the moral precepts of ear-
lier religions and the Sermon on the Mount, as a convincing proof
that Christianity contains nothing that is new. No serious student
of comparative religions would justify such an inference ; but it is
a very common and mischievous fallacy in the half-culture of the
day. Then there is the rash orthodoxy, that is over eager to
accept any result that tallies with its own preconceived opinions, as,
v. The Incarnation and Development. 169
for instance, the belief in a primitive monotheism. No doubt sev-
eral very competent authorities think that the present evidence
points in that direction. But a majority of critics equally compe-
tent think otherwise. And meanwhile, there is a mass of evidence
still waiting collection and interpretation, which may one day throw
further light upon the point. Under such circumstances, therefore,
it is as impolitic as it is unscientific to identify Christian apology
with a position which may one day prove untenable. Attention
has already been called to a similar imprudence in connection with
Biogenesis, and the history of past apology is full of warnings
against such conduct. Then, again, there is the converse view
which is often as glibly stated as if it were already a scientific
truism, — the view that religion was evolved out of non-religious ele-
ments, such as the appearance of dead ancestors in dreams. This
rests, to begin with, on the supposition that the opinions of uncivil-
ized man, as we now find him, are the nearest to those of man in
his primitive condition ; which, considering that degradation is a
recognized factor in history, and that degradation acts more power-
fully in religion than in any other region, is a very considerable
assumption. But even granting this, the psychological possibility
of the process in question, as well as the lapse of time sufficient for
its operation, are both as yet unproved. It is an hypothetical pro-
cess, happening in an hypothetical period ; but, logically considered,
nothing more.
All this should make us cautious in approaching the comparative
study of religions. Still, even in its present stage, it has reached
some general results. In the first place, the universality of religion
is established as an empirical fact. Man, with a few insignificant
exceptions which may fairly be put down to degradation, within
the limits of our observation, is everywhere religious. The notion
that religion was an invention of interested priestcraft has vanished,
like many other eighteenth century fictions, before nineteenth cen-
tury science. Even in the savage races, where priestcraft is most
conspicuous, the priest has never created the religion, but always
the religion the priest. Beyond this fact it is unsafe to dogmatize.
There is abundant evidence of early nature-worship in very various
forms ; but whether this was the degraded offspring of purer concep-
tions, or, as is more generally supposed, the primitive parent from
which those conceptions sprang, is still an open question. The
universality of the fact is all that is certain.
Again, there is a progressive tendency observable in the reli-
gions of the world ; but the progress is of a particular kind, and
largely counteracted by degeneracy. Individuals elevate, masses
170 The Religion of the Incarnation.
degrade religion. There is no progress by insensible modifications ;
no improvement of a religion in committee. Councils like those
of Asoka or Chosroes can only sift and popularize and publish
what it needed a Buddha or Zarathustra to create. And so reli-
gion is handed on, from one great teacher to another, never rising
above the level of its founder or last reformer, till another founder
or reformer comes ; while in the interval it is materialized, vulgar-
ized, degraded.
And from the nature of this progress, as the work of great indi-
viduals, another consequence has historically followed ; viz., that all
the pre-Christian religions have been partial, have emphasized, that
is to say, unduly if not exclusively, one requirement or another of
the religious consciousness, but never its complex whole. For the
individual teacher, however great, cannot proclaim with prophetic
intensity more than one aspect of a truth ; and his followers inva-
riably tend to isolate and exaggerate this aspect, while any who
attempt to supply its complement are regarded with suspicion.
Hence the parties and sects and heresies of which religious history
is full. The simplest illustration of this is the fundamental distinc-
tion between Theism and Pantheism, or the transcendence and
immanence of God ; the one often said to be a Semitic, the other
an Aryan, tendency of thought. But however this may be, both
these principles must be represented in any system which would
really satisfy the whole of our religious instincts ; while, as a matter
of fact, they were separated by all the pre-Christian religions, and
are separated by Mahometanism and Buddhism, the only two reli-
gious systems which compete with Christianity to-day.
These, then, are a. few broad results of our comparative survey
of religions. That religion, however humble the mode of its first
appearing, is yet universal to man. That it progresses through the
agency of the great individual, the unique personality, the spiritual
genius ; while popular influence is a counter agent and makes for
its decay. That its various developments have all been partial, and
therefore needed completion, if the cravings of the human spirit
were ever to be set at rest.
And all this is in perfect harmony with our Christian belief in a
God Who, from the day of man's first appearance in the dim twi-
light of the world, left not Himself without witness in sun and
moon, and rain and storm-cloud, and the courses of the stars, and
the promptings of conscience, and the love of kin ; and Who the
while was lighting every man that cometh into the world, the pri-
meval hunter, the shepherd chieftain, the poets of the Vedas and
the Gathas, the Chaldaean astronomer, the Egyptian priest, each,
V. The Incarnation and Development. 171
at least in a measure, to spell that witness out aright ; ever and anon
when a heart was ready revealing Himself with greater clearness,
to one or another chosen spirit, and by their means to other men ;
till at length in the fulness of time, when Jews were yearning for
one in whom righteousness should triumph, visibly ; and Greeks
sighing over the divorce between truth and power, and wondering
whether the wise man ever would indeed be king ; and artists and
ascetics wandering equally astray, in vain attempt to solve the prob-
lem of the spirit and the flesh ; ' the Word was made Flesh and
dwelt among us, full of grace and truth.' The pre-Christian reli-
gions were the age-long prayer. The Incarnation was the answer.
Nor are we tied to any particular view of the prehistoric stages of
this development. We only postulate that whenever and however
man became truly man, he was from that moment religious, or
capable of religion ; and this postulate deals with the region that
lies beyond the reach of science, though all scientific observation
is, as we have seen, directly in its favor.
In short, the history of the pre-Christian religions is like that of
pre-Christian philosophy, a long preparation for the Gospel. We
are familiar enough with this thought in its Jewish application from
the teaching of the Epistle to the Hebrews. But it seems to be
often forgotten that the principles laid down in that Epistle admit
of no limitation to any single race of men. They are naturally
illustrated from Hebrew history in a writing addressed to Hebrews.
But their scope is universal. They compel their own application
to every religious history, which the growth of our knowledge
brings to light. And from this point of view the many pagan
adumbrations of Christian doctrine, similarities of practice, coin-
cidences of ritual, analogies of phrase and symbol, fall naturally
into place. The Fathers and early missionaries were often per-
plexed by these phenomena, and did not scruple to attribute them
to diabolic imitation. And even in the present day they are capa-
ble of disturbing timid minds, when unexpectedly presented before
them. But all this is unphilosophical, for in the light of evolution
the occurrence of such analogies is a thing to be expected ; while
to the eye of faith they do but emphasize the claim of Christianity
to be universal, by showing that it contains in spiritual summary the
religious thoughts and practices and ways of prayer and worship,
not of one people only, but of all the races of men.
' In the whole of our Christian faith,' says Thomassin, ' there is
nothing which does not in the highest degree harmonize with that
natural philosophy which Wisdom, who made all things, infused
into every created mind, and wrote upon the very marrow of the
172 The Religion of the Incarnation.
reason; so that, however obscured by the foul pleasures of the
senses, it never can be wholly done away. It was this hidden and
intimate love of the human mind, however marred, for the incor-
ruptible truth, which won the whole world over to the gospel of
Christ, when once that Gospel was proclaimed.' x
But when all this has been said, there is a lingering suspicion in
many minds, that even if the details of the doctrine of develop-
ment are not inconsistent with Christianity, its whole drift is incom-
patible with any system of opinion which claims to possess finality.
And if Christianity were only a system of opinion, the objection
might be plausible enough. But its claim to possess finality rests
upon its further claim to be much more than a system of opinion.
The doctrine of development or evolution, we must remember, is
not a doctrine of limitless change, like the old Greek notion of
perpetual flux. Species once developed are seen to be persistent,
in proportion to their versatility, their pow r er, i. e. } of adapting
themselves to the changes of the world around them. And because
man, through his mental capacity, possesses this power to an almost
unlimited extent, the human species is virtually permanent. Now
in scientific language, the Incarnation may be said to have intro-
duced a new species into the world, — a Divine man transcending
past humanity, as humanity transcended the rest of the animal
creation, and communicating His vital energy by a spiritual process
to subsequent generations of men. And thus viewed, there is
nothing unreasonable in the claim of Christianity to be at least as
permanent as the race which it has raised to a higher power, and
endued with a novel strength.
III. But in saying this we touch new ground. As long as we
confine ourselves to speaking of the Eternal Word as operating in
the mysterious region which lies behind phenomena, we are safe,
it may be said, from refutation, because we are dealing with the
unknown. But when we go on to assert that He has flashed
through our atmosphere, and been seen of men, scintillating signs
and wonders in His path, we are at once open to critical attack.
And this brings us to the real point at issue between Christianity
and its modern opponents. It is not the substantive body of our
knowledge, but the critical faculty which has been sharpened in its
acquisition that really comes in conflict w 7 ith our creed. Assuming
Christianity to be true, there is, as we have seen, nothing in it
inconsistent with any ascertained scientific fact. But what is called
the negative criticism assumes that it cannot be true, because the
1 Thomassin, Incarn., i. 15.
v. The Iticamation and Development. 173
miraculous element in it contradicts experience. Still criticism is
a very different thing from science, a subjective thing into which
imagination and personal idiosyncrasy enter largely, and which
needs therefore in its turn to be rigorously criticised. And the
statement that Christianity contradicts experience suggests two
reflections, in limine.
In the first place, the origin of all things is mysterious, the ori-
gin of matter, the origin of energy, the origin of life, the origin of
thought. And present experience is no criterion of any of these
things. What were their birth-throes, what were their accompany-
ing signs and wonders, when the morning stars sang together in the
dawn of their appearing, we do not and cannot know. If, there-
fore, the Incarnation was, as Christians believe, another instance of
a new beginning, present experience will neither enable us to assert
or deny, what its attendant circumstances may or may not have
been. The logical impossibility of proving a negative is proverbial.
And on a subject whose conditions are unknown to us, the very
attempt becomes ridiculous. And secondly, it is a mistake to sup-
pose that as a matter of strict evidence, the Christian Church has
ever rested its claims upon its miracles. A confirmatory factor,
indeed, in a complication of converging arguments, they have been,
and still are to many minds. But to others, who in the present
day are probably the larger class, it is not so easy to believe
Christianity on account of miracles, as miracles on account of Chris-
tianity. For now, as ever, the real burden of the proof of Chris-
tianity is to be sought in our present experience.
There is a fact of experience as old as history, as widely spread
as is the human race, and more intensely, irresistibly, importun-
ately real than all the gathered experience of art and policy and
science, — the fact which philosophers call moral evil, and Chris-
tians sin. It rests upon no questionable interpretation of an East-
ern allegory. We breathe it, we feel it, we commit it, we see its
havoc all around us. It is no dogma, but a sad, solemn, inevitable
fact. The animal creation has a law of its being, a condition of its
perfection, which it instinctively and invariably pursues. Man has
a law of his being, a condition of his perfection, which he instinct-
ively tends to disobey. And what he does to-day, he has been
doing from the first record of his existence.
Video meliora proboque,
Deteriora sequor.
Philosophers have from time to time attempted to explain this
dark experience away, and here and there men of happy tempera-
174 The Religion of the Incarnation.
ment, living among calm surroundings, have been comparatively
unconscious of the evil in the world. But the common conscience
is alike unaffected by the ingenuity of the one class, or the apathy
of the other ; while it thrills to the voices of men like St. Paul or
St. Augustine, Dante or John Bunyan, Loyola or Luther ; recog-
nizing in their sighs and tears and lamentations, the echo of its own
unutterable sorrow made articulate. Nor is sin confined to one
department of our being. It poisons the very springs of life, and
taints its every action. It corrupts art ; it hampers science; it
paralyzes the efforts of the politician and the patriot ; and diseased
bodies, and broken hearts, and mental and spiritual agony, are
amongst its daily, its hourly results. It would seem indeed super-
fluous to insist upon these things, if their importance were not so
often ignored in the course of anti-Christian argument. But when
we are met by an appeal to experience, it is necessary to insist that
no element of experience be left out.
And moral evil, independently of any theory of its nature or its
origin, is a plain palpable fact, and a fact of such stupendous mag-
nitude as to constitute by far the most serious problem of our life.
Now it is also a fact of present experience that there are scat-
tered throughout Christendom, men of every age, temperament,
character, and antecedents, for whom this problem is practically
solved ; men who have a personal conviction that their own past sins
are done away with, and the whole grasp of evil upon them loos-
ened, and who in consequence rise to heights of character and con-
duct, which they know that they would never have otherwise attained.
And all this they agree to attribute, in however varying phrases,
to the personal influence upon them of Jesus Christ. Further,
these men had a spiritual ancestry. Others in the last generation
believed and felt and acted as they now act and feel and believe.
And so their lineage can be traced backward, age by age, swelling
into a great multitude whom no man can number, till we come to
the historic records of Him Whom they all look back to, and find
that He claimed the power on earth to forgive sins. And there the
phenomenon ceases. Pre-Christian antiquity contains nothing anal-
ogous to it. Consciousness of sin, and prayers for pardon, and
purgatorial penances, and sacrifices, and incantations, and magic
formulae are there in abundance ; and hopes, among certain races,
of the coming of a great deliverer. But never the same sense of
sin forgiven, nor the consequent rebound of the enfranchised
soul. Yet neither a code of morality which was not essentially
new, nor the example of a life receding with every age into a dim-
mer past, would have been adequate to produce this result. It has
v. The Incarnation and Development. 175
all the appearance of being, what it historically has claimed to be,
the entrance of an essentially new life into the world, quickening
its palsied energies, as with an electric touch. And the more we
realize in the bitterness of our own experience, or that of others,
the essential malignity of moral evil, the more strictly supernatural
does this energy appear. When, therefore, we are told that mira-
cles contradict experience, we point to the daily occurrence of this
spiritual miracle and ask ' whether is it easier to say, Thy sins be
forgiven thee, or to say, Arise and walk ? ' We meet experience
with experience, the negative experience that miracles have not
happened with the positive experience that they are happening
now : an old argument, which so far from weakening, modern sci-
ence has immensely strengthened, by its insistence on the intimate
union between material and spiritual things. For spirit and matter,
as we call them, are now known to intermingle and blend, and
fringe off, and fade into each other, in a way that daily justifies us
more in our belief that the possessor of the key to one must be the
possessor of the key to both, and that He Who can save the soul
can raise the dead.
Here, then, is our answer to the negative criticism, or rather to
the negative hypothesis, by which many critics are misled. Of
course we do not expect for it unanimous assent. It is founded
on a specific experience ; and strangers to that experience are
naturally unable to appreciate its force. But neither should they
claim to judge it. For the critic of an experience must be its
expert. And the accumulated verdict of the spiritual experts of
all ages should at least meet with grave respect from the very men
who are most familiar with the importance of the maxim, ' Cuique
in sua arte credendum.' Christianity distinctly declines to be
proved first and practised afterwards. Its practice and its proof
go hand in hand. And its real evidence is its power.
We now see why the Atonement has often assumed such exclu-
sive prominence in the minds of Christian men. They have felt
that it was the secret of their own regenerate life, their best intel-
lectual apology, their most attractive missionary appeal ; and so
have come to think that the other aspects of the Incarnation might
be banished from the pulpit and the market-place, to the seclusion
of the schools. But this has proved to be a fatal mistake. Truth
cannot be mutilated with impunity. And this gradual substitution
of a detached doctrine for a catholic creed has led directly to the
charge which is now so common, that Christianity is inadequate to
life ; with no message to ordinary men, in their ordinary moments,
170 The Religion of the Incarnation.
no bearing upon the aims, occupations, interests, enthusiasms,
amusements, which are human nature's daily food.
But we have already seen what a misconception this implies of
the Incarnation. The Incarnation opened heaven, for it was the
revelation of the Word ; but it also re-consecrated earth, for the
Word was made Flesh and dwelt among us. And it is impossible
to read history without feeling how profoundly the religion of the
Incarnation has been a religion of humanity. The human body
itself, which heathendom had so degraded that noble minds could
only view it as the enemy and prison of the soul, acquired a new
meaning, exhibited new graces, shone with a new lustre in the
light of the Word made Flesh ; and thence, in widening circles,
the family, society, the state, felt in their turn the impulse of the
Christian spirit, with its
Touches of things common,
Till they rose to touch the spheres.
Literature revived ; art flamed into fuller life ; even science in
its early days owed more than men often think to the Christian
temper and the Christian reverence for things once called com-
mon or unclean, while the optimism, the belief in the future, the
atmosphere of hopefulness, which has made our progress and
achievements possible, and which, when all counter-currents have
been allowed for, so deeply differentiates the modern from the
ancient world, dates, as a fact of history, from those buoyant days
of the early Church, when the creed of suicide was vanquished
before the creed of martyrdom, Seneca before St. Paul. It is true
that secular civilization has co-operated with Christianity to pro-
duce the modern world. But secular civilization is, as we have
seen, in the Christian view, nothing less than the providential cor-
relative and counterpart of the Incarnation. For the Word did
not desert the rest of His creation to become Incarnate. Natural
religion and natural morality and the natural play of intellect have
their function in the Christian as they had in the pre-Christian
ages ; and are still kindled by the light that lighteth every man
coming into the world. And hence it is that secular thought has so-,
often corrected and counteracted the evil of a Christianity grown
professional, and false and foul.
Still, when all allowance for other influence has been made, and
all the ill done in its name admitted to the full, Christianity re-
mains, — the only power which has regenerated personal life, and
that beyond the circle even of its professed adherents, the light of
v. The Incarnation and Development. 177
it far outshining the lamp which has held its flame. And personal
life is after all the battle-ground on which the progress of the
race must be decided. Nor ever, indeed, should this be more
apparent than in the present day. For materialism, that old
enemy alike of the Christian and the human cause, has passed
from the study to the street. No one, indeed, may regret this
mere than the high-souled scientific thinker, whose life belies the
inevitable consequences of his creed. But the ruthless logic of
human passion is drawing those consequences fiercely ; and the
luxury of the rich, and the communistic cry of the poor, and
the desecration of marriage, and the disintegration of society, and
selfishness in policy, and earthliness in art, are plausibly pleading
science in their favor. And with all this Christianity claims, as of
old, to cope, because it is the religion of the Incarnation. For
the real strength of materialism lies in the justice which it does to
the material side of nature, — the loveliness of earth and sea and
sky and sun and star ; the wonder of the mechanism which con-
trols alike the rushing comet and the falling leaf; the human body
crowning both, at once earth's fairest flower and most marvellous
machine. And Christianity is the only religion which does equal
justice to this truth, while precluding its illegitimate perversion.
It includes the truth, by the essential importance which it assigns
to the human body, and therefore to the whole material order,
with which that body is so intimately one ; while it excludes its
perversion, by showing the cause of that importance to lie in its
connection, communion, union with the spirit, and consequent
capacity for endless degrees of glory.
And though its own first vocation is to seek and save souls one
by one, it consecrates in passing every field of thought and action
wherein the quickened energies of souls may find their scope.
It welcomes the discoveries of science, as ultimately due to Divine
revelation and part of the providential education of the world. It
recalls to art the days when, in catacomb and cloister, she learned
her noblest mission to be the service of the Word made Flesh. It
appeals to democracy as the religion of the fishermen who gathered
round the carpenter's Son. It points the social reformer to the
pattern of a perfect Man, laying down His life alike for enemy and
friend. While it crowns all earthly aims with a hope full of immor-
tality, as prophetic of eternal occupations otherwhere. And how-
ever many a new meaning may yet be found in the Incarnation,
however many a misconception of it fade before fuller light, we
can conceive no phase of progress which has not the Incarnation
12
1/8 The Religion of the Incarnation.
for its guiding- star, no age which cannot make the prayer of the
fifth century its own : —
' O God of unchangeable power and eternal light, look favorably
on Thy whole Church, that wonderful and sacred mystery ; and
by the tranquil operation of Thy perpetual Providence, carry out
the work of man's salvation ; and let the whole world feel and see
that things which were cast down are being raised up, and things
which had grown old are being made new, and all things are
returning to perfection through Him, from whom they took their
origin, even through our Lord Jesus Christ.' l
1 Gelasian, quoted by Bright, Ancient Collects, p. 98.
1
VI.
THE INCARNATION AS THE BASIS
OF DOGMA.
+—
R • Cy MOBERLY.
VI.
THE INCARNATION AS THE BASIS OF
DOGMA.
I. Many years ago, in undergraduate days, I was speaking once
to a friend of my hope of beginning some little acquaintance with
Theology. I well remember the air of nicely mingled civility and
contemptuousness, with which my friend, wishing to sympathize,
at once drew a distinction for me between speculative and dog-
matic Theology, and assumed that I could not mean that the mere
study of dogmatic Theology could have any sort of attractiveness.
I do not think that I accepted his kindly overture ; but it certainly
made me consider more than once afterwards, whether the ' mere
study of dogmatic Theology ' could after all be so slavish and
profitless an employment as had been implied. On the whole,
however, I settled with myself that his condemnation, however
obviously candid and even impressive, must nevertheless remain,
so far as I was concerned, a surprise and an enigma. For what,
after all, did the study of dogmatic Theology mean, but the study
of those truths which the mind of Christ's Church upon earth has
believed to be at once the most certain and the most import-
ant truths of man's history, nature and destiny, in this world and
forever ?
It is impossible, however, not to feel that my friend, in his
objection, represented what was, and is, a very widespread instinct
against the study of dogma. Some think, for instance, that to
practical men exactnesses of doctrinal statement, even if true, are
immaterial. Others think that any exactness of doctrinal state-
ment is convicted, by its mere exactness, of untruth ; for that
knowledge about things unseen can only be indefinite in character.
If, indeed, religious knowledge is a process of evolution simply,
if it means only a gradual development towards ever-increasing
defmiteness of religious supposition, then no doubt its exactness
may be the condemnation of dogma. But then, no doubt, to
1 82 The Religion of the Incarnation.
make room for such a view, the whole fact of historical Christianity
must be first displaced.
Is it put as an impossibility, that there cannot be any definite or
certain Theology ? Can there, then, be a Revelation ? Can there
be an Incarnation? Those only are consistent, who assert that all
three are impossible, and who understand that in so doing they are
limiting the possibilities, and therefore pro tanto questioning the
reality of a Personal God. But if there be a Personal God, what
are the adequate grounds on which it is nevertheless laid down
that He ca?inot directly reveal Himself? Or if He can reveal
Himself, on what ground can the a priori assertion rest, that theo-
logical truth must be uncertain or indefinite ? The Christian Church
claims to have both definite and certain knowledge. These claims
can never be met by any a priori judgment that such knowledge is
impossible. Such a judgment is too slenderly based to bear the
weight of argument. To argue from it would be to commit the very
fault so often imputed to the dogmatist. It would be a flagrant
instance of dogmatic assertion (and that for the most important of
argumentative purposes) of what we could not possibly know.
The claim of the Church to knowledge through the Incarnation
can only be rationally met, and only really answered, when the
claim itself, and its evidence, are seriously examined. Herein lies,
and will always lie, the heart of the struggle for or against the dog-
matic character of the Church. Anything else is only the fringe
of the matter. Any rebutting of a priori presumptions against
dogma is a mere clearing of the way for battle. Thus it is said,
perhaps, that the objection is to the degree of defmiteness, or to
the tone of authority. It is fancied that dogma in its very nature,
quite apart from its contents, is a curtailment of the rights, and a
limitation of the powers, of mind. Is dogma, the most definite
and authoritative, fettering to the freedom of intellect? We can
see in a moment the entire unreality of the objection, by simply
substituting for it another question. Is truth fettering to intellect?
Does the utmost certitude of truth limit freedom of mind? Because,
if not, dogma, so far as it coincides with truth, cannot fetter either.
If perfect knowledge of truth could paralyze the intellect, what (it
is worth while to ask) do we mean by intellect? Do we mean
something which must forever be struggling with difficulties which
it cannot overcome ? Is it necessary for the idea of mind that it
should be baffled ? Is it a creature only of the tangle and the fog ?
And if ever the day should come, when after struggling, more or
less ineffectually, with the tangle and the fog, man should emerge
at last in clear sunshine upon the mountain top, will mind cease
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 183
to have any faculty or place, because the knowledge of truth has
come? At least, if we understand this to be the conception of
mind, it need not frighten us quite so much as it did, to be told
that dogma interferes with mind. But if, however different from
our experience, the employment of mind would be in the presence
of perfect knowledge, we cannot so conceive of mind as to admit
that truth could possibly be its enemy or its destruction, then we
may certainly insist that no amount of dogma, so far as it is true,
can limit or fetter the freedom of intellect. But then we are at
once thrown back upon the question : Is the dogmatic teaching of
the Church true ? No statement which absolutely coincides with
truth can hurt the freedom of mind. But mistaken presumption
of truth can, and does, limit it; and so does authority, if it
prevents the examination of truth. Dogma, then, is, as dogma, a
wrong to mind, just so far as it can be convicted of either of these
things ; so far as it forbids examination, or so far as it asserts what
is not strictly true.
As to the first of these two suggestions against dogma, it is quite
enough simply to deny it. The Church, as a teacher of dogmatic
truth, does not forbid the freest and completest inquiry into the
truths which she enunciates. The question is not whether dog-
matic theologians have ever dreaded inquiry into truth ; but
whether the dogmatic Church, as such, precludes or forbids it.
True, she enunciates some truths as true ; and holds those, in
different measures, unwise and wrong, who contradict her truths.
But she does not, therefore, forbid the fullest exercise of intellect
upon them ; nor tremble lest intellect, rightly wielded, should con-
tradict them. Indeed for eighteen centuries she has been engaged,
and will be engaged to the end, in examining with a power and
discipline of intellect, which she alone ever has, or could have,
evoked, into the meaning and exactness of her own knowledge.
But she does warn inquirers that successful inquiry into her truths
is no work of merely ingenious disputation, but needs the exactest
discipline and balance of all the faculties of our human nature.
We return, then, to the second suggestion ; and I repeat that
the question has for us become, not whether dogma in the abstract
is desirable or undesirable, but whether the dogmas of the Chris-
tian Church are true or not true. Dogma that is true can only be
undesirable in so far as truth is undesirable.
Whether the dogmas of the Church are true or not true, is itself
a question of evidence.
Before, however, making any remark upon the nature of this
evidence in the case of religion, we may remember that the pos-
184 The Religion of the Incarnation.
session of dogma is in no way peculiar to religion. There is no
region of research or knowledge which does not present to the
student its own ' dogmata/ or truths ascertained and agreed upon ;
nor does any one, in the name of freedom of intellect, persist in
treating these always as open questions.
But perhaps if we venture thus to claim the ascertained truths
of any science as dogmas, the scientific answer will be ready.
They differ, it will be felt, from the nature of religious dogmas, in
two important respects. The first difference is, that they are
offered for acceptance with their full proofs, from the first moment
that they are offered at all. The student could not, it may be,
have discovered for himself the law of gravitation, or the circula-
tion of the blood ; but he can, when these discoveries are once
set before him by another, see forthwith not only the coherency of
the principles, but the cogency of their proof. The second differ-
ence is, that when they have been accepted by the student, proof
and all, they still claim no allegiance beyond what his intelligence
cannot but freely give ; he is still free to supersede or upset them,
if he can. He accepts them indeed provisionally, as identical
with the truth so far as the truth on the subject is yet known ; yet
not necessarily as final truth. He accepts them as truths which all
his further study will comment upon ; presumably indeed in the
way of continual illustration and corroboration, — so that what he
accepts for study will be more and more certainly proved by the
study, — but also, if you please, in the way of correction ; for if
his study can supersede, or even in any measure correct or alter
them, why so much the better both for science and for him ! Why
should not this be equally true of Theology ? Why should religious
dogmas be received without these conditions, as certainly and
finally true ?
To begin with, then, some exception may be taken to the state-
ment that the student who accepts a scientific doctrine, has the full
evidence before him from the beginning. That it is not altogether
so is evident from the simple consideration, just mentioned, that
his work is a progressive one ; and that the whole course of his
experience tends, and will tend, to deepen the certainty of his first
principles. But in so far as the proof of any leading principle is
being deepened and strengthened by the student's daily work, so
far it is clear that the amount of certainty about his principles with
which at first he began, must be less than that with which he ends
at last ; and therefore that the proof presented to him at the begin-
ning, however much it may have been adequate to the purpose
(even though it may have been the completest proof capable of
vj. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 18
being presented in the way of exposition from the lip to the ear),
was nevertheless most incomplete in comparison with the fulness
of attainable proof. And further, it may certainly be said also,
that in the convincingness of this evidence as at first presented,
authority, whether more or less, had an undoubted part. At the
very least it had a negative place, as a guarantee to the young mind
rejoicing in the ingenuity of the apparent demonstration, that the
apparent demonstration was not vitiated by some unseen fallacy,
or that there was not a series of other considerations behind, which
would rob the lesson just learnt of its practical usefulness. Often,
indeed, the degree of authority in the first scientific convictions
would be very much higher. Often, however helpful the arguments
or illustrations of a principle may seem, the really overruling con-
sideration will at first be this, that the whole scientific world has
absolutely accepted the principle as truth. So much is this the
case, that if an average student should find himself unable in any
point to receive the ascertained truths of his science with intelligent
agreement, he would not hesitate to assume that the whole fault
lay with himself; he would really be convinced in his soul that the
dicta of his scientific teachers were right, and that he himself would
see the certainty of them by and by.
Now in both these two respects the acceptance of religious
dogma is not essentially in contrast, but rather is parallel, with
that of scientific principles. For religious truth is neither in its
first acceptance a mere matter of blind submission to authority, nor
is it stagnant and unprogressive after it is accepted. However
different in other ways the leading truths of the Creed may be from
scientific principles ; in this respect at least they are not different,
— that not one of them is ever brought for the acceptance of men
without some really intelligent evidence and ground for acceptance.
If any man is asked to accept them, without any intelligent ground
for the acceptance, we may be bold perhaps to assert that it would
be his duty to refuse. Of course, however, authority will itself be
a large part of his intelligent ground ; a larger part or a smaller
according to circumstances. But then there is no proper antithesis
between believing in deference to authority, and believing in defer-
ence to reason, unless it is understood that the authority believed
in was accepted at first as authority without reason, or maintained
in spite of the subsequent refusal of reason to give confirmatory
witness to its assertions. Even in the cases in which there seems
to be least use of reason, the case of a young child learning at his
mother's knee, or of a man whose spirit has suffered and been
broken, and who gives himself up at last to the mere guidance of a
1 86 The Religion of the Incarnation.
friend or a teacher, the authority, when accepted at all, is accepted
on grounds essentially reasonable. The child's reasoning may
differ in quality from the prodigal's ; but the child trusts father or
mother on grounds which are wholly, if unconsciously, a product
of the strictest reason ; and the prodigal has felt in his inmost soul
alike the deadness of his own spiritual being, and the power and
the beauty which are in the life of the teacher upon whom he throws
himself. And this is not the only point ; for the reasonable mind in
one is not a thing different in nature from the reasonable mind
in another, or from the eternal reason which is in God. The
truths, therefore, which we are taught about God, and man, and
Christ, about sin, and redemption from sin, and the heaven of
holiness, and which seem to be accepted as a mere act of not
unreasonable dutifulness, do reasonably withal commend them-
selves, in some shape or measure, even to the callow mind from its
earliest immaturity. There is that in the very consciousness of
child, or of criminal, with which they are in essential harmony.
That in him with which they are in essential correspondence bears
witness of them. Nor is any one, in his acceptance of them, wholly
insensible of this witness to their truth, which is, in fact, engraven
upon his own conscious being.
To ' take religion on trust,' then, as it is sometimes derisively
called, is not really to act in defiance of, or apart from, reason. It
is an exercise of reason up to a certain point, — just so, and so
far as, the experience of the person warrants. He sees what to
trust, and why. He sees where understanding and experience
which transcend his own would point. And he seeks for the
rational test of further experience in the only way in which it can
be had. He defers to the voice of experience, in faith that his
own experience will by and by prove its truthfulness. On a medical
question, men would not dispute, they would loudly proclaim, the
reasonableness and wisdom of such a course. Yet there are those
who suppose that the truths of religion are to admit of a complete
preliminary intellectual verification, a verification apart from special
training and experience, such as they might more reasonably
expect in any other subject-matter than religion, but such as, in
fact, they hardly expect elsewhere.
The doctrines of the Church, then, accepted at first on reason-
able evidence, which in a greater or less degree, but perhaps never
wholly, consists in authority reasonably accepted as authority, are
then in all the experience of spiritual life receiving continual com-
ment, explanation, corroboration. The whole experience of Chris-
tian life must be a growth in the apprehension and certainty of
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 187
Christian truth. A Christian neophyte may believe every word
of his Creed, and believe neither ignorantly nor unintelligently.
But the veteran Christian of fourscore will transcend the child at
least as much in the degree of certainty with which the doctrines
of the Church are to his entire faculties, mental, moral, and spirit-
ual, proved and known to be true, as he can possibly do in his
merely intellectual apprehension of the history or meaning of the
words. We may say, indeed, that the life of a professing Chris-
tian which is not a life of growth in the apprehension of doctrinal
truth, must necessarily be a retrogression ; just as the life of so-
called scientific study, which is not continually illuminating afresh,
and deepening the certainty of its own scientific principles, must
gradually come to hold even its own scientific principles less and
less certainly, and to mean by them less and less.
But even if it may be shown that there is not quite so essential
a contrast as there seemed to be, between the character of theo-
logical and scientific dogmas, by reason of the 'proofs which are
offered, along with his principles, to the student of any science ;
yet still it will be felt that they differ essentially in the tone and
manner with which they respectively speak to intellect. The
truths of the one claim at once to possess an intellectual finality,
and to command a moral allegiance, which the truths of the other
do not.
It may be worth while to say in reply, first of all, that there
cannot be a real contrast of finality between them, so far as they
are both really true. What is really true is really true. Neither
' absolutely,' ' finally,' nor any other adverb in the language will
make the statement a stronger one. What we call scientific truths
are not in fact liable to correction, except in so far as they may
perhaps, after all, not be quite scientific truths, except (that is) in
respect of such admixture of erroneous supposition, as still has
clung to them after general acceptance. And on the other hand,
so far as any mistaken assumptions are mixed up with our appre-
hension of religious truths, so far these too are liable to receive,
and in the history of Church doctrine are continually receiving,
correction. It is, after all, a truism. In either sphere the truths,
so far as they really are truths, are true absolutely : but are corri-
gible in so far as our statement of them still contains anything that
is other than truth. We may put it, perhaps, in another way still.
If, to assume an impossible hypothesis, any one could really prove,
not merely that there were some exaggerations or misconceptions
in the traditional mode of statement of some doctrinal truths, but
that our really essential Faith was wrong, we may grant hypotheti-
1 83 The Religion of the Incarnation.
cally (seeing that truth is supreme) that he would do us all a mighty
service, at however tremendous a cost. Similarly of course it
must be owned, that if any one could prove the earth to be flat
and stationary, and the law of gravitation to be the precise contra-
dictory of truth, he would do immense service to science. But
none the less, the scientific certainty on these points is so com-
plete, that if any one seriously assailed them, it would be felt that
he could only be dealing with the evidence in a way which tended
to- compromise the credit of his own reason ; and he would there-
fore be reasonably held to be, as it is roughly phrased, a fool or a
madman. And we must claim that for us the certainty of some
theological propositions is so complete that when any one assails
them, we are no less reasonable in regarding him with concern,
rather for his own truth's sake than for the truth of our religion ;
and that, if miracles or ' an angel from heaven ' should seem to
bear witness for him, it would still be no bigotry, but in the strict-
est sense our reasonable course, to refuse the witness, and to treat
it as merely an attempt to ensnare us into falsehood to the real
requirements of our reason and conscience.
Is the conclusion, then, that there is after all no difference at all
between the truths of Theology and of Science, in respect of their
claim to authority? On the contrary, there remains a perfectly
real contrast of authority between them ; only it is to be looked
for elsewhere than among the conditions upon which our belief in
them respectively is based.
There are two distinct senses in which the doctrines of the
Creed may be said to be authoritative. It may be meant that the
authoritativeness is in the manner in which they are presented to
us ; that is to say, that (whatever their content may be) they are
statements which we believe, and are to believe, on the sole ground
that we are told to do so, without any appeal to reason of our
own ; or it may be meant that they are statements whose content
is of such nature and inherent importance that we cannot, in fact,
believe them, without thereby necessarily being involved in a train
of consequential obligations of thought and life. In this latter
case the authoritativeness lies not in the manner of their presen-
tation to us or our acceptance of them, but in that which is
involved in the nature of the truths themselves, if and when they
are believed.
Is it true to say of the Creeds that they are ' authoritative ' in the
former sense? that is to say, that they challenge our allegiance,
and we are bound to believe them, because we are told that they
are true, without examination on our part, and without reason?
VI. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 189
It has indeed been stated already that, as between pupils and
teachers, there is in religious learning, as there is in all human
learning whatever, scientific or otherwise, a certain legitimate and
important field for authority reasonably accepted as authority, that
is, the authority of men more learned and experienced than our-
selves. Even this, of course, means that the pupil believes the
things taught to be strictly rational to the teacher, though they be
not so, as yet, to himself. But is it true in speaking of religion, to
carry this one step further ; and to say that in this sphere our
whole belief, and duty of belief, rests upon authority as its ultimate
foundation, the authority, not of mans experience, but of God's
command? It must, no doubt, be freely owned on all sides that
if there be a creed commanded of God, we certainly are bound to
believe it. But is there ? or when, or how, was it commanded ?
Does any one answer, through our Lord Jesus Christ? or through
His Church ? or through the Bible ? But who is He ? or what is
the Bible? or how do we know? To accept doctrines, which we
otherwise should not accept, because we are told to do so, without
knowing first who told us, or why we should believe him, is simply
not a reasonable possibility. But to ask these questions and to
have answers to them, and believe because we are satisfied in
some way as to the answers to them, is certainly not to rest the
act of believing on a foundation of mere authority : essentially
rather it is, to go over part of the ground of the Creed first, and
be satisfied as to the correctness of its main substance, and there-
fore to believe it. A Christian will not deny that the doctrines of
the Creed are entitled in fact to be held as authoritative, in both of
the senses distinguished above. But we cannot believe them on
God's authority till we have first believed in the authority of God.
And, therefore, their authoritativeness in what w r e have called the
first sense is not really the ultimate ground of our accepting them :
for it is not itself accepted and apprehended by us, except as a
consequence of our first believing that which is the main sub-
stance of the Creed. It may be the warrant to us of this or that
detail considered apart; but it is not, and cannot ever be, the
original and sufficient cause of our believing the whole. Credo
ut intelligam may be the most true and most reasonable motto
of the large part of Christian faith and life ; but it is not inconsis-
tent with — it is founded upon — an ultimate underlying intellexi ut
crederem.
There is, then, a real and abiding difference between theological
and scientific dogmas, in respect of the authority with which
they speak to us. But the difference is one which does not affect
190 The Religion of ihe Incarnation,
at all the method or grounds of our original belief in them respec-
tively ; it is to be found exclusively in the different subject-matter
of the two when believed.
And herein, also, it is that we find the real answer to the other
form of question, viz., why should Theology claim to be so much
more final than science ? Much as science has conquered of the
realm of truth, it does not profess to have conquered more than
a little. Of the vast residuum it says nothing. It has no idea how-
small a proportion its present knowledge may bear to that which
will one day be known. Nay, the further it advances in knowledge
of truth, so much the smaller a proportion does its realized truth
seem to it to bear to that which remains unexplored. Why should
the theologian be less patient of additions to theological knowl-
edge, such as may some day throw all his present creeds into com-
parative obscurity? Why should the Christian Creed be fixed
and inexpansive ? The question is formidable only in an abstract
form. The reasonable answer to it confronts us the moment we
consider what is the subject-matter of the Creed. Scientific prin-
ciples are in their very nature fragments of a truth which is prac-
tically infinite. But the Christian Creed, if true at all, cannot
possibly be a fragment of truth. For the Christian Creed does
not simply enunciate so many abstract principles of natural or
supernatural life or governance. It introduces us straight to a
supreme Person, Himself the beginning and end, the author and
upholder of all. Such a doctrine may be false ; but it can-
not be a fragment. The child who believes in God, believes in
everything, though he knows hardly anything. He has infinitely
more yet to learn, as to what his own belief means. But he has
nothing to add to it. The perfect knowledge of the universe would
not add to it, but would only explain it. It is, then, by virtue of
his personal relation to a Personality which is Itself supreme and
all inclusive, that he is guilty of no presumption, even though in
the face of the modest disavowals of scientific men, he must main-
tain that his own creed is, in its proper nature, even when all
admissions have been made, rather a complete and conclusive,
than a partial or a tentative, statement of truth. But this differ-
ence between him and them is the result neither of any arrogance
j'n his temper, nor any lack in his logic, but it follows necessarily
from the nature of the subject-matter of his creed, if and when it
is believed.
But still this fact that, if true, they are truths which by the obvious
necessity of their subject-matter speak to our intellects and con-
sciences, with a tone of such Divinely commanding authority,
VI. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 191
ought not to make me or any one accept them as true, unless the
evidence for them is adequate. The question is not how authori-
tative they would be, if true ; nor how important or inclusive they
would be, if true ; nor is any amount of contingent importance or
authority adequate evidence for their truth, but only a motive for
inquiring into its evidence. The question is, Are they true? or
Are they not true ? and the question is a question of evidence.
II. And now, in recurring once more to the subject of the
evidence by which the dogmas of religion are proved, from which
we diverged just now, we find, in respect of it, a second reality of
contrast between theological truths and the truths of material
science. For whilst in both cases equally we depend upon
evidence, and evidence that is adequate ; it does not follow that
the evidence for both is in all points similar in kind. In great
part indeed it is so ; but it is certainly not so altogether. For
when we speak of the evidence of religious truths, it is to be
remembered that the full evidence by which our consciences are
wholly convinced of them, is not of one kind only, but of all kinds.
The facts of religion address themselves to the whole nature of
man ; and it is only by the whole nature of man that they can
ever be fully apprehended. Man is not a being of intellectual
conceptions or faculties only. And because he is not so, therefore
no set of principles which could be apprehended by the intellect
alone (as the theorems of Euclid may appear to be), and which
make for their acceptance no demand at all upon the qualities of
his moral or spiritual being, could really present, as religion pro-
fesses to present, a system of truth and life which would be ade-
quate to the scope of his whole nature. It is undoubtedly the
case that just as the truths of religion account for, and appeal to,
his whole being, so the evidence for them appeals to his whole
being also. For its complete appreciation there are requirements
other than intellectual. There must be not only certain endowments
of mind, but the life of a moral being. There must be moral affec-
tions, moral perceptions, spiritual affinities and satisfactions. Even
if the primary conviction of his reason may be apart from these,
yet of the fully developed evidence, which is the real possession
of the Christian believer, these are a most important and necessary
part. Without these, his certainty, adequate though it might be,
would be far less profound than it is. These are to him essential
ingredients in the richness and the fulness of the evidence which to
him is everywhere. Now for this necessary width of the full con-
firmatory evidence of religion, it is impossible for the religious
man, with the utmost desire to make every allowance and*apology
19 2 The Religion of the Incarnation.
that is possible, to offer any apology at all. So far from being a
mark of inconsistency or feebleness, it is a necessary note of the
completeness of religion. Religion professes to have for its sub-
ject-matter, and in a measure incomplete, but relatively adequate,
to include, to account for, and to direct, the whole range of all
man's history, all man's capacities, explored or unexplored, all man's
destiny now and forever. If its truths and their evidence were
found to address themselves exclusively to the intellect, in isolation
from the other qualities and experiences of man's nature, it would
be self-convicted of inadequacy. If men full of worldliness of
heart and self-indulgence could be capable of understanding the
revelation of religious truth as accurately, of embracing it as com-
pletely, of apprehending the depth and the width of the evidence
for it (with which all human nature really is saturated) as thoroughly
as the prayerful and the penitent, this would not mean that religion
or religious evidence had been lifted up on to a higher and more
properly scientific level, but rather that it had shrunk down into
correspondence merely with a part, and not the noblest part, of
man's present nature.
It would be far beyond the scope of this paper to discuss kinds
of evidence, or argue in defence of the position that there is real
evidence for religious truth, which is none the less properly evi-
dence, because it is different in kind from the evidence for the
propositions of material science ; but it may be permissible, at
least, in passing to record the claim, and to insist that religious
men, in confining themselves to strictly historical or logical argu-
ments, are necessarily omitting much which is nevertheless, to
them, real ground. There are evidences which can speak to the
heart, the imagination, the conscience, as well as the intelligence.
Or, perhaps, we shall come nearer to an exact expression of the
truth, by saying that the intelligence, which can apprehend and
pronounce upon the evidence of truths of spiritual consciousness,
is an intelligence identical in name, but not identical in nature,
with that which can well weigh and judge purely logical — or even
that which can pronounce upon moral — problems. The intelli-
gence of a moral character, or of a spiritual personality, differs not
in range only, but in quality, from that of a merely ' rational ani-
mal.' If the moral and the spiritual intelligence did not contain
quite other elements, drawn from quite other experiences and pos-
sibilities, they could not work upon their higher subject-matter at
all. To the religious man, therefore, it must seem strictly unrea-
sonable, in the examination of truths which professedly correspond
to man's whole nature, and need his whole nature and experience
VI. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 193
for the intrepretation of them, to begin by shutting out, as irrele-
vant, what we will modestly call the half of man's nature ; and to
demand that the truths shall be so stated and so proved as that
the statements and proofs shall correspond exclusively with the
other half, and find in that other half their whole interpretation
and their whole evidence.
It may, indeed, be desirable to guard against a misconception,
by the express admission that there is some necessary ambiguity
in the terms employed. We may seem to have unduly extended
both the verbal meaning, and the sphere of importance, of ' evi-
dence ' and ' proof.' Undoubtedly there is a sense in which it
would be, not merely true to admit, but important to insist, that
in the acceptance of religious truth, Faith neither is, nor ever can
be, displaced, in order that Demonstration may be enthroned in
her place. But then Demonstration is a word which belongs to
strictly logical nomenclature. . And the very point here insisted on
is that the strictly logical presentment of religion is, in reference to
the real presentment of religion, most inadequate. Undoubtedly,
if everything else is shorn away, and religion remains solely and
only in the form of strict logic, without sentiment, without imagin-
ation, without experience of duty, or sin, or right, or aspiration, or
anything else which belongs to the spiritual consciousness of
human personalities, the logic of it is, and must be, imperfectly
conclusive.
Now words such as ' evidence,' ' proof,' ' intelligence,' are no
doubt often used in connection with processes of the intellect
taken apart — the intellect of a being merely rational. In insisting,
therefore, that the word ' evidence,' when used in reference to
religious subject-matter, must include data which, to the observer
of physical phenomena, would seem vague and impalpable ; and
that intelligence, as adequately trained to apprehend and give judg-
ment upon religious evidence, is in some respects other, and more,
than that intelligence which can deal with evidence into which no
element of spiritual consciousness enters, — we differ, perhaps, at
the most, more in form than reality, from those who simply depre-
cate the appeal to ' evidence ' or ' proof in matters of faith.
To the religious man, then, the fulness of Christian evidence is
as many sided as human life. There is historical evidence, —
itself of at least a dozen different kinds, — literary evidence, met-
aphysical evidence, moral evidence, evidence of sorrow and joy,
of goodness and of evil, of sin and of pardon, of despair and of
hope, of life and of death ; evidence which defies enumerating ;
into this the whole gradual life of the Christian grows; and there
194 The Religion of the Incantation.
is no part nor element of life which does not to him perpetually
elucidate and confirm the knowledge which has been given him.
Everything that is or has been, every consciousness, every possi-
bility, even every doubt or wavering, becomes to the Christian a
part of the certainty — an element in the absorbing reality — of
his Creed.
But this is rather the end than the beginning. Certainly it is
not thus that the Creed of the Church can present itself to those
whose life is still independent of the Creed.
Let us consider, then, how the truths of the Creed did first, in
fact, introduce themselves to human consciousness. There are
three several stages of its presentment in history, of which the
central one is so overmastering in importance that it alone gives
their character to the other two. They are, first the leading up,
in the world's history and consciousness, to the life of Jesus
Christ; secondly, the life and death of Jesus Christ; thirdly, the
results, in history and consciousness, of the life and death of
Jesus Christ. We may say, perhaps, that of the first of these the
main outcome was belief in God ; and such a God, that belief in
Him carried with it the two corollaries of aspiration a±ter right-
eousness and conviction of sin. We may say that the third of
these means the establishment of the Church upon earth, and the
articulating of her consciousness according to the Creeds. But
in any case all the three are plainly historical, matters of historical
inquiry, of historical evidence ; and all plainly depend entirely
upon the intermediate one, the history of a certain human life
which purports to be — which either is, or is not — the hinge-point
of all history whatever.
All turns, then, upon a certain passage of history. Is the
history, as believed by Christians, true or false? The Christian
record of that history is the New Testament. Indeed, of that
history, the New Testament is the only record. Is, then, the
history of the teaching and the work, the life and the death, of
Jesus Christ, presented to us in the New Testament as a chapter
of historical fact, — is it historical fact, or is it not ? The Incarna-
tion is either a fact, or a fiction. The Incarnation means also for
Christians the Atonement. For our present purpose, the Incarna-
tion may be taken as necessarily including the Atonement. But
still of this complex fact the dilemma stands. If it is not true, it
is false. There is no middle term. If it is not true, then, whether
dogma in itself is, or is not, desirable,, at least all the dogma of the
Christian Church is false.
VI. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 195
The Incarnation and the Atonement together are not presented
in the New Testament as, by their own mere statement, guarantee-
ing themselves. On the contrary, there is one single, definite,
historical fact, which is represented there as the central heart and
core of the evidence upon which the conviction of their truth
depends. This fact is the resurrection of Jesus Christ from the
dead. Though this is not the whole of the Christian Creed, yet
this, according to St. Paul, is, to the whole of the Christian Creed,
crucial. ' If there be no resurrection from the dead, then is Christ
not risen ; and if Christ be not risen, then is our preaching vain,
and your faith is also vain. Yea, and we are found false witnesses
of God ; because we have testified of God, that He raised up
Christ ; whom He raised not up, if so be that the dead rise not.
For if the dead rise not, then is not Christ raised ; and if Christ
be not raised, your faith is vain, ye are yet in your sins.' To be
direct personal evidence of a certain fact, and that fact the resur-
rection, — this was, in the view of St. Peter and the Apostles, the
first qualification, and the central meaning, of Apostleship : ' must
one be ordained to be a witness with us of His resurrection ; '
* this Jesus hath God raised up, whereof we all are witnesses?
Upon the historical truth or falsehood, then, of the resurrection,
hangs the whole question of the nature and work of Jesus Christ,
the whole doctrine of Incarnation and Atonement.
But in saying this, it is necessary to guard our proper meaning.
If we admit the fact of the Resurrection to be cardinal, what is
the fact of the Resurrection which is in question ? It is as far as
possible from being simply a question whether ' a man ' could or
could not, did or did not, reappear, after death, in life. When
we speak of the historical fact, we must mean at least the whole
fact with all that it was and meant, complex as it was and many
sided ; not with its meaning or its proof isolated upon a single
page of the book of history, but having far-reaching affinities, parts
essentially of its interpretation and of its evidence, entwined in the
depths of the whole constitution of our nature, and the whole
drama of history from the first moment to the last. However
much Christians may have at times to argue about the simple
evidence for the ' yes ' or ' no ' of the Resurrection of Jesus, as if
it were the alleged resurrection of any other man that was in
question, neither the question itself, nor the evidence about it,
can possibly be, in fact, of the same nature or upon the same
level, as the evidence about another. No amount of conviction of
the reappearance in life of any other man, would have any similar
meaning, or carry any similar consequences. The inherent char-
ig6 The Religion of the Incarnation,
acter of Him who rose, and the necessary connection between
what He was, and had said and claimed for Himself, on the one
hand, and on the other His rising out of death : this is an essen-
tial part of that fact of the resurrection, which comes up for proof
or disproof. The fact that Jesus Christ, being what He was, the
climax and fulfilment of a thousand converging lines — nay, of all
the antecedent history of mankind — rose from the dead, and by
that fact of resurrection (solemnly fore-announced, yet none th< .
less' totally unlooked for) illuminated and explained for the first
time all that before had seemed enigmatical or contradictory in
what He was, -7- and indeed in all humanity; this is the real fact
of the resurrection which confronts us. It is this vast fact which
is either true or false. The resurrection of the crucified Jesus
cannot possibly be a bare or simple fact. When viewed as a
material manifestation of the moment only, it is at least misunder-
stood ; it may be unintelligible. It is, no doubt, an event in
history ; and yet it confronts us, even there in its place and wit-
ness in history, not simply as a finite historical event, but as an
eternal counsel and infinite act of God.
Yet there are times when we must consent to leave much of all
this, for the moment, on one side. Whatever else the event in his-
tory may carry with it, of course it must stand its ground as a mere
historical event. The mere fact may be but a part of it ; yet all will
be overthrown if the fact be not fact. And so, though the truths
of the Christian religion, and the evidence for them, be at least as
wide as was represented above, yet they present themselves to our
minds still, as they presented themselves at first to the minds of
men, within the sphere and the rules of ordinary human history and
historical evidence. Here are events written on the page of his-
tory. Examine them. Are they historically false or true? If
they be not false, what do they mean and involve ? This is the
modest way in which they present themselves.
No one will now dispute that Jesus died upon the Cross. If He
did not, on the third day, rise again from that death to life, cad it
quaestio ; all Christian dogma, all Christian faith, is at an end.
Something might still be true which might be of interest ; some-
thing, even, which for sheer want of a better, might be still the
most interesting fact in the world's long history ; but something
which from the first line to the last, would be essentially different
from the Catholic faith. But, on the other hand, if He did so rise
again, then the fact of His resurrection necessarily raises further
questions as to His nature and being, — necessarily requires the
understanding of further truths for its own intelligent explanation.
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 197
Now the present paper is not an evidential treatise. It is no part
of our task to attempt to prove the historical reality of the resur-
rection. What it does concern us to notice is the way in which
the determination of all Christian truth hinges upon it. If it falls,
all the rest will drift away, anchorless and unsubstantial, into the
region of a merely beautiful dreamland. As dreamland, indeed, it
may still captivate and inspire ; but anchor of sure fact there will
be none. It will only be a beautiful imagination, — a false mirage
reflected from, based upon, falsehood. No doubt imagination is
sovereign in the lives of men. But then imagination means the
vivifying of truth, not the spectral embodiment of a lie.
On the other hand, if the fact of the resurrection stands, then it
cannot stand alone. If Jesus Christ so lived and taught as even
the most indefinite believers concede that He lived and taught, if
He then died on the Cross, and rose again the third day from the
dead, you have indeed already the foundation dogma of the Creed ;
and having that, you cannot possibly rest in it : that foundation
fact will absolutely compel you to ask and to answer certain further
necessary questions ; and whatever intelligible answer you may
choose to give to them will be essentially a dogmatic definition.
Who or what was this man who thus lived, thus spoke, thus died,
and thus rose from the dead? As a matter of fact, the whole
Church of Christ in history (including the men who had been His
own companions, trained and inspired by Himself) taught and
believed, without shadow of hesitation, that He was very God.
Very gradually, indeed, had they advanced to this ; step by step,
through their growing intimacy with a character whose very excel-
lences were only enigmatical and confounding, so long as the
master-truth, which lay behind them, was ignored. And very ten-
tative, on His side, was the method of His self-revelation ; through
qualities, through inherent powers, through explicit teachings,
slowly felt, slowly recognized, as transcendent, as impossible,
except in relation to a truth which, after long misconceptions and
perplexities, is seen by them at last not only to be true, but to be
the essential truth which He Himself requires of them. For be
the method as gradual and as tentative as you please, these wit-
nesses, who are, in fact, the only witnesses the world ever has had,
or can have, of His inner life and teaching, testify unhesitatingly
not only that all true acceptance of Him was, in their judg-
ment, acceptance of Him as God, but that His life and death
were penetrated by the consciousness of His own Godhead ; and
by the deliberate purpose (through whatever unexpected patience
of method) of convincing the whole world in the end of His
1 93 The Religion of the Incarnation.
Godhead, and receiving universal belief, and universal worship as
God.
Now no one to-day disputes that He was truly man. Is it true
that He was very God? It is either true or false. As to the fact
there are only the two alternatives. And between the two the gulf is
impassable. If it is not false, it is true. If it is not absolutely
true, it is absolutely false. According to the faith of the Catholic
Church it is absolutely true. According to the highest form of
Arianism, not less than according to the barest Socinianism, it is
(however you may try to gloss it over) absolutely false.
Once more, it is quite beyond our province to marshal or press
argumentatively the proofs that He was indeed God. But it is ne-
cessary to see with perfect clearness how the question must have
been raised, and being raised, must have been answered. The
very life of the Church was belief in Him ; and she could not
remain fundamentally uncertain as to who or what He was in
Whom she believed. This was the one thing which had never
been allowed to those who drew near Christ. All through His
ministry those who came near Him, and felt the spell of His
presence, His holiness, His power, were undergoing a training and
a sifting. Moment by moment, step by step, the accumulating
evidence of His transcendently perfect humanity kept forcing more
and more upon them all the question which He would never let
them escape, the question by which they were to be tested and
judged : ' What think ye of Christ? ' ' If ye believe not that I am
He, ye shall die in your sins. '
If there is a true historical sense in which the clear definition of
the doctrine of the Divinity of Jesus Christ must be assigned to
the Councils of the fourth and fifth centuries, yet it would be a
great historical blunder to state or imagine, as inference, that till
then the doctrine was only held partially or with imperfect con-
sciousness in the Catholic Church. The Church did not, as a
result of those controversies, develop the consciousness of any new
doctrine; the development of her consciousness was rather in.
respect of the shallow but tempting logic which would deform, or
the delusions which might counterfeit, her doctrine, and of the
perils to which these must lead. It may be a question, indeed,
how far the words implicit and explicit do, or do not, represent the
distinction between the dogmatic consciousness of the Apostolic
and the Conciliar ages. The difficulty in determining depends
solely on this, that the words themselves are used with different
meanings. Thus, sometimes men are said to hold implicitly what
they never perhaps suspected themselves of holding, if it can be
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 199
shown to be a more or less legitimate outcome, or logical develop-
ment, of their belief. If such men advance inferentially from
point to point, their explicit belief at a later time may be in many
particulars materially different from what it had been at an earlier ;
even though it might be logically shown that the earlier thought
was, more or less directly, the parent of the later. Now in any
such sense as this we shall stoutly maintain that, from the begin-
ning, the Church held dogmatic truths not implicitly, but explicitly
and positively. They who baptized into the threefold Name of
the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost ; whose blessing
was ' The grace of the Lord Jesus Christ, and the love of God,
and the communion of the Holy Ghost ; ' who living in the Spirit,
lived in Christ ; whose highest worship was the Communion of the
Body and the Blood of Christ, and whose perfectness of life was
Christ ; they, so living and worshipping, did not hold the Godhead
of Jesus Christ implicitly; they did not hold something out of
which the doctrine of the Trinity might come to be unfolded. On
the other hand, you may use the same contrast of words, meaning
merely that you have, through cross-questioning or otherwise,
obtained a power which you did not possess, of defining, in
thought and in words, the limits of your belief, and distinguishing
it precisely from whatever does not belong to it. You hold still
what you always meant to hold. You say still what you always
meant to say. But it is your intellectual mastery over your own
meaning which is altered. Like a person fresh from the encoun-
ter of a keen cross-examination, you are furnished now, as you
were not before, with distinctions and comparisons, with definitions
and measurements, — in a word, with all that intellectual equipment,
that furniture of alert perception and exact language, by which you
are able to realize for yourself, as well as to define to others, what
that meaning exactly is, and what it is not, which itself was before,
as truly as it is now, the very thing that you meant.
In this sense, no doubt, the definitions of councils did make
Christian consciousness more explicit in relation to positive truth.
They acquired, indeed, no new truth. Primarily they were rather,
on this side or on that, a blocking off of such false forms of thought
or avenues of unbalanced inference, as forced themselves forward,
one by one, amidst the intellectual efforts of the time, to challenge
the acceptance of Christian people. Primarily they are not the
Church saying 'yes ' to fresh truths or developments, or forms of
consciousness ; but rather saying ' no ' to untrue and misleading
modes of shaping and stating her truth. Only indirectly, in that
effort, the Church acquires through them a new definiteness of
200 The Religion of the Incarnation.
mastery for the intellect in reference to the exactness of her own
meaning.
It is comparatively easy for those who are convinced of a truth
to struggle against its open contradiction. But false modes of stat-
ing their truth, and unbalanced inferences from their truth, are
often staggering to minds which would be unperplexed by any less
insidious form of error. It may be that, in all ages of the Church,
even those who are born and bred in undoubting faith in the Per-
son of Jesus, have to pass, more or less explicitly, through their
owri experience of hesitation and exaggeration, of reaction and
counter-reaction, before they are quite in a position to define, or
maintain by argument in the face of insidious alternatives, the
exact proportion of their own Catholic belief.
Not unsuggestively, indeed, nor indirectly, do the oscillations of
the public consciousness in the era of the councils, as to the due
expression of Catholic belief, reproduce on a larger scale, and
therefore with more magnified clumsiness, the alternating exagger-
ations of such a single, struggling mind. The natural thought
begins, as a matter of course, as Apostles had begun of old, with
the perfect and obvious certainty that Jesus was a man. Then
comes the mighty crisis to natural thought. With infinite heavings
and smugglings, and every conceivable expedient of evasion, it
strains to avoid the immense conclusion which challenges it, catch-
ing eagerly at every refinement, if so be it may be possible to stop
short of full acceptance of a truth so staggering (when it comes to
be measured intellectually) as that the Man Jesus was Himself the
Eternal God. Now however grossly unjust it might be to think of
Arianism as if it ever meant, or held, Jesus Christ to be merely a
man ; yet it is true that in respect of the one great question which
is at the root of Christian faith, — is He God, or is He not? — it
stands as offering alternatives and expedients, by which the plain
answer ' yes ' may be avoided ; by which therefore the answer
' no ' is in effect maintained ; for between ' God ' and ' not God '
the distinction cannot be bridged. This, then, is the real hinge-
point of the Catholic faith. But when this, the greatest of all bat-
tles of belief, is won at last, in spite of every variety of Arian and
semi-Arian refining ; forthwith the undisciplined mind, always
ready to exaggerate, always difficult of balance, begins so to run
into ardor of expression of its truth, as in effect to make unreal the
other half of the doctrine of the Incarnation. The first great won-
der once grasped, it is so natural, in fervor of insistence on the
very Godhead, to forget or deny the simple completeness of the
very Manhood ! It seems so hard, — almost wanting in reverence,
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 201
— still to conceive of Him then as perfectly human, — human body
and human soul ! What more obvious reaction in the mind of any
pupil not yet perfectly steadied and balanced? Yet these few
short sentences represent not untruly the real process of education,
painfully accomplished by those intellectual struggles which cul-
minated in the councils of Nicaea and Constantinople, in 325 and
381 respectively. And when the pupil is steadied from this second
excess, and the Godhead and the Manhood are both grasped, each
severally, each completely, there follows again a perfectly natural
result in a new uncertainty about the union of the two in Jesus.
Again it seems an instinct of reverence which shrinks from the
truth. For the Manhood, it is urged, though complete, body, soul,
and spirit, must yet remain, in Him, a thing separable and separate
from His own original Divine personality. But if the human nat-
ure was not verily His own nature, if it was animated by any con-
sciousness which was not absolutely His own consciousness, the
consciousness of His one undivided personality, — what or whence
in Him was this other than His own individual consciousness? Is
it. so, then, the mind begins necessarily to ask itself, that the mys-
tery of the Incarnate Life was the mystery of a double conscious-
ness, a double personality? two distinguishable existences, two
selves, two identities, side by side, harmonious, allied, yet nowhere
really meeting in any one underlying principle of unity? It was
necessary that the doubt should be raised, that its meaning and
results might be measured. But it is this which becomes the Nes-
torianism against which the council of Ephesus in 431 set the seal
of Catholic belief. Once more, the natural reaction from Nestori-
anism, when the believer is keenly alert against its danger, is so to
insist upon the indivisible Personal unity, as to shrink from the
admission of any distinguishableness in Him, actual or possible,
between the two natures or characters which He united, between the
human and the Divine elements m His one consciousness. But this
is either once more to curtail the true completeness of the human
nature, or to fuse it with the Divine into some new thing not truly
identical with either. And this is the Monophysitism of 451, the
subject-matter of the fourth great general council at Chalcedon.
It is said, indeed, that the ages of councils were uncritical ages ;
and that their decisions are therefore not to be accepted as author-
itative on questions of minute theological criticism, for which their
uncritical spirit made them specially unfit. The assertion is per-
haps a little beside the mark. You have not to plead that they
were likely to be uncritical, but to show that they were in fact
wrong. It is clear that they were not specially unfit either to
202 The Religion of the Incarnation.
arrive at a definiteness of meaning, or to express what they meant.
They were sure what they meant ; and have expressed it with per-
fect clearness. The question is not how critical they were likely to
be, but whether their meaning — which is clear — is right or wrong.
Whatever antecedent probability there may be either in the minds
of nineteenth-century critics against their correctness, or in the minds
of Churchmen accustomed to defer to them in favor of it ; it is
certain that no one who is really doubtful about the truth of Chris-
tianity, will be called upon to accept it in deference to the mere
authority of the Councils. However much more they may be to
ourselves, to such a one as this they must stand at least as witnesses
of what the consciousness of the Christian community set its seal
to; in the way of interpretation of its own original deposit of belief.
We do not much care to argue whether they belonged to an age of
criticism or not. Yet we must needs be ready to listen to any one
who can prove that their determinations were wrong. Councils,
we admit, and Creeds, cannot go behind, but must wholly rest upon
the history of our Lord Jesus Christ. If any one could seriously
convict the Creeds of being unscriptural, we must listen to him and
bow, — as scientific men would have to bow to any one who really
could prove the fundamental propositions of their science to be
wrong. But meanwhile, so complete is the historical acceptance of
the Creeds, and their consecration in the consciousness of the
Church ; that there is at least as clear a presumption that we are
uncatholic in differing from them, as there would be that we were
unscientific if we dissented from the most universally accepted
faiths of science.
Now even this, the most commonplace statement of the growth
of Christian definitions, will serve to mark what the nature of
dogma is. So far from faith without it being a thing more spiritual
or pure, faith without it is a thing irrational. Faith in what ? I
cannot have faith without an object. Faith in Jesus Christ? But
who is Jesus Christ? Is He a dead man? Is He, as a dead
man, no longer in any existence? Or am I, at least, necessarily
ignorant as to whether He and other dead men have any existence,
actual or probable? Or is He a man indeed, — no more; and
dead indeed ; but, as other good men, alive after death somehow
in the blessedness of God ? And what then did His life mean ? or
His strange deliberate dying? or what connection have they of
meaning or power with me? And this God that you speak of;
do I know anything of Him? or what? or how? Or again, is Jesus
Himself the living God? And are the things true which are
handed down to me in the Church as taught by Himself about the
vr. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 203
relations of God ? Is He my living Master ; my very Redeemer
by the Cross ; my eternal Judge ? and where and how have I con-
tact in life or soul with the benefits of His Cross, or the power
of His help ? If indeed I have nothing to do with Him, and no
interest in His history, it is possible for me to go on without caring
to answer such questions. But faith in Him can have no meaning
while these are ignored. The question whether He is or is not
God, is one which cannot but be asked and answered.
And either answer to the question is alike dogmatic. The Arian
is no less dogmatic than the Catholic. A dogmatic faith is only a
definite faith ; and that upon questions upon which it has become
irrational to remain indefinite, after I have once been brought to a
certain point of acquaintance with them. The question between
the Catholic and the Arian is, not whose doctrine evades definite-
ness of determination, but whose dogma is in accord with the
truth and its evidence. The negative answer to the question pro-
posed would only be unjudicial, not undogmatic. Meanwhile the
affirmative answer would be so complete a concession of the whole
position, that if it has once been made, as much has really been
admitted, so far as any battle about dogma goes, as if the whole
formal statement of the Athanasian Creed had been expressly, as
it will have been implicitly, included. There is nothing, then,
really to fight against in these words, ' The right faith is, that we
believe and confess that our Lord Jesus Christ, the Son of God, is
God and Man ; God, of the substance of the Father, begotten be-,
fore the worlds ; and Man, of the substance of His mother, born in
the world ; perfect God, and perfect Man : of a reasonable soul and
human flesh subsisting ; equal to the Father, as touching His God-
head ; and inferior to the Father, as touching His Manhood. Who
although He be God and Man : yet He is not two, but one Christ ;
One; not by conversion of the Godhead into flesh ; but by tak-
ing of the Manhood into God ; One altogether ; not by confusion
of substance, but by unity of Person.'
Another thing which perhaps the same commonplace statement
may illustrate as to the character of Christian dogma, is its large-
ness and equity. It is harmony ; it is proportion ; it is the protest
of balanced completeness against all that partiality, which, by exag-
gerating something that is true, distorts the proportion and simpli-
city of truth. Every several form of error — we admit it willingly
— grew out of, and represented, a truth. Catholic doctrine alone
preserves the proportion of truth. To work and to think within
the lines of dogmatic faith, is to work and to think upon the true
and harmonious conception of the Person of Jesus Christ — ' Quern
204 The Religion of the Incarnation.
nosse vivere, Cui servire regnare.' In this knowledge certainly
there is no limitedness, and in this subordination no slavery.
The meaning of Christian dogma, then, so far as we have at
present had anything to do with it, is simply this. It is the self-
realizing of the consciousness of the Christian community in respect
of the answer to be given to that one great question, fundamental
and inevitable, with which all in all times who would approach
Christ must be met, — ' Whom say ye that lam?'
But, it will be felt, it is all very well to insist so much upon this
one point, which it is comparatively easy to represent as the neces-
sary answer of a truthful conscience to a question which is forced
upon it by the plainest evidence ; but are there not a great many
Christian doctrines besides ? What of the rest of them, — < all the
Articles of the Christian faith,' as the Catechism says? I have ven-
tured to speak at length upon this one, not because it is easier to
handle conveniently than the others, but because it directly carries,
if it does not contain, everything. It is not only that this is in it-
self so tremendous a dogma, that no one who affirms this can pos-
sibly quarrel any longer with the principle of dogmatic definition,
but that this so inevitably involves all the other propositions of the
Creed, that no one, whose conscience has accepted this, will find
it easy to separate between it and the whole Christian faith.
The Christian Creed consists of three parts only ; and all three
are ' belief in God.' ' I believe in God the Father, the Son, and the
Holy Ghost ' is, in brief, the whole Christian Creed. Its shortest
expression is in three words (which three words are but one),
'Holy, Holy, Holy.' The definitions of the Apostles', of the
Nicene, and of the Athanasian Creeds, none of them really travel
outside of this. Take, for example, the doctrine of the Holy Trin-
ity. Intellectually it is, of course, antecedent to the doctrine of
the Incarnation and the Atonement. But it will be observed that
it is made known to us not antecedently, but as a consequence of our
previous conviction of the Incarnation. Moreover, when it is made
known it is made known rather incidentally than directly. Even
though it is, when revealed and apprehended, the inclusive sum of
our faith, yet there is, in the revelation, no formal unfolding of it, as
of a mysterious truth set to challenge our express contemplation and
worship. There is nothing here to be found in the least correspond-
ing with the explicit challenge, ' Whom say ye that I am ? ' or ' On this
rock will I build My Church ; ' but rather indirectly, so far as our
contemplation of the Incarnation, and its abiding consequences,
requires for its own necessary interpretation to our understanding,
that we should have some insight into the mystery of the distinction
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma, 205
of Persons in the Godhead, so far, and in reference to that purpose,
the mystery of the Holy Trinity grows gradually into clearness of
revelation to our consciousness. It is clear that any distinctness
of conception whatever as to the meaning of Incarnation would
be impossible, without some revelation of mutual relations between
the Sender and the Sent, the Immutable and the Incarnate, the
Father and the Son. If it is less clear from the first, it is surely
not less certain, that any conception we may have of the relation so
revealed between the Father and the Son, would be fainter by far,
and less intelligible than it is, if it were not for that which our Lord
Jesus Christ has told us as to the office and nature of the Holy
Spirit ; if with our growing conception of distinctness and relation
as between the Sender and the Sent, we had not also some added
conception of that Blessed Spirit of Holiness, Who, emanating
from both, is the Spirit of both alike, and is thereby also the very
bond of perfectness of Love whereby both are united in One ; and
whereby, further, all spirits in whom God's presence dwells, are
united, so far, in a real oneness of spirit with one another and with
God. And it is quite certain, that whether we seem to any one to
be right or no in treating this revelation of the Holy Ghost as a
necessary, if incidental, part of what He had need to be taught of
the revelation of the Father and the Son, in order to make Incar-
nation properly intelligible ; it is altogether essential for that other
purpose, in connection with which the revelation is more immedi-
ately made, that is, for any understanding on our part of the abiding
work of God in His Church, after the Pvesurrection and Ascension.
1 The holy Catholic Church, the Communion of Saints, the For-
giveness of sins, the Resurrection of the body, and the life everlast-
ing ; ' these are not miscellaneous items thrown in at the end of the
Creed after the doctrine of the Holy Trinity is finished, but they
are essential parts of the understanding of the doctrine of the Holy
Ghost : and on the other hand, without the revelation of the Per-
son and work of the Holy Ghost, these doctrines, practical though
they be, and vital for practice, — no less indeed than the very
essence and meaning of the work of the Incarnation from the
day of Ascension forwards, that is to say the whole historical effect
and fruit of the Incarnation, — would be evacuated of all living
meaning, and would become for us only the empty phrases of a
far-away baseless yearning, which even now (apart from the life of
the Holy Spirit informing us) they are ever too ready to become.
It is hoped that even such brief statements may at least serve
to indicate how it is true that the whole of our Christian creed,
even those parts which seem most separable from it, or ante-
206 The Religion of the Incarnation.
cedent to it, are for us really contained in the one crucial doc-
trine of the Incarnation, that is, of the eternal Godhead of the Man
Christ Jesus. And this will compel us once more to recognize
the simplicity of Christian dogma. It does not mean a compli-
cated system of arbitrary definitions upon a great variety of sub-
jects of religious speculation, formulated one after another by
human ingenuity, and imposed by human despotism upon the
consciences of the unthinking or the submissive ; it means rather
the simple expression (guarded according to experience of mis-
conception) of the fundamental fact of the Incarnation, together
with such revelation as to the relations of the Divine Being, and
the wonder of His work amongst men, as is clearly lit up by the
event of the Incarnation itself, and is required for such apprehen-
sion of the meaning and effects of the Incarnation as Jesus Christ
held to be meet and necessary for us.
And so it is with all parts of Christian doctrine. If they would
be found to be necessarily contained in a full unfolding of the
great truth which the Creed so briefly and simply declares, then
they really are parts of our faith, because they are really involved
in the understanding of the threefold revelation to man of the
Name of God, which is the sum total of our faith. But if the
Name of our God does not contain them, they are not in our creed
or our faith. Is there, for example, a visible Church? Is there
an Apostolic Ministry? The answer depends on the inquiry as to
what is revealed, first in Scripture, and then in history, as to the
method of the working of the Spirit of Christ in the world. Did
the Old Testament prefigure, in action and in utterance, did the
Incarnation require, did the Gospels interpret or comment upon,
did the Apostles organize or govern, any definitely articulated
society, with ceremonies or officers, rules or discipline, of its own?
Was this the method of association and membership, or was some
other, the mode of the working of the Spirit of the Christ among
men? Is the work of Christ, in redeeming and reconciling to
God, is His present relation to the world, properly intelligible, or
not, — apart from the Church? Is the ministry of the Church,
or are the sacraments of the Church, to those who thoughtfully
read Scripture and history, a demonstrable part or normal con-
dition of the working of the Holy Ghost in the Church? If so,
belief in them is contained in my words, not only when I say, ' I
believe in the holy Catholic Church,' but also, though less plainly,
when I say, ' I believe in the Holy Ghost.' But if not, it is not
contained. If they are really separable from the Catholic Church,
truly understood, or from the understanding of the Holy Spirit
l
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 207
and His work, then they are no part of what any Christian need
believe. But so far as the holy Catholic Church, so far as the
orderly, covenanted work of the Holy Spirit in the world, involves
and contains the idea of the ministry or the sacraments, so far
every Christian will know, just in proportion as he knows the true
meaning of his creed, that he is bound to them. It is no part
of my business to pursue the question of the sacraments or the
.iinistry further here.
It may be observed, perhaps, that the Creed contains no propo-
sition expressly about ourselves, — about the fall, for instance, or
about sin. Yet in and from the first word of the Creed, I of course
am present there ; and as to formal propositions about myself, it
may be that they are not so much articles of belief as rather condi-
tions of mind antecedent to belief, conditions of self-consciousness
to which belief fits and responds, and without which the Creed itself
would be unintelligible. But what is thus necessarily implied and
involved in the terms of the Creed is, after all, substantially con-
tained in that Creed to which it is a condition of intelligibleness.
Of course my creed necessarily presupposes myself. I cannot be-
lieve at all except I am and have a certain history and faculties. I
cannot believe in God as Father, as Almighty, as Creator, without
implying and including within that belief the fundamental facts of
my nature and relation to Him. I cannot believe in the Incarna-
tion and the Redemption, their meaning or their consequences, I
cannot believe in the Holy Spirit, or have any intelligent apprehen-
sion of His working, except there be implied, as conditions of my
consciousness necessary to that intelligence, some apprehension of
that which is meant by the fall, some inalienable sense of evil,
of sin, of the banishment from God which is the fruit of sin, of
the inherent contradiction to my nature, the unnatural penalty and
horror, which the banishment of sin involves. So probation, judg-
ment, heaven, hell, are beliefs which grow by inevitable conse-
quence out of the apprehension, once grasped, of the nature and
distinction of good and evil ; they are necessary corollaries from
the full perception of the eternal Tightness of right, the eternal
wrongness of wrong, the eternal separation and contrast between
right and wrong ; in a word, from belief in God on the part of man.
Perhaps this illustration may serve to show how much that is not
obvious in the letter may nevertheless be really contained in man's
utterance of the Name of God.
III. But while the doctrines of the Church which her Creeds
express are thus as simple as they are profound, it is no doubt true
208 The Religion of the Incarnation.
that there has grown up round about them a considerable body of
theological teaching, more or less complicated, which is really of
the nature of comment upon them, or explication of their nature
and meaning. When we speak of the dogmas of Christianity it is
right to distinguish, with the clearest possible line of demarcation,
between all this mass of explanatory teaching (more or less author-
itative as it may from time to time appear to be) and the central
truths themselves, which are our real certainties. The doctrine
itself is one thing, the theories explicative of the doctrine are
another. They may be of the highest value in their own time and
place ; but they are not the immutable principles of Church truth.
To say this is not really to depreciate the work of theological
writers and teachers of different ages ; but it is to assign to their
work its true position. The current mode of explaining a doctrine
in one age, and bringing it home by illustrations to the imagination
of men, may be discredited and superseded in another. When
the current mode of statement or illustration begins to be more or
less discredited, the minds of quiet people are apt to be distressed.
This is because very few of us can distinguish between the truths
themselves which we hold and the (often mistaken) modes of expres-
sion by which we seem to explain our truths to ourselves. Even
when our explanation is substantially true, the doctrine is still a dif-
ferent thing from our explanation of it ; and if any imperfection is
detected in our explanation of it, it is not truth which suffers ; it
is only that truth is being distinguished from our imperfect and
unconscious glosses ; and thereby in the end the truth can only be
served. Perhaps no illustration of this can be more convincing
than that which the history of the doctrine of Atonement supplies.
That Christ died upon the cross for us, that He offered Himself as
a sacrifice, and that we are redeemed through His blood, this
is a belief fundamental to Christianity ; nor has the Church ever
wavered for an instant in her strong faith in this. But when we go
further, and come to the different illustrations that have been
given to make the precise nature of Atonement clear to human
logic, when in fact we enter upon the domain of explicative theo-
ries, we have not only left the sure ground of the Creeds, and
embarked upon views which may or may not be correct, but we
find as a fact that the modes of thought which seemed adequately
to explain the doctrine to the conscience of some ages have not
only failed to satisfy, but have actually shocked and offended,
others. The teaching that God was angry, but that Jesus, as a
result of gentler mercy, and through His innocent blood, appeased,
by satisfying, the wrath of the Father, and so reconciled God to
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 209
us ; the teaching that Satan had obtained a right over man, but
that Jesus, by giving up Himself, paid a splendid ransom into the
hands of Satan ; the teaching that a debt was due from humanity
to God, and that Jesus, clothed as man, alone could deliver man
by discharging God's debt. These — be they popular blunder-
ings or genuine efforts of Theology — may, in their times, have
both helped and wounded consciences ; but whether they be to us
as helps or hindrances, it is of the utmost importance that we
should discriminate them, or others which may have succeeded to
them as theories explanatory of the Atonement from our cardinal
belief in the Atonement itself. We may have rightly seen what is
vicious in these statements, and we may have greatly improved
upon them, but however much more helpful our modes of exposi-
tion may prove themselves to our own minds or those of our
hearers, we may only be repeating the old error, and leading the
way to fresh distresses in the future, if we confound our mode of
explanatory comment with the truth of the doctrine itself, and
claim that the mysterious fact of the Atonement means exactly
that which is our own best approach to a statement, in illustrative
words, of what it expresses to us.
But it may be asked, Are you not saying too much ? Does not
this seem to mean that the doctrines themselves are little better
than unintelligible symbols, which need not indeed be changed
for the simple reason that they can be made to mean whatever is
necessary to suit the times? No, the truth of them does not
change ; and even the changeful modes of presenting them are less
changeful, after all, than they seem. They cannot indefinitely vary ;
there is one thing which unites them all, and that is the truth itself
which lies behind them all. The Atonement is a fact, whether I
can adequately expound it or no. The Atonement is a fact, which
my attempted expositions do indeed represent, more or less cor-
rectly, more or less clumsily, even when I seem most to have failed.
Much as they may seem to differ, and inconsistent as they may appear
with each other, yet not one of them really represents untruth, but
truth. Imperfect images they may be, and in respect of their
imperfections, diverse and distorting ; yet there is not one of the
theories of Atonement referred to above — not even such as are
now seen to contain most error — which did not, as seriously held,
represent and convey some real image of the truth. It may be
that the truth which they represented was conveyed in an inexact
way • and that afterwards, when attention was concentrated on the
points of inexactness, the statement became, and would have
become, more and more misleading; it was no longer then a
210 The Religion of the Incarnation.
possible vehicle of truth ; but what it had really conveyed to those
to whom it was living, was a real soul-enlightening image of the truth
of the Atonement. It was an imperfect image ; it was even in part
a distorted image, — as everything that I see through my window
is in part distorted. But it was a real image of the real truth none
the less.
Local and popular modes of exposition then are often as the
medium through which dogmatic truth is seen and apprehended, —
not always, certainly, without distortion. But the more catholic
the truth, the more it retains its identity of form, however remote
from each other, in place or time, the diverse types of mind which
view and teach it, so much the purer must it be from accidental or
temporary conditionings ; so much the nearer, in rank, to a funda-
mental doctrine of the Catholic Church.
We do not, of course, distinguish Catholic dogma from theo-
logical literature, as though the one were bare facts, and the
other all explanations of the facts. But we may rightly confine the
use of the word ' dogma ' to the fundamental facts, together with
such explanation of them as the Church has agreed, by universal
instinct, or by dogmatic decree indorsed through ecumenical accep-
tance, to be essential to a reasonable apprehension of the facts.
It is the more important to guard with unfaltering clearness this
distinction between dogma on the one hand, and theological lit-
erature on the other, because it is, no doubt, in the sphere of
explanatory theories and expressions that most of those contro-
versies find their place which distress quiet minds, and rouse hot
battles of orthodoxy between sincere Christian combatants. If it
could be recognized at the time how far the apparent innovators of
successive generations were really questioning, not the doctrines
themselves, but certain traditional modes of thought and teaching
which have wrongly adhered to the doctrines, there would be fewer
accusations of heterodoxy, and less distress and perplexity amongst
the orthodox. But it is natural enough that this should not be
perceived by the defenders, when the innovators themselves are so
often both blind and indifferent to it. And it is just herein that the
different innovators are apt to make themselves indefensible. Too
often they think that they are making real advance upon the doc-
trines of the Church and her Creeds, and they are elated, instead of
being ashamed, at the thought. They make light of loyalty, they
despise the birthright of their Churchmanship, and find their own
self- exaltation in the very consciousness of offending their brethren.
This, whether done under provocation or no, is to depart from the
spirit of the Church of Christ, in temper and meaning at least, —
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 211
even though their work in the long run should prove (as it must so
far as there is truth in it) only to serve the interest and work of
the Church.
It is easier to see this in retrospect than in struggle. But perhaps
those who look back upon the struggles of the last generation within
the Church, will recognize that the orthodox thought of the present
f.ay has been not a little cleared and served, not merely by the
Jvork of orthodox defence, but in no small part by the work of the
' liberalizers ' also. To say this, is by no means necessarily to acquit
the liberalizers, or to cast a slur upon those who fought against
them. Such condemnations or acquittals depend upon other con-
siderations, which do not concern us here. But putting wholly
aside as irrelevant all condemnation or acquittal of individuals, we
may yet acknowledge that the work done has in the end served the
cause of the truth and the Church. This is said, of course, of its
real intellectual outcome ; certainly not of the unsettling of souls by
the way. And it is also to be noted that even when the fruit of
their work has been in a real sense, after all, accepted and incor-
porated, it is hardly ever in the sense, and never quite with the
results, which they, so far as they had allowed themselves to be
malcontents, had supposed. But if whatever is good and true in
their work becomes, after all, an element in the consciousness of
the Church, might not the work itself 'have been done, all along, in
perfect Church loyalty? In so far as different earnest writers of a
generation ago, or of to-day, are really, whether consciously or not,
making a contribution to one of the great theological tasks of our
time, in so far (that is) as they are helping towards the correction
of erroneous fancies of popular theology, — helping, for instance,
to modify that superstitious over-statement about ' justification '
which would really leave no meaning in * righteousness ; ' or to
limit the grossness of the theory often represented by the word
' imputation ; ' or to rebuke the nervous selfishness of religionists
whose one idea of the meaning of religion was ' to be saved ; ' or
to qualify the materialism or superstition of ignorant sacramentalists •
or to banish dogmatic realisms about hell, or explications of atone-
ment which malign God's Fatherhood ; or the freezing chill and
paralysis of all life supposed before now to be necessarily involved
in the Apostolic words ' predestination ' and ' election ; ' so far they
are really, though it may be from the outside and very indirectly,
doing the work of the Church. But the pity of it is that the men
who do this kind of service are so apt to spoil it, by overvaluing
themselves and forgetting the loveliness and the power of perfect
subordination to the Church. We may own that Church people
2 1 2 The Religion of the Incarnation,
and Church rulers have too often been the stumblingblock. It is
they who again and again have seemed to fight against everything,
and by intellectual apathy, and stern moral proscription of every
form of mental difficulty (wherein oftentimes are the birth-throes
of enlightenment) to drive living and growing intelligence out of the
Church, it is true that the greatest of Churchmen would, if the
badge of their work were submissiveness, have sometimes to wait
a while, and bear delay, and wrong from inferior minds, with the
patience of humility. Yes ; but that work of theirs, if it once were
stamped with this seal of patient submissiveness, would be a glory
to the Church forever, like the work of her quiet confessors, the
work of a Scupoli, a Ken, or a Fenelon ; instead of being, as it
more often seems to be, a great offending and perplexing of
thousands of the very consciences which deserve to be treated most
tenderly, and therefore also a wrong and a loss to the conscience
and character of the writer.
Are statements like these a concession to the anti-dogmatist ?
If so, they are one to which, in the name of truth, he is heartily
welcome. And perhaps under the same high sanction we may
add what will look, to some minds, like another. We claimed,
some time since, that the Creed must be, to Christians, rather a
complete and conclusive than a partial or a tentative statement of
truth. Yet there is one sense" in which we may own that even the
definitions of the Creeds may themselves be called relative and
temporary. For we must not claim for phrases of earthly coinage
a more than earthly and relative completeness. The Creeds are
temporary in that they are a complete and sufficient statement of
truth only for time. And therefore they are only quite perfectly
adequate to express those truths which have their place in time.
But we, in respect of truths which transcend time, if we cannot as
yet be freed from the trammels and limits of earthly thought and
expression, yet can recognize at least the fact that we are, even in
our Creeds, still laboring within those trammels. We may have
ground for believing the Creeds of the Church to be the most per-
fectly balanced and harmonious expression of the truth whereof
our earthly knowledge is, or will be, capable. Yet when we strug-
gle, as in the language of the Athanasian Creed, to express the re-
lations which have been exhibited to us in the eternal Godhead
through the use of the words ' Person ' and ' Substance,' or
vTroo-rao-is and ova-ca ; or when we thus profess our belief in the
Person of the Holy Ghost, ' The Holy Ghost is of the Father and
of the Son : neither made, nor created, nor begotten, but proceed-
ing,' need we fear to own that the instruments which, perforce, we
vi. The Incantation as the Basis of Do^ma, 213
make use of upon earth, even in the Creeds of the Church, are
necessarily imperfect instruments ; the power of conception imper-
fect ; the power of phrase and imagery imperfect also ; and that
their sufficiency of truth (though not their correctness meanwhile)
is so far temporary that it is limited to earth and to time ; and that,
in the perfect light and knowledge of the presence of God, the per-
fectest knowledge represented by them will be superseded and ab-
sorbed, while the glosses and materialisms with which, in various
ways, we may have been unconsciously clothing them to our own
imaginations, will be — not superseded only, but corrected, and it
may be, reproved ? Moreover, if the truths represented in the Creeds
are wider and deeper than our conceptions of them, we can admit
that there may possibly be particulars in which, even now, the ex-
perience of spiritual life may deepen and enlarge the meaning to
us of our Creeds ; as, for instance, the words heaven and hell may
present to us ideas differing, in the direction of more correctness,
from those which they presented to some of our forefathers. It is
not that the Creeds will be some day corrected. It is not that we
shall see hereafter how false they were, but how far the best con-
ceptions which they opened to us, — the best, that is, that our
earthly faculties were capable of, — lagged in their clumsiness be-
hind the perfect apprehension of the truths which they had, never-
theless, not untruly represented ; but which we then shall have
power to see and know as they are. The truth which is dimly im-
aged for us in the Creeds will never belie, but will infinitely trans-
cend, what their words represented on earth.
But it will very naturally be asked by what right we speak thus of
the Creeds. In the very moment of admitting, in one sense, their
incompleteness and want of finality, by what right do we lay down
still that they are final and complete to the end of time ; that is,
perhaps, through ages of human advance, of which we may have
now no conception at all ? Such a question does not apply to the
strictly historical statements which constitute the foundation of our
creed, but to those interpretations of historical fact, and to those
assertions about the Divine Being and its relations, which neces-
sarily transcend time and experience. And after all, perhaps, the
answer is not difficult. We have to consider, first, that for the very
reason that these beliefs do absolutely transcend time and expe-
rience, therefore no human development w r hich belongs merely to
time and experience can in itself displace or improve upon them ;
and secondly, that our knowledge of these truths is really derived
from a Divine revelation which took place, as we believe, within
time and experience. We may say, indeed, that the statements of
2 14 The Religion of the Incarnation.
this Divine revelation are corroborated to us by such elements of
thought as our reason (which we believe to be also in its reality
Divine) is able to supply. It remains, however, that they can only
really be proved or disproved by arguments which go to prove or
disprove the truth of the historical Incarnation, and of the revela-
tions which it contains.
It follows from hence that we have a valid right to hold them
not only true, but final in their statement of truth for this present
world, exactly so far as we have a right to believe that our histori-
cal revelation is, for time, a final one. Should there, indeed, be
a wholly fresh revelation, the amount of truth hitherto revealed
might be superseded ; but nothing short of a revelation can super-
sede it. The idea that any advance of human reason could be in-
consistent with it, involves for the Christian who believes human
reason to be divinely reflected and divinely implanted, nothing less
than an unthinkable contradiction. We may therefore believe it
in any case to be final till the coming of a further revelation ; and
so far as there is anything in the truth already revealed to us,
which may warrant us in feeling confident that there is no fresh
revelation in store, within the limits of time, by which the revelation
of Jesus Christ will be superseded, just so far and no further are
we justified in claiming for those clauses in the Creed, whose sub-
ject-matter transcends time and experience, that they are the com-
pletest expressions of their truths which can be reached in time.
IV. It may perhaps be a matter of prudence to refer for a
moment to what are called the ' damnatory clauses ' of the Atha-
nasian Creed ; though it would not be necessary to do so for the
purpose of any positive statement or explanation of Christian doc-
trine. These clauses, however, to the positive statement add a
negative. It is easy to misunderstand them, and even, by misrep-
resenting, to make them appear grotesque. But if the question be
as to what they really mean, they are, after all, to the Christian, an
obvious and necessary corollary of the Creed which is his life.
There is but One God, and One Heaven, and One Salvation ; not a
choice of alternative salvations, or heavens, or gods. There is One
Incarnation, One Cross, One Divine restoring and exalting of hu-
manity. There is One Spirit of God, One Church, — the fabric and
the method of the working of the Spirit, — One Spiritual Covenant
with man. Man must have part in this One, or he has part in none,
for there is no other. Man must have knowledge of this One, belief
in this One ; or there is none for him to believe in or to know. God's
covenant is with His Church on earth ; and the statements of the
Creed are the representation in words of that knowledge of the
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 215
truth which the Church possesses, the possession of which is her
life. The Athanasian Creed is not addressed to outsiders, bat
to those who are within the Church. For encouragement, or (if
necessary) for warning, it insists to them on the uniqueness of
their faith. To have hold on God is to have hold on Life. To
revolt from God is to revolt from Life. This is so, to those who
have or ought to have learned that it is so, both in fact and in
thought. Thus, in fact, to drop out of communion with the Incar-
nation of Christ is to drop out of communion with the inner reali-
ties and possibilities of humanity. But the mind, and its convictions
and meanings, cannot wholly be separated from the facts of the life.
There comes, at least in most lives, a time when the man's own
allegiance to the facts is a necessary condition of his identification
with them. ' If ye believe not that I am He, ye shall die in your
sins.' There comes a point at which the mind's refusal of the doc-
trines of religion is the man's revolt from the facts ; and such a
revolt is repudiation of the. One revelation of God, the One Incar-
nation, the One Salvation, the One Church or Covenant. This
must be broadly true, true in the abstract as principle, unless truth
and falsehood, right and wrong, are fundamentally false distinctions,
and every man is to be equally good, and equally compelled to
heaven. At what point any individual person, or class of persons,
does, or does not, in the sight of the Judge who knows the whole
inward history and tries the most secret motive, fall within the
scope of this principle and incur the final condemnation of rebellion
against the one light and hope of all humanity, is another question
altogether. Any such application of the principle to the case of in-
dividuals belongs only to God the Judge, and would be an arrogant
impiety in any man. Even when such a question may have to
be determined ecclesiastically, the ecclesiastical condemnation and
sentence, though expressly representing in shadow the eternal sen-
tence, is none the less quite distinct, and indeed in its ultimate
motive even contrasted with it. But however unchristian it may
be to say that A. or B. will perish everlastingly, the principle
nevertheless is true, that the truth which the Creed embodies, the
truth of which Christ's Incarnation is the pivot and centre, is the
only deliverance from everlasting perishing ; and that whole-hearted
union and communion with this truth is that true state of Church
life which alone has the certain seal of the covenant of God. This
broad truth it is, the necessary complement of any holding of the
Christian creed as true, which these clauses affirm. If it be said,
' Your Athanasian Creed is simple and trenchant ; it has no quali-
fications such as you admit ; ' our reply would be threefold. First,
2 1 6 The Religio7i of the Incarnation.
the Creed is part of our heritage from the past, and its phraseology
is not our handiwork ; but we know that the necessary qualifica-
tions with which we understand its phraseology have been generally
recognized by the Church from which we inherit it. Secondly, the
Quicunque vult is, strictly, not so much a creed as a canticle ; it
has never been used as a test of Church communion ; and it speaks,
on a point like this, as the Te Deum would speak, in the language,
not of judicial award, but of devotional loyalty. Thirdly, the quali-
fications with which we say that any generalization about man's
responsibility for belief, whether in this ' canticle ' or in scripture,
must necessarily be understood, are only such as all men apply to
any similar generalization about responsibility for conduct. ' If ye
believe not that I am He, ye shall die in your sins,' is paralleled by
' They which do such things shall not inherit the kingdom of God.'
We claim only to interpret the one as rationally as all men under-
stand the other.
It has seemed to be desirable, while insisting upon the claims of
dogma, not indeed in the name of allegiance to imposed authority,
but in the name of truth, and on the ground of its simple identity
with truth, to try to state, with the utmost possible plainness, what-
ever could be truly admitted in the way of apparent qualification
of those claims. Truth is supreme and eternal, and dogma, so far
as it coincides with truth, is, of course, all that truth is. For the
dogmatic position of the Church and her Creeds, we claim that it
is the true and simple expression upon earth of the highest truth
that is, or can be, known. But dogmatic theologians are . not in-
fallible, and so far as the name of dogma has been claimed for mis-
taken presumption or misleading statement of truth, so far may
dogma have seemed to fight against truth. The words, indeed,
'dogmatic' and ' dogmatism' have acquired a bad reputation.
But this is not the fault of dogma. A dogmatist, in the invidious
sense of the word, does not mean one who studies dogma, but
rather one who foolishly utters what are not dogmas as if they were.
The dogmatic temper is the temper of one who is imperiously con-
fident that he is right when he is not. That is to say, the words
dogma, dogmatic, dogmatize, etc., are commonly used of some-
thing which is the mere abuse and travesty of their proper mean-
ing. It is hard that dogma itself should be prejudiced by this
caricaturing misuse of its name.
Meanwhile, if real charges be brought against any part of our
dogmatic creed, we are willing most honestly to examine into
them. In so far as they are made against current suppositions,
which are separable from our essential belief, — separable as, for
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 217
example, we now see various details of traditional belief about the
first chapter of Genesis to be separable, — we join our critics in
the examination with a mind as open as they could desire. And
it must, in simple candor, be admitted further, that upon the
appearance of any new form of thought, Churchmen have not
generally been quick of mind to discriminate the essential from
the non-essential, so as to receive at first, with any openness of
mind, what they had afterwards to admit that they might have
received from the first. But not even this admission must prevent
us from claiming, that when that to which exception is taken does
really belong to the essential truths of our Creed, which to us are
more absolutely established certainties than anything in heaven
and earth besides, they must pardon us if, while we are still willing
to give the most candid hearing possible to everything that they
have to urge, we yet cannot, if we would, divest ourselves of the
deepest certainties of our existence ; — cannot therefore pretend
to argue with more openness of mind than would scientific pro-
fessors — say with a champion who undertook to prove that the
globe was flat, or that the sun went round the earth. We are
ready to listen to everything. We are fully prepared to find that
the champion may produce in evidence some phenomena which
we shall be unable to account for. We have found it before ; we
are not unaccustomed to finding it (though, in good time, the per-
plexity always unravels itself) ; and we shall be in no way discon-
certed if we find it again. But we cannot pretend meanwhile to
hold all the truth which our consciences have known in suspense.
V. What was said just now about the Creeds will not, it is
hoped, appear to any minds to fail in the entire respect which is
due to them. Yet it makes it, perhaps, the more incumbent upon
us to take notice of another form of attack upon dogma, which
connects itself with an attitude about the Creeds, such as may
seem at first sight to be not wholly dissimilar ; though presently all
the foundations of dogma are dissolved by it. But in point of
fact, if we admit that what the Creeds mean on earth, is less than
^what the same truths will mean in heaven, or that there may be,
•ven here, a clumsier, and a completer, understanding of them ;
this is a position essentially different from maintaining that what
the Creeds both say and mean, is not only less than, but (if strictly
taken) inconsistent with, the real truth ; and that not in any trans-
cendent sense, as celestial beings, with wholly other faculties,
may conceivably have power of apprehending it in heaven, but as
the more intelligent among us may, and do, see it now. This is
not only to admit that the Creeds are built up, perforce, of mate-
2i8 The Religion of the Incarnation.
rials which belong to this earth ; but to treat them as mere service-
able fictions for the teaching of the uncivilized or the young. The
deliberate unbeliever, indeed, assumes that the Creeds mean what
they say, and that the Church understands the Creeds. Assuming
this, he parts company with the Church, because he holds that the
statements of her Creeds are, in fact, fictitious. But it may surprise
us to find that there is another form of this view of the fictitious-
ness of Creeds, and that here the critic speaks, not at all in the
character of an unbeliever, but rather in that of an enlightened *.
Churchman. All Christian truth, he says, is true. Even the
Creeds in a real sense represent the truth. But the Church's
understanding and expression of Christian truth in the Creeds is
none the less, strictly, a misrepresentation of the truth. Though
the truth of Christ lies behind the Church's Creeds, yet they have
so overlaid, and thereby, in strict speech, misstated it, that it is
only the patience of criticism, which cutting bravely adrift from
the authority of traditional interpretation, has succeeded in dis-
criminating between the Creeds and the meaning of the Creeds, and
behind what are practically the fictions of dogmatic Christianity,
has re-discovered the germs of Christian truth. Neither the facts
of the life of Jesus Christ, nor His teaching, nor His consciousness
in regard of Himself, were as we have been taught, but were some-
thing different. He never thought nor taught of Himself as per-
sonally God, nor did He perform any miracles, nor did He rise
on the third day from the dead. Whatever scriptures state these
things explicitly, are proved by that very fact to be glosses or
errors. And yet, all the while, everything is true spiritually. The
record of the Incarnate Life is true literally, it may be, at com-
paratively few points ; certainly not the story of the Birth ; certainly
not the story of the Resurrection ; certainly not any incident which
involves, or any expression which implies, miracle. But the Birth,
the Resurrection, the miracles, every one of them, represent, in
the most splendid of imaginative language and portraiture, essential
spiritual truths. They are fictions, but vivid representations, in
fiction, of fact ; splendid truths, therefore, so long as they are
understood to be literally fictitious, but perversions of truth, if t
taken for truth of fact. I*
It is this conception which was set forth not long ago with a
singular power and persuasiveness by the author of ' The Kernel
and the Husk.' The lofty level of thought, the restraint and
felicity of language, above all the deeply religious spirit of the
author, invest his arguments with a charm of unusual attractiveness.
The arguments are not such as it is wholly pleasant to see thus
VI. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 219
recommended. He deals in detail, in the course of the volume,
with much of the narrative of Scripture, with the purpose of show-
ing how one by one the various records, including of course the
Birth and Resurrection, have grown to their present form out of
realities which contained no miracle, and which therefore differed
essentially from the historical scriptures and faith of the Church.
It is no part of our task to enter upon such details. Nor is it
necessary. The struggle against such a theory of Christianity will
not be fought out on details. It may be conceded that many of
the miracles, taken singly, can easily be made to fall in with con-
jectural theories as to a mythical origin, if only the antecedent
conviction against their reality as miracles be cogent enough really
to require that the necessary force should be put upon the evi-
dence. Some indeed may lend themselves to the process with a
facility which fairly surprises us. Others seem still to be very
obstinate, and force the rationalizer into strange hypotheses. But
after all, the real question through one and all, is not how easily
this or that miracle can be made, by squeezing of evidence, to
square with a rationalizing hypothesis, but what is the strength of
the argument for the rationalizing hypothesis itself, which is the
warrant for squeezing the evidence at all.
The Evangelists say that Jesus taught in the synagogue at Caper-
naum. Our author takes for granted that He did so. The Evan-
gelists say that Jesus miraculously multiplied loaves and fishes in
the wilderness. Our author takes for granted that He did not so.
Now why this contrast ? Incidentally, indeed, it may be remarked
that on the author's own general method, this multiplication of
loaves ought to be one of the most certain facts in the life of
Christ, as it is emphasized in every Gospel. But this is by the
way. The real ground of the contrast in the treatment of the
same evidence is a certain prior conviction with which the evidence
is approached. Now we are not contending that any such sifting
of evidence in the light of prior tests is inadmissible. On the
contrary, there is hardly any one who does not, on a similar prin-
ciple, explain the differences (for example) in the accounts of the
title upon the Cross, or the difficulty as to whether Jesus healed
one blind man or two, on the way into, or out from Jericho ; but
we do say that the admissibleness of such a method of interpreting
absolutely depends upon the certainty of the correctness of the
prior conviction itself.
The various details of ingenuity, then, with which he explains
away particular incidents, are to us of quite subordinate interest.
Everything depends upon the cogency of the grounds for explain-
220 The Religion of the Incarnation.
ing away at all. A large part of the book is occupied in explaining
away the facts of Christianity, as the Christian Church has hitherto
understood them, — an explaining away which may be more or less
necessary, more or less satisfactory, if the premises which require
it are once admitted, but which certainly is wholly unnecessary,
and wholly unsatisfactory, if those premises are denied.
The prior conviction in the book in question is that miracles
neither do, nor did, happen, in fact, and therefore that any narra-
tive which involves them is incredible. All the ingenuities of con-
jecture on individual points become relevant subsequently to, and
in reliance upon, this underlying principle. Admit this, and they
are forthwith interesting and valuable. Deny this, and they lose
their importance at once. It is the pressure of this prior convic-
tion which seems to give life and force to a number of suggestions,
about other stories, and particularly about that of the Resurrection,
which, apart from this animating conviction, would be felt to be
very lifeless ; and to a total experiment of subjective reconstruc-
tion, which, but for the strength of the antecedent conviction,
would have been impossible to men of reverent thought and mod-
est utterance. The teaching of the book will therefore really be
accepted or the reverse, precisely according as the minds of its
readers do, or do not, incline to admit the hypothesis upon which
it depends.
It is probable, indeed, that the author would demur to this state-
ment, at least, when put so simply ; on the ground that, though he
avows the conviction, yet he has reached the conviction itself by
no a priori road, but as the result of wide observation and unpreju-
diced scrutiny of evidence. Now it is not at all meant to be
asserted that the conviction against miracle is itself reached merely
by an a priori method. No doubt it has, in fact, been arrived at,
in those minds which have fully arrived at it, not a priori, but as
the result of a great induction from experience ; practically, indeed,
as it seems to them, from experience as good as universal. The
weight of the evidence in this direction is neither denied nor for-
gotten. Yet even when it most impresses us, of course it is obvious
still to reply to ourselves that however powerful this array of expe-
rience may appear so long as there are no instances to the contrary,
yet any one contrary instance will break at once the cogency of
the induction. The case of Jesus Christ is put forward as being
unique. Its uniqueness is not really qualified by the fact that some
others, among those nearest to Himself, were by Him enabled — ■
avowedly in His power, not their own — to do acts which were
impossible to other men. This is only a wider extension of His
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 221
unique power, not a qualification of it. Against such a case, put
forward on evidence definite and multiform, and put forward as
essentially unique, an argument from induction is no argument at
all. It is a misnomer to call the induction an argument. The
induction, in fact, is merely an observation that other persons did
not perform similar miracles ; and that, if Jesus Christ did so, He
was unique. But this is no answer to the Christian position. It is
part of the position itself.
And so the matter must be referred for settlement to the evidence
that is actually forthcoming about Jesus Christ. But it is plain that
the inductive presumption against miracle, derived from experience
of other men, must not come in to warp or rule this evidence. It
may be present indeed as a sort of cross-examining counsel, as a
consideration requiring that the evidence should be most minutely
scrutinized, and suggesting all sorts of questions with a view to this.
But into the evidence itself, it cannot be permitted to intrude.
Now, it is part of our complaint against such writers as the
author of ' The Kernel and the Husk ' that however much their gen-
eral presumption against miracle may have been inductively and
patiently reached; yet when they come to deal with the evidence
about Jesus Christ, this conviction (which ought to stand on one
side inquiringly) becomes to them an underlying postulate ; it is
settled beforehand ; it is present with them in their exegesis, not
simply as a motive for sifting the evidence carefully, but as a touch-
stone of truth by which it may all be tried. Probably the author
would believe that he has reached his conviction against the mira-
cles of Jesus of Nazareth, not merely from a general induction as
to the absence of miracle in the lives of others, but also from an
unprejudiced scrutiny of the evidence of the life of Jesus Christ
Himself. But this is just what we are not at all prepared to con-
cede. On the contrary, we maintain that his scrutiny is wholly
prejudiced. Examine the evidence with a bias sufficiently power-
ful against belief in miracle, and you may end in the result which
this author reaches. Examine it without such a bias, and you
will find yourself at every turn protesting against his mode of treat-
ing the evidence. It is a scrutiny of the evidence on the basis of
the inadmissibleness of miracles, which gives him that coherent the-
ory about the growth of the Christian tradition, and those conse-
quent principles of interpretation of the text of the Gospels, which
he appears to regard as the simple result of the evidence itself.
We shall very likely be surprised to find that, after all, the
abstract impossibility of miracle is not laid down — nay, is ex-
pressly disclaimed — by him. Miracle (if we rightly understand)
222 The Religion of the Incarnation.
is not impossible absolutely, — not even, he adds, d priori improb-
able ; yet it is equivalent to an impossibility, because the will of the
Father indwelt wholly in Jesus, and because the perfect uniformity
of natural processes as we have experienced them, is, in fact, and
with no exceptions, the will of the Father. 1 No general reflections
upon our dependence, in ordinary life, on the good faith of a
uniform nature, ought to blind us to the fact that this last position
neither has, nor can have, any adequate ground at all. It is sur-
prising that with so weak a statement of the impossibility of miracle,
the principle of the impossibility of miracle should have to bear the
extraordinary weight that is put upon it. Nothing short of a
demonstration of this impossibility would fully justify the critical
position that is adopted. For it is, in fact, upon this impossibility
that the whole re-reading of the history is based.
It is probably true that if once the hypothesis of the impossibility
of miracle be accepted as practically certain, an earnest mind, pen-
etrated with this as its overruling principle, and dwelling upon the
Gospels always and only in the light of this, will be compelled
gradually to re-read in one place and re-interpret in another, until
the whole has been, by steps that upon the hypothesis were irresis-
tible, metamorphosed into a form as unlike as possible, indeed, to
what it wore at first, but still one which can be felt to be precious
and beautiful. But we are entitled to point out how absolutely this
re-reading of the evidence depends upon the truth of the principle
which underlies it. For the sake of this, all sorts of violence has to
be done to what would otherwise be, in one incident after another,
the obvious meaning of words, the obvious outcome of evidence.
Without the certainty of this, the new method of reading must be
critically condemned as baseless and arbitrary. This alone makes
it rationally possible. Without the strong cogency of this it falls
instantly to pieces.
Now, orthodox Christians are sometimes accused of reading their
historical evidence in the light of a preconception. They begin with
the doctrine of the Creed, and read all records of fact with the con-
viction of that doctrine in their hearts and consciences. We need
not be altogether concerned to combat this statement. Perhaps
few records are read, or would ever be read intelligently, except in
the light of the reader's preconceptions. But our point is to see
clearly that at all events the new reading of the Gospel history is
itself so entirely the outcome and creature of its antecedent princi-
ple that it cannot without that hold together for an instant.
1 See especially the concluding paragraphs of letter xix.
vi. The Incarnation as the Basis of Dogma. 223
Let us be content, for the moment, to view the orthodox Chris-
tian and the new rationalist as both alike really reading the Gospel
narrative in the light of a preconceived principle ; the one view-
ing everything on the basis of the perfect Divinity of the historical
Jesus Christ (with the corollary that it is impossible for us to deter-
mine a priori what power His perfect Humanity — for which we
have no precedent — would, or would not, naturally and necessa-
rily exhibit) ; the other viewing everything on the basis of the abso-
lute impossibility, or at least the incredibleness, of miracle. We
might point out that the former in his hypothesis has a principle
which absolutely fits and perfectly accounts for every part of the
evidence which confronts him ; while the the latter is compelled,
by the cogency of his principle, to reconstruct for himself almost
every chapter, of the evidence. And if we go one step farther back
and ask what is the antecedent reasonableness of the one hypothe-
sis, or of the other? from what source is each derived? we must
claim it as simple fact, that the former hypothesis is itself the direct
outcome of the evidence, — the inevitable outcome, indeed, so long
as the evidence stands ; while the other is, at bottom, an assump-
tion, held absolutely in the teeth of the evidence actually existing
in respect of the life and consciousness of Jesus of Nazareth, and
itself on other grounds not merely unproved, but essentially inca-
pable of proof. 1
But if our hypothesis is itself the outcome of the evidence, and
fits with perfect exactness into all its intricacies, then we yield far
too much if we treat it as on the level of a mere preconception.
To persist in reading the New Testament by the light of the pre-
conception of the dogma of Christ's Godhead (with the corollary
that no miracle is incredible as miracle), is to be prejudiced only
in the same sense in which the scientist is prejudiced who persists
in studying the records of astronomy in the light of certain precon-
ceptions as to the parabola or the law of gravitation.
But what is the case with the other hypothesis? By it the
historical Jesus Christ is swept away; and another personality,
which does not exist in the history at all, but which the history has
suggested to certain earnest-minded critics of our own day, is
substituted in His place. All those who witnessed of His words
and deeds to the Church, all those whose witness the Church has
accepted and sealed, are thoroughly mistaken, mistaken in the
^ * l The question of miracles seems now to be admitted on all hands to he
simply a question of evidence.' These are the words as much of Professor
Huxlev as of the Duke of Argyll. Nineteenth Century, April, 1887, p. 483;
cp. February, 1887, pp. 201, etc.
224 The Religion of tJie Incarnation.
very points which to them were fundamental. However honest
they may have been in their superstitious ignorance, they certainly
bore to the world what was, in fact, false testimony. It is impres-
sive, with a strange impressiveness, to follow this hypothesis
through the story of Christ's life ; and see with what ingenuity,
often plausible, often pathetic, the old facts are refashioned to
meet the new principle.
Cardinal, of course, in difficulty as in importance, is the narra-
tive of the Resurrection ; that plain statement of fact, to testify
whereto was the primary qualification, and primary function, of
Apostleship ; and which, from St. Peter and St. Paul downwards,
has always been recognized as cardinal to the faith of the Church.
Now given, first, the certain conviction that no miracle oc-
curred ; and secondly, a working hypothesis as to the growth of
the Christian Scriptures, which not only enables, but requires, you
to set aside, on grounds of subjective criticism, all such evidence
as seems to you to be improbable ; and it follows that, if you are
still of a very religious mind, you will probably have to take refuge
in what may yet be to you the beautiful story of a Resurrection
exclusively spiritual.
You must, of course, deal very violently with the direct evi-
dence. But that is already covered by the general theory you
have reached as to the historical genesis and value (or lack of
value) of the books of the New Testament. And, of course, in
adopting such a view of the books of the New Testament, you are
reducing to a phantasm the reality of your belief in the Holy
Catholic Church, which has enshrined and consecrated, as per-
fectest truth, what are really at best only fables, — capable, indeed,
of clumsily representing the truth to the childish or the stupid,
but beginning to be absolutely pernicious to minds which have
reached a certain point of intelligent education.
Tolerating these things, however, you may admit the truth of
.he Resurrection (as you may admit every proposition of the
Creed) in words ; only in a sense so refined, so exclusively spirit-
ual, that no bodily reality of resurrection is left. There, is no
resurrection in your creed correlative to the dying. There is no
resurrection more, or more demonstrable, than what we believe to
be true of men in general. There is no resurrection which enters
within the ordinary sphere of human history, or admits any direct
contact with the normal methods of human evidence or human
proof. The question raised is not whether current imaginations of
the Resurrection may possibly be more or less exaggerated in the
way of materialism, but whether there was any corporeal reality
VI. The Iucarnat'.cn as the Basis of Dogma. 225
of resurrection at all. And the question is settled in the negative.
The foundation fact of the Creed is etherealized away ; and all the
rest, with it, becomes together impalpable and subjective.
We do not say that there is not a large element which is true,
in the thought of such a writer as we have been considering.
Where the mind is so devoutly in earnest, it is no hard task to
believe that it too must be animated originally by truth. We need
not say, therefore, that the work of this earnestness may not serve
us all, and contribute to the thought of us all. It may well be
true that in our bald understanding of the doctrine of the Resur-
rection, — or indeed of the whole Incarnation, from beginning to
end, — we have, many of us, too little imagined the scope and
depth of its spiritual import. If our orthodoxy has been so well con-
tent with insisting mechanically upon the literal fact, as not only to
forget, but to disdain or disown in any measure, the vast spiritual
realities which it ought to express to us ; then our stupidity, or
narrowness, in orthodoxy, is in part to blame, for the distaste
which they have created towards orthodoxy in some natures more
sensitive than our own. In so far as they can, in this respect,
return good for evil, we will not be slow to acknowledge our debt
to them. We will be grateful for any new suggestion they can
discover, as to the moral beauty or import of the Resurrection, or
of the Incarnation, or of any or every other miracle, considered
upon its moral side as allegory. Some ways at least there may be,
in which their insistence may tend to deepen for us our under-
standing of truths, whose more spiritual aspects we had dwelt
upon perhaps, in some cases, — perhaps had even imagined, —
far too little. But doubtless that true element of their work, which
the mind of the Catholic Church will assimilate, will be greatly
modified from the form in which it now presents itself — to them
as to others. It will, to say the least, be positive rather than
negative ; stimulating spiritual sensibilities, but not by explaining
away the facts of the body ; widening (it may be) our insight into
the divineness of history, and the depth of the meaning of certain
events which happened in it, — but not shattering both it and
them, by dissolving their historical truth.
Meanwhile of the one-sided aspect we can but say that no
doubt transcendental spiritualism has a great attractiveness. The
Magian aspiration always was fascinating. Individuals, indeed, of
enthusiastic sympathies, trained themselves in dogmatic truth, and
indulging their freest speculations always on a background of
inveterate dogmatic instinct, may fancy the ' spiritualized Chris-
tianity ' to be in itself a stable and a living completeness ; but as
15
226 The Religion of the Incarnation.
a system, it will neither produce life nor perpetuate it. It is an
attempt to improve upon the Church of Christ, upon the condi-
tions of human nature, upon the facts of history. The Church
of Christ is not so. The Church of Christ does not ignore the
fundamental conditions of human experience. The Church of
Christ is balanced, harmonious, all-embracing, all-adjusting. The
Incarnation was the sanctifying of both parts of human nature,
not the abolition of either. The Church, the Sacraments, human
nature, Jesus Christ Himself, all are twofold ; all are earthly objec-
tive, as well as transcendental spiritual. And so long as this world
is real as well as the next ; so long as man is body as well as soul ;
so long all attempts to evaporate the body and its realities are
foredoomed to a necessary and a salutary failure. The religion,
which attempts to be rid of the bodily side of things spiritual,
sooner or later loses hold of all reality. Pure spiritualism, however
noble the aspiration, however living the energy with which it starts,
always has ended at last, and will always end, in evanescence.
VII.
THE ATONEMENT.
/
ARTHUR LYTTELTON.
VII.
THE ATONEMENT.
I. Theological doctrine, describing, as it professes to do, the
dealings of an all-wise Person with the human race, must be a
consistent whole, each part of which reflects the oneness of the
will on which it is based. What we call particular doctrines are in
reality only various applications to various human conditions of
one great uniform method of Divine government, which is the
expression in human affairs of one Divine will. The theological
statement of any part of this method ought to bear on its face the
marks of the whole from which it is temporarily separated ; for
though it may be necessary to make now this, now that doctrine
prominent, to isolate it and lay stress on it, this should be done
in such a way that in each special truth the whole should, in a
manner, be contained. We must be able to trace out in each the
lines of the Divine action which is only fully displayed in the
whole. Neglect of this not only makes our faith as a whole weak
and incoherent, but deprives the doctrines themselves of the illu-
mination and strength which are afforded by the discovery in them
of mutual likeness and harmony. They become first -unintelligible
and then inconceivable, and the revelation of the character of God,
which should be perceived in every part of His dealings with men,
becomes confused and dim to us. This has been especially the
case with the Atonement. In the course of religious controversy
this doctrine has become separated from the rest, at one time
neglected, at another over-emphasized, till in its isolation it has
been so stated as to be almost incredible. Men could not indeed
be brought to disbelieve in forgiveness, however attained, and the
conviction of remission of sins through and in the Blood of Christ
has survived all the theories which have been framed to account
for it ; but nevertheless, the unreality of these theories has been a
disaster to the Christian faith. Some of them have strained our
belief in the moral attributes of God, others have given men easy
thoughts of sin and its consequences. This has been so because
230 The Religion of the Incarnation.
they have treated the Atonement apart from the whole body of
facts which make up the Christian conception of God and His
dealings with men. In this essay the attempt will be made to pre-
sent the doctrine in its relation to the other great Christian truths ;
to the doctrines, that is, of God, of the Incarnation, of sin.
(1) On the human side the fact with which we have to deal is
the fact of sin. Of this conception the Bible, the most complete
record of the religious history of man, is full from the first page to
the last. Throughout the whole course of Jewish development,
the idea that man has offended the justice of God was one of the
abiding elements in the religious consciousness of the race. But
it was by no means confined to the Jews. They have been truly
called the conservators of the idea of sin ; but it has never been
permanently absent, in some form or other, from the human mind,
although we learn most about it, and can see it in its clearest, most
intense form, in the Hebrew religion. Now this conception of sin
in its effect on the human soul is of a twofold character. Sin is
felt to be alienation from God, Who is the source of life, and
strength, and peace, and in consequence of that alienation the
whole nature is weakened and corrupted. In this aspect sin is
a state in which the will is separated from the Divine will, the life
is cut off from the life of God which He designed us to share.
When men come to realize what is meant by union with God, and
to feel the awful consequences of separation, there arises at once
the longing for a return, a reconciliation ; but this longing has by
itself no power to effect so great a change. To pass from aliena-
tion to union is to pass from darkness to light, from evil to good,
and can only be accomplished by that very power, the power of a
life united to God, which has been forfeited by sin. Only in
union with God can man accomplish anything that is good ; and,
therefore, so long as he is alienated from God, he can only long
for, he cannot obtain, his reunion with the Divine life. Sin there-
fore, thus considered, is not only wickedness ; it is also misery and
hopelessness. Sinners are ' without God in the world/ and for
that reason they ' have no hope.'
This is the aspect of sin as a state of the sinful soul, and as
affecting the present relation between man and God. It has
destroyed the union, has broken down even the sacrificial bridge,
for it has made all acceptable offerings impossible. Man's will is
weakened, therefore he has not strength to offer himself completely
and unreservedly to God ; his nature is corrupted and stained,
therefore his offering, could he make it, could not be accepted.
Sin is a hopeless state of weakness and uncleanness. But there is
vii. The Atonement. 231
another, in one sense an earlier, more fundamental aspect of sin.
The sins of the past have produced not merely weakness and cor-
ruption, but also guilt. The sinner feels himself guilty before God.
If we examine the idea of guilt, as realized by the conscience, it
will be seen to contain the belief in an external power, or law, or
person against whom the offence has been committed, and also an
internal feeling, the acknowledgment of ill-desert, a sense of being
under sentence, and that justly. Whether the punishment which
is felt to be the due reward of the offence has been borne or not,
the conception of punishment, when the offence has been com-
mitted, cannot be avoided, and it brings with it a conviction of its
justice. These two elements, the external and the internal element,
seem to be necessary to the full conception of guilt. The com-
mon fallacy that a self-indulgent sinner is no one's enemy but his
own would, were it true, involve the further inference that such a
sinner would not feel himself guilty. But it is precisely because
the consciousness of sin does not and cannot stop here that, over
and above any injury to self, any weakness or even corruption pro-
duced by sin, we speak of its guilt. ' Against Thee, Thee only,
have I sinned, and done that which is evil in Thy sight.' This
belief in an external power, whose condemnation has been incurred
by sin, may take various forms ; for the power may be represented
as impersonal or as personal, as law or as God. For our present
purposes, however, the distinction is immaterial ; the essential
point is that it is something external to ourselves, not merely the
echo of the sinner's own self-inflicted pain and injury. We cannot,
however, limit it to this. For it is not merely an external power,
it is also a just power that is presented to the sense of guilt.
Before bare power, unrighteous or non-moral, an offender may be
compelled to submit, but he will not feel guilt. The state of mind
expressed by Mill's well-known defiance is his who has offended a
superior power which he cannot believe to be just, and it is very
far removed from the feeling of guiltiness. 1 The sense of guilt
implies the righteousness as well as the power of that against which
we have offended ; it is a moral conviction. Guiltiness, then,
regarded in one aspect is the sense of sin, in another it is the
recognition of the law of righteousness, or, if we may now assume
the religious point of view, it is the conviction of the wrath of
God against sin.
1 Mill, Examination of Sir W. Hamilton's Philosophy, p. 103: 'I will
call no being good who is not what I mean when I apply that epithet to my
fellow-creatures; and if such a being can sentence me to hell for not so
calling him, to hell I will go.'
232 The Religion of the Incarnation.
It is plain, if we will only scrutinize closely and candidly the
conception of sin and guilt, that no merely ' subjective ' explana-
tion will account for the facts revealed by our consciousness.
Even if we had no scriptural evidence to guide us, the evidence,
that is, to take it at the lowest, of a series of specially qualified
witnesses to religious phenomena, our own hearts would tell us of
the wrath of God against sin. It is irresistibly felt that there is a
Power hostile to sin, and that this Power has decreed a righteous
punishment for the offences which are the external signs and
results of the sinful state. Whatever the punishment may be, a
question we need not now discuss, the sinner's conscience warns
him of it. He may apparently, or for a time, escape it ; but it is
none the less felt to be the fitting expression of Divine wrath, the
righteous manifestation of the hostility of God's nature to sin and
all its consequences. Guilt, then, like sin, has its twofold charac-
ter. It is the belief in an external hostility to sin expressing itself
in punishment, and also the conviction that such punishment is
righteous and just. Thus, when once God is recognized as the
offended Person, the acknowledgment of the righteousness of His
judgment follows. ' Against Thee, Thee only, have I sinned, and
done that which is evil in Thy sight ; that Thou mightest be justified
when Thou speakest, and be clear when Thou judgest.'
(2) Corresponding to the sense of sin in its twofold aspect we
find, not only in the Mosaic system or in the scriptural history,
but almost universally established, the system of sacrifice. It is
not necessary to maintain that sacrifice, in its essential idea, was
intended to express the consciousness of sin. Rather, it seems to
be, essentially, the expression of the very opposite of sin, of that
relation of man to God which sin destroyed. 1 It is sometimes
said that sacrifice is the recognition of God's sovereignty, the tribute
paid by His subjects. This is, of course, a necessary element in
the conception of sacrifice, for God is our King ; but it does not
satisfy the whole consciousness which man has of his original rela-
tion to God. That is a relation, not of subjection only, but of
union at least as close as that of sons to a Father, a union whereby
we derive life from His life, and render back absolute unquestion-
ing love to Him. Sacrifice is, in its highest, original meaning, the
outward expression of this love. As human love naturally takes
outward form in gifts, and the closer, the more fervent it is, makes
those gifts more and more personal, till at last it wholly gives
itself; so sacrifice should be the recognition of our union with
1 Cf. Holland, Logic and Life, pp. 107, 108.
vii. The Atonement. 233
God, an expression of our love for Him, giving Him all that we
have and all that we are. Submission, reverence, love, are the
original feelings which sacrifice was intended to represent ; and it
may be called, therefore, the expression of man's relations to God
in their purest form, unmarred and unbroken by sin. But this is
only the original, ideal meaning, for with the intrusion of sin
another element appears in sacrifice ; and men attempt, by their
offerings, to expiate their offences, to cover their sins, to wipe
out their guilt, to propitiate Divine wrath. But though this new
element is introduced, the original intention is not altogether lost.
The union has been destroyed by sin, but even in the sin-offerings
under the Law there was expressed the endeavor to regain it, to
enter once more into living relations with God : while the normal
sacrifices, of the congregation went beyond this, and represented
the exercise of a right based on union with God, the presentation
of the people before Him. Thus we must recognize in the Mo-
saic sacrifices — the most complete and typical form of the sacri-
ficial idea — the twofold aspect which corresponds to the twofold
effect of sin on the human race. There is the offering, sometimes
the bloodless offering, by which was typified simply man's depend-
ence on God, his submission to Him, his life derived from Him
and therefore rendered back to Him. From this point of view
the sacrifice culminated, not in the slaying and offering of the
victim, but in the sprinkling of the blood, the i principle of life,'
upon the altar. The priestly mediators brought the blood, which
1 maketh atonement by reason of the life,' before God, and sprin-
kled it upon the altar, in order that the lost union with God in the
covenant might be restored, and life once more derived from God
as it had been offered to Him. The whole system was indeed
only partial, temporary, external. The Mosaic sacrifices ' sancti-
fied unto the cleanness of the flesh,' they did not 'cleanse the
conscience from dead works to serve the living God.' So the res-
toration which the special sin-offerings accomplished was merely
external and temporary, the reunion of the offender with the con-
gregation of Israel from which his fault had separated him. But
as this excommunication symbolized the loss, brought about by
sin, of life with God, so the reunion with the congregation typi-
fied the reunion of the sinner with God. As a system, then,
the Mosaic sacrifices both corresponded to a deep desire of the
human heart, the desire to recover the lost relation to the Divine
life, and also by their imperfection pointed forward to a time
when, by means of a more perfect offering, that restoration should
be complete, accomplished once for all, and eternal. This is one
234 The Religion of the Incarnation.
aspect of the sacrificial system. But before this typical restoration
of life, there came the mysterious act which corresponded to the
sense of guilt. Leaving aside the lesser offerings of the show-
bread and the incense, it may be said generally that in every
sacrifice the slaying of a victim was a necessary element. And
there is deep significance in the manner in which the slaying was
performed. The hands of the offerer laid upon the victim's head
denoted, according to the unvarying use of the Old Testament,
the representative character of the animal offered, and thus the
victim was, so to speak, laden with the guilt of him who sought
for pardon and reconciliation. The victim was then slain by the
offerer himself, and the death thus became an acknowledgment of
the justice of God's punishments for sin : it was as if the offerer
declared, ' This representative of my guilt I here, by my own act,
doom to death, in satisfaction of the righteous law of vengeance
against sin, for " the soul that sinneth it shall die." ' It was not,
therefore, till the sense of personal guilt had been expressed by
the act which constituted the victim a representative of the offerer,
and by the slaying which typified the need of expiation by suffer-
ing for sin, that the sacrifice was fit to be presented before God by
the mediation of the priest, and the blood, ' the life which had
willingly passed through death,' 1 could be sprinkled as a token of
restored life in God. A careful study of the Mosaic sacrifices will
show the twofold character impressed upon them. Both aspects
are necessary, they may even be described as two sides of the
same fact. Before God can be approached by a sinner he must
expiate his sin by suffering, must perfectly satisfy the demands of
the law, must atone for the past which has loaded him with guilt :
and then, as part of the same series of acts, the life so sacrificed,
so purified by the expiatory death, is accepted by God, and being
restored from Him, becomes the symbol and the means of union
with Him. Forgiveness for the past, cleansing in the present, hope
for the future, are thus united in one great symbolic ceremony.
The Mosaic system was only external, ' sanctifying unto the
cleanness of the flesh ; ' partial, for it provided no expiation for
the graver moral transgressions ; temporary, for the sacrifices had
to be repeated ' day by day ; ' provisional, for, ' if there was per-
fection through the Levitical priesthood, „ . . what further need
was there that another priest should arise after the order of Mel-
chizedek ? ' In spite, however, of these obvious defects and limi-
tations in the Mosaic system, there was a constant tendency among
1 Milligan, The Resurrection, p. 278.
vii. The Atonement. 235
the Jews to rest content with it, to rely upon the efficacy of these
external sacrifices and ceremonies for their whole religion, to
believe that ' the blood of bulls and goats ' could 'put away sin,'
and that no inner spiritual repentance or renovation was required.
And the highest minds of the nation, represented by the prophets,
were keenly alive to this danger : their rebukes and remonstrances
show how strongly they felt the imperfection of the sacrificial sys-
tem, how it failed to satisfy the really religious cravings of spiritual
minds. Yet there it was, divinely ordained, clearly necessary as
the expression of the national religious life, profoundly signifi-
cant. It could not be dispensed with, yet it could not satisfy : in
its incompleteness, as well as in its symbolism, it pointed forward,
and foreshadowed a perfect expiation.
(3) This examination of the sacrificial system of the Old Tes-
tament is necessary in a discussion of the doctrine of the Atone-
ment, for several reasons. The institutions of the Law were, in
the first place, ordained by God, and therefore intended to reveal
in some degree His purposes, His mind towards man. We thus
find in them traces of the fuller revelation which came afterwards,
and the two dispensations throw light on each other. Then again,
it was from the Law that the Jews derived their religious language :
their conceptions of sacrifice, of atonement, of the effects of sin,
were moulded by the influence of the Mosaic ceremonies. For
this reason the Apostolic doctrine of the Atonement must be looked
at in connection with the ideas inspired by the Law, although, of
course, the life and work of our Lord so enlarged the religious
conceptions of the Apostles as to constitute a fresh revelation.
But it was a revelation on the lines, so to speak, of the old ; it
took up and continued the ideas implanted by the Mosaic reli-
gion, and displayed the fulfilment of the earlier promises and fore-
casts. It is, therefore, from the Old Testament that we have to
learn the vocabulary of the Apostolic writings. As the Messianic
hopes and phraseology throw light upon the Apostolic conception
of the Kingdom of Christ, so the sacrificial ceremonies and lan-
guage of the Law throw light upon the Apostolic conception of
the Sacrifice, the Atonement of Christ. But this is not all. The
Mosaic institutions, in their general outlines, were no arbitrary
and artificial symbols, but corresponded to religious feelings, needs,
aspirations that may truly be called natural and universal. This
conception of sin in its twofold aspect of alienation and of guilt,
and this idea of sacrifice as effecting man's restoration to union
with God, and also as expiating his guilt by suffering, correspond
to what the human conscience, when deeply and sincerely inves-
236 The Religion of the Incarnation.
tigated, declares to be its inmost secret. Every man who has
once realized sin, can also realize the feelings of the Jew who
longed to make an expiation for the guilt of the past, to suffer
some loss, some penalty that would cover his sin, and who there-
fore brought his offering before God, made the unconscious victim
his representative, the bearer of his guilt, and by slaying it strove
to make atonement. We feel the same need, the same longing.
This load of guilt has to be laid down somehow : this past sinful-
ness, must meet with a punishment which will make expiation for
it : before this lost union with God can be restored we must be
assured of pardon, must know that the wrath of God no longer
abides on us, but has been turned away, and finds no longer in
us the sin which is the one obstacle to the free course of Divine
love. And then we know further that bitter truth which came to
the loftiest minds among the Jews, that no sacrifice of ours can
have atoning value, for God demands the offering of ourselves,
and we are so weakened by sin that we cannot give ourselves up
to Him, so polluted by sin that the sacrifice is worthless in His
eyes. In order to atone, sacrifice must be no outward ceremony,
the offering of this or that possession, the fulfilment of this or that
externally imposed ordinance, but the entire surrender of self to
God, and to His law, a surrender dictated from within by the free
impulse of the will. Therefore, just as the spiritually minded Jew
felt the continual discrepancy between the external ceremonies
which he was bound to fulfil, and the complete submission to the
will of God which they could not effect, and without which they
were wholly inadequate, so every awakened conscience must feel
the fruitlessness of any outward expression of devotion and obedi-
ence so long as there is no complete sacrifice of self.
These, then, seem to be the conditions which must be satisfied
before an atonement can meet the needs of the human heart and
conscience, whether these are inferred from an examination of the
Hebrew religious institutions or are gathered from our own
knowledge of ourselves and of others. There is, first of all, the
consciousness of guilt, of an offended God, of a law transgressed,
of punishment impending, to expiate which some sacrifice is neces-
sary, but no sacrifice adequate to which can be offered by us as we
are. Propitiation is the first demand of the law, and we cannot,
of ourselves, propitiate Him whose anger we have righteously
incurred. Secondly, we long for an abiding union with Him, and
for the full bestowal of the Divine life which results from that union
alone. Propitiation is not enough by itself, though propitiation is
the necessary first step in the process of reconciliation. Aliens by
vii. The Atonement. 237
our own sinful acts, and by the sin of our forefathers, from the life
of God, we yet long to return and to live once more in Him. But
this is equally impossible for us to accomplish of ourselves. By-
sin we have exiled ourselves, but we cannot return by mere force
of will. Both as propitiation, therefore, and as reunion, the Atone-
ment must come from without, and cannot be accomplished by
those who themselves have need of it. But there is a third con-
dition, apparently irreconcilable with the other two. This same
consciousness of guilt which demands an expiation demands that
it shall be personal, the satisfaction of the sense of personal respon-
sibility, and of the unconquerable conviction of our own freedom.
The propitiatory sacrifice which is to effect our reunion must, for
we are powerless to offer it, come from without : but at the same
time we cannot but feel that it must come into contact with the
will, it must be the inward sacrifice, the free-will offering, of the
whole nature that has sinned.
II. If the redemptive work of Christ satisfies these conditions
it is evident that it is not a simple, but a very complex fact. The
fault of many of the theories of the Atonement has been that,
though none of them failed to be partially true, they were limited
to one or other of the various aspects which that mysterious fact
presents. It is certain, again, that of this complex fact no ade-
quate explanation can be given. At every stage in the process
which is generally summed up in the one word Atonement we are
in presence of forces which issue from infinity and pass out of our
sight even while we are contemplating their effects. And even if
the Atonement could be altogether reduced, so to speak, to terms
of human experience, it will be shown that man's forgiveness, the
nearest analogy of which we have any knowledge, is an experience
of which no logical explanation can be given, which seems to share,
indeed, something of the mystery of its Divine antitype. But though
it is almost blasphemous to pretend to fathom the depth of the Atone-
ment, to lay out the whole truth so as to. satisfy the formulae of
human reason, it is necessary so to understand it as to discern its
response to the imperative demands of the sense of sin and the
desire for forgiveness. Whatever the ultimate mysteries of the
death of Christ may be, it is certain that it has had power to
convince men of forgiveness and to give them a new life. It must
therefore in some way satisfy the conditions which, as we have
seen, are laid down by human consciousness and experience. It
is under the threefold aspect required by those conditions that the
doctrine of the Atonement will be here presented.
1. The death of Christ is, in the first place, to be regarded as
238 The Religion of the Incarnation.
propitiatory. On the one hand there is man's desire, natural and
almost instinctive, to make expiation for his guilt : on the other
there is the tremendous fact of the wrath of God against sin. The
death of Christ is the expiation for those past sins which have laid
the burden of guilt upon the human soul, and it is also the propi-
tiation of the wrath of God. As we have seen, over against the
sense of sin and of liability to the Divine wrath there has always
existed the idea of sacrifice by which that wrath might be averted.
Man could not offer an acceptable sacrifice : it has been offered for
him by Christ. That is the simplest, and it would seem the most
scriptural way of stating the central truth, which is also the deepest
mystery of the Atonement, and it seems to sum up and include the
various other metaphors and descriptions of the redemptive work
of Christ. But its mere statement at once suggests questions, the
consideration of which will lead to a fuller understanding of the
doctrine. Thus we have to ask, What is it which is propitiated by
Christ's death? In other words, What is meant by the wrath of
God against sin ?
(a) It should be remembered that though there is great danger
in anthropomorphism, and though most of the superstition which has
ever been the shadow cast by religion on the world has arisen from
an exaggerated conception of the likeness of God to ourselves, yet
there is, after all, no other way of knowing God than by represent-
ing Him under conceptions formed by our own consciousness and
experience, and this method is pre-eminently incumbent upon us
who believe that man is made 'in the image of God.' We are
certain, for instance, that love, pity, justice, are affections which,
however imperfectly they may be found in us, do make for
goodness, and if we may not ascribe these same affections, infin-
itely raised and purified, to God, we have no means of conceiving
His character, of knowing ' with Whom we have to deal.'
Our knowledge, even of ourselves, is after all fragmentary, 1 and
thus truths of whose certainty we are convinced may seem irre-
concilably opposed to each other. Our conception of love, for
example, is a fragment, and we cannot trace it up to the meeting-
point at which it is reconciled with justice, so that in our moral
judgments we are continually oscillating, as it were, between the
two. But this fact should not hinder us from ascribing to God in
1 Cf. Mozley, University Sermons, p. 177 (2d ed.) : 'Justice is a fragment,
mercy is a fragment, mediation is a fragment ; justice, mercy, mediation as a
reason of mercy, — all three ; what indeed are they but great vistas and ojx n-
ings info an invisible world in which is the point of view which brings them
all together ? '
vii. The Atonement, 239
their fullest degree both love and justice, confident that in Him
they are harmonized because we are confident from the verdict of
our own consciences that both are good, and because even in such
imperfect reflections of His image as, for instance, parental love,
we see at least a partial harmony of them. When then a doubt arises
as to the literal explanation of the phrase ' the wrath of God, ' the
difficulty must not be met by the simple assertion that we cannot
reconcile the idea of wrath with that of the love of God ; we must
ask whether wrath, as it exists in us, is a good and righteous affec-
tion, or whether it is always and entirely evil. To this question
there can be but one answer. We are conscious of a righteous
anger, of an affection of displeasure that a good man ought to feel
against sin and evil, and this is amply justified by the scriptural
references to righteous anger, and by the accounts of our Lord's
displays of indignation against evil. But though we are thus com-
pelled to find room, so to speak, for anger in our conception of
God's character, it is not therefore necessary to ascribe to Him that
disturbance of the spiritual nature, or that change in the direction
of the will, which are almost invariable accompaniments of human
anger. These are the defects of the human affection, from which
arises the sinful tendency in our anger, and which cannot be thought
of in connection with the all-holy and all-wise God. On the other
hand, it is not possible to limit the conception of the ' wrath of
God ' to the acts whereby sin is or will be punished, which was
the explanation of some of the Fathers, or to think of it as in the
future only, to come into existence only on the day of judgment,
as has been attempted by some modern theologians. The scrip-
tural expressions, including as we must the passages which speak
of our Lord's anger, cannot be so weakened. ' The wrath of God '
seems to denote no changeful impulse or passing feeling, but the
fixed and necessary hostility of the Divine Nature to sin ; and the
idea must further include the manifestation of that hostility, when-
ever sin comes before God, in external acts of vengeance, punish-
ment, and destruction. God's anger is not only the displeasure of
an offended Person : it is possible that this is altogether a wrong
conception of it : it must be further the expression of justice,
which not only hates but punishes. The relation of the Divine
Nature to sin is thus twofold : it is the personal hostility, if we may
call it so, of holiness to sin, and it is also the righteousness which
punishes sin because it is lawless. The two ideas are intimately
connected, and not unfrequently, when we should have expected
to find in the Bible the wrath of God spoken of, the language of
judgment and righteousness is substituted for it. Sin is necessa-
240 The Religion of the Incarnation.
rily hateful to the holiness of God, but also, because sin is lawless-
ness, it is judged, condemned, and punished by Him in accord-
ance with the immutable law of righteousness, which is the law of
His own Nature. Therefore to turn from God's wrath against sin
to the mode in which that wrath may be averted, it results that the
sacrifice offered for sin must be both a propitiation and a satisfac-
tion. Anger, so we think, is but a feeling, and may be ousted by
another feeling ; love can strive against wrath and overcome it ; the
Divine hatred of sin need raise no obstacle to the free forgiveness
of the sinner. So we might think ; but a true ethical insight shows
us that this affection of anger, of hatred, is in reality the expression
of justice, and derives from the law of righteousness, which is not
above God, nor is it dependent on His Will, for it is Himself.
' He cannot deny Himself; ' He cannot put away His wrath, until
the demands of Law have been satisfied, until the sacrifice has been
offered to expiate, to cover, to atone for the sins of the world.
The reconciliation to be effected is not merely the reconciliation of
man to God by the change wrought in man's rebellious nature, but
it is also the propitiation of God Himself, whose wrath unappeased
and whose justice unsatisfied are the barriers thrown across the
sinner's path to restoration.
(&) But how, we ask further, was this propitiation made by the
Sacrifice on the Cross? Or, to put the question rather differently,
what was it that gave to the death of Christ its propitiatory value ?
In attempting to suggest an answer to this question, it is necessary
to bear in mind the distinction between the actual event, or series
of events, which constituted the Propitiatory Sacrifice, and that inner
element which was thereby manifested, and which gave to the
actual event its worth. St. Bernard expressed the distinction in
the well-known words, ' Not His death, but His willing acceptance
of death, was pleasing to God,' and there can be no doubt that
throughout the New Testament special stress is laid upon the
perfect obedience manifested in the life and death of Christ, upon
the accomplishment of His Father's will which He ever kept in
view, and upon the contrast thus marked between the Mosaic sac-
rifices and the one atoning offering. ' Sacrifices and offerings and
whole burnt offerings and sacrifices for sin Thou wouldest not,
neither hadst pleasure therein ; . . . then hath He said, Lo, I am
come to do Thy will. '
That the perfect obedience displayed in the passion and death
of our Lord was the element which gave to the sacrifice its pro-
pitiatory value will be more readily understood when it is remem-
bered that the essence of man's sin was from the first disobedience,
vii. The Atonement. 241
the rebellion of the human will against the commands of God. The
perfect sacrifice was offered by One Who, being man with all man's
liability to temptation, that is, with all the instruments of sin at His
disposal, and exposed to every suggestion to set up His will against
that of the Father, yet throughout His life continued unswervingly
bent on doing ' not His own will, but the will of the Father, Who sent
Him,' and Who thus displayed the original perfection of human
nature, the unbroken union with the life of God. On the cross the
final struggle, the supreme temptation, took place. The obedience
shown throughout His life was there manifested in death. ' He
became obedient unto death, even the death of the cross.' At every
moment of the passion there might have been a refusal to undergo
the shame and the torture of body and spirit. At any stage
during the long struggle, He might have ended it all by a single
acquiescence in evil, a single submission to the law of unrighteous-
ness. At each moment, therefore, His will was exerted to keep
itself in union with the will of God ; it was not a mere submission at
the outset once for all, but a continuous series of voluntary acts of
resignation and obedience. Here then is the spirit of sacrifice
which God demands, and which could not be found in the sacri-
fices of the Mosaic law, or in any offering of sinful man. The
essence of the Atonement was the mind of Christ therein displayed,
the obedience gradually learnt and therein perfected, the will of
Christ therein proved to be one with the Father's will.
But we may discern a further element of propitiation in the death
of our Lord. The law of righteousness, the justice of God,
demands not only obedience in the present, but vengeance for the
past. ' The sins done aforetime ' had been ' passed over in the
forbearance of God ' for His own purposes, which are not revealed
to us : this ' passing over ' had obscured the true nature of sin and of
the Divine justice. Men had come to have easy thoughts of sin
and its consequences ; the heathen felt but vaguely the burden of
guilt, the Jew trusted in the mere external works of the law. In
the death of Christ a manifestation was made of the righteousness
of God, of His wrath, the absolute hostility of His nature to sin.
' God set Him forth to be a propitiation, through faith, by His
blood, to show His righteousness, because of the passing over of
the sins done aforetime, in the forbearance of God.' But this
manifestation of Divine justice might have been made by mere
punishment : it became a propitiation, in that He, the self-chosen
victim, by His acceptance of it, recognized the righteousness of the
law which was vindicated on the cross. Men had refused to
acknowledge God's justice in the consequences of sin ; nothing
16
242 The Religion of the Incarnation.
but the willing acceptance Of suffering, as the due portion of the
human nature in which the sin was wrought, could have so declared
the justice of God's law as to be a propitiation of Divine wrath.
The cross was, on the one hand, the proclamation of God's ordi-
nance against sin, on the other it was the response of man at length
acknowledging the righteousness of the condemnation. 1
But on looking more closely into the matter, it is obvious that
these explanations are not by themselves enough to account for
the scriptural facts which we call the Atonement. We cannot
ignore that, whether we consider the Old Testament anticipations
or the New Testament narrative of our Lord's work, His death,
apart from the obedience manifested in it, occupies a unique place,
and that stress is laid on it which would be unaccountable were it
only the extreme trial of His obedience. The frequent declaration
that it was necessary, that ' it behooved Christ to die,' seems to
point to something exceptional in it, something more than the
mere close of His spotless life. So again the mysterious dread
and horror with which He looked forward to it testify to something
in it which goes far beyond any human experience of death. 2 And
what we gather from the New Testament must be combined with
the Old Testament premonitions of Christ's death, as typified by
the Mosaic sacrifices. There can be no question that death was,
speaking generally, an integral part of the idea of sacrifice for sin,
and that the distinguishing ceremonial of the slaying of the victim
points to a special significance in death as connected with expi-
ation and propitiation. Therefore, although we may still recognize
that it was the spirit of obedience and voluntary submission which
gave atoning value to the death of Christ, we cannot ignore the
necessity of death as the appointed form which the obedience took.
Had He not obeyed, He would not have atoned ; but had He not
died, the obedience would have lacked just that element which
made it an atonement for sin. The obedience was intended to issue
in death. St. Bernard's saying, though true as he meant it, is, if
taken quite literally, too sharp an antithesis. There is nothing
1 Cf. McLeod Campbell, 'The Nature of the Atonement,' pp. 117, 118,119,
I2 7> 347 : ' That oneness of mind with the Father, which towards man took
the form of condemnation of sin, would in the Son's dealing with the Father
in relation to our sins take the form of a perfect confession of our sins. This
confession, as to its own nature, must have been a perfect Amen in humanity
to the udgment of God on the sin of man.' * In Christ tasting death [as] the
wages of sin . . . was a perfecting of the Divine response in humanity to the
Divine condemnation of sin.'
2 See Dale. Atonement, pp. 49 ff. ; Schmidt in Herzog's Real. Encykl.,
xvi. 403.
vii. The Atonement, 243
well-pleasing to God in death alone, it is true ; but there is, so He
has revealed it, something well-pleasing to His righteousness,
something propitiatory in death, if as a further condition the
perfect obedience of the victim is thereby displayed.
We are driven to the same conclusion by the second explanation
of our Lord's sacrifice given above. It is not enough to say that
He died in order to manifest God's righteous judgment against
sin, for the question remains, Why is death the requisite manifesta-
tion of judgment? If He endured it because it is the only fitting
punishment, why is it in such a signal manner the penalty of sin ?
We can point, indeed, to the Divine principle : ' The soul that
sinneth, it shall die,' as we can point to God's declared will that ex-
piation shall be made by means of death ; but in neither case,
whether death be looked upon as the punishment or as the expia-
tion of sin, is there any explanation of its unique position. It may
well be that here we are confronted by the final mystery, and that
the propitiatory virtue of Christ's death, typified by the slaying of
animal victims under the law, foreshadowed by the almost univer-
sal belief in the expiation of blood, acknowledged with wonder-
ing gratitude by the human heart, depends upon the unsearchable
will and hidden purposes of God, except in so far as we can see in
it the manifestation at once of Christ's perfect obedience and of
the righteousness of Divine judgment. If an attempt is made to
penetrate further into the mystery of Redemption, it can be but
a speculation, but it will be saved from overboldness if it follows
the general lines of God's action as revealed in His Word.
Some light may be thrown upon the mystery of Christ's death
by considering the scriptural view of death in general as the
penalty of sin. It is not the mere physical act of dying, for that,
as St. Athanasius says, is natural to man, 1 and can be traced in the
animal world in the ages before man existed. Besides, our Lord
is said to have delivered us from death, and this clearly cannot
mean physical death, since to this all men are still subject, but
rather spiritual death ; and the death which is spoken of as the
penalty of sin must therefore also be spiritual. In this sense death
can be no other than the final removal from us of God's presence,
the completion of the alienation from the Divine life which sin
began. But, considering the close connection throughout the
1 De Incarn. Verbi, 4: 'Man is by nature mortal.' St. Athanasius held,
however, that this * natural corruption ' would have been suspended, bat for
the Fall, by the help of the Logos empowering man to live the Divine life.
See on the whole subject Gore, The Christian Doctrine of Sin, in the
Guardian, March 27, 1SS9.
244 The Religion of the Incarnation.
Bible of physical and spiritual death, may it not be that the former
is more than the symbol and type of the latter, that it is actually
its consummation? If, again, death be truly represented by the
Christian consciousness as the close of man's probation, does not
this also point to its being the moment when the light of God's
presence, the strength of His life, is finally withdrawn from the
impenitent sinner, and the spiritual death, which is the one essen-
tial punishment of sin, falls upon him? The sentence of death,
then, under which the whole world lay apart from the Atonement 1
was the declaration that every man who by inheritance and by his
own act shared in Adam's sin, should at the moment of physical
death experience also the full measure of spiritual death. The
common lot of death thus involved the consciousness of separation
from the life of God, and when we so regard it we can understand
something of the horror which its anticipation brought upon the
soul of the Son of God. 2 He must pass through this last and most
awful human experience ; not only because it was human, but
because by the victorious endurance of it alone could the propiti-
ation be accomplished. The thought throws light upon the prom-
inence given to the death of Christ, upon His dread of it, upon
His mysterious cry of dereliction upon the cross. It shows us
how, though the experience was common to man, yet in Him it
was in a twofold manner unique. The withdrawal of God's pres-
ence, awful as it is to the sin-hardened nature of man, must have
been immeasurably more bitter to Him Who was One with the
Father, whose ' meat was to do the will of His Father.' Just as
we may believe the tortures of the cross to have been specially
grievous to the perfect body which was unstained by sin, though
other men have endured them ; so, though all have to pass through
death with its accompanying terror of the loss of God's presence,
none can realize what that experience was to Him, because He
was the Son of God. The death of Christ was therefore unique
because of the nature of Him Who underwent it. But it was also
unique in its results. No other death had been a propitiation for
sin, for in no other death had this overwhelming consciousness of
dereliction been endured victoriously, with no failure of perfect
obedience, no shrinking of the will from the ordained task. In
this final experience the offering was complete, the essence of the
propitiation was secured, for the actual result of all human sin was
1 It should be remembered that the Church has always regarded the
Atonement as having a retrospective effect, extending back to the first repre-
sentatives of the human race.
2 Cf. Schmidt, in Ilerzog's Real Encykl., Art. Versonung, xvi. 403.
:: Tlie Atonement. :_"
herein made the very revelation of holiness itself, the means
v.here:;." ;/-r :.:.:::. r_;_ :r_± "ill :: G:i. ~: :":.: :::___ _r::;_ finally
broken, was finally perfected. The propitiatory value, therefore, of
the sacrifice of Christ lay in His absolute obedience, in His willing
acceptance of suffering, which was thereby acknowledged as the due
reward of sin, and in the death which was the essential form of
both, — for death is the culminating point of the alienation from God,
which is both sin and its punishment. He alone endured it victori-
ously and without sin ; He alone, therefore, transformed it from the
sign and occasion of God's wrath into a well-pleasing offering ; He
took the punishment and made it a propitiation. * The chastisement
of our peace was upon Him ; and with His stripes we are healed.'
(r) So far we have considered the sacrifice of Christ in its aspect
Godwards ; we have tried to find an answer to the question, How
did the death of Christ propitiate the wrath of God? There
remains the farther question, How was it a sacrifice for us ? It
was, we can see, a perfect offering acceptable to God ; but how
has it availed 'for us men'? The mind shrinks from a purely
external Atonement, and part of the imperfection of the Mosaic
sacrifices consisted in the merely artificial relation between the
offender and the victim. In the perfect sacrifice this relation
must be real ; and we are thus led to the truth, so often over-
looked, but impressed on every page of the New Testament, that
He who died for our sins was our true representative in that He
was truly man. Without for the present going into the more
mystical doctrine of Christ as the second Adam, the spiritual head
of our race, what is here emphasized is the reality and perfection
of His human nature, which gave Him the right to offer a repre-
sentative sacrifice. 1 ' For verily not of angels doth He take hold,
but He taketh hold of the seed of Abraham. Wherefore it behooved
Him in all things to be made like unto His brethren, that He
might be a merciful and foithful High Priest in things pertaining to
God, to make propitiation for the sins of the people.' Being thus
■ taken from among men,' He was ' appointed for, or on behalf of,
"---:' z~i z':t ;u=:if: = rl:r. :: K:s ?rir=-.r.::£ :s :"~e zzzr.z'.tzt
reality of His humanity, which, if we may so speak, overlay and
hid His Divinity, so that 'though He was a Son,' unchangeably 'in
1 Irenaeus is foil of this thought, though it is not disentangled from other
explanations of the death of Christ Cf. especially, V. xxiii. 2 : 'Recapiru-
lans enim universum hominem in se ab initio usque ad finem. recapitnlatus et
mortem ejus/ Cf. also Athanasius, de Incarn. Verbi. 9, in which he sur : e - : -
that it was the Divine power of the Logos in the bodflv nature of Christ that
r:\i_r H:5 iz:r.±:t re; re:-; .::.:: t : ; t._ ;.= H : s it~.z'£ Ti:z:ri:\is : ■--: i = -:l.
246 The Religion of the Incarnation.
the form of God,' ' yet learnt He obedience by the things which
He suffered,' and thus became for us a perfect Priest. The sinless
perfection of Christ, far from removing Him out of the sphere of
our sinful lives, made Him perfectly representative ; for He not
only possessed in their greatest perfection all the powers and
capacities which are the instruments of sin, but in the strength of
His sinlessness and of His love He could feel for all men and
accept them as His brethren, though they were sinners. Our
High Priest ' hath been in all points like as we are, yet without
sin.' The holiest man has some part of his nature stunted and
repressed by sin, and is so far incomplete, unrepresentative; but
He, unweakened and unmarred in any point by sin, can without
holding anything back represent human nature in its perfection
and entirety.
The representative character of Christ is manifested in a different
aspect, according as He is regarded as the victim or as the priest
offering the sacrifice. As the victim He must be the sin-bearer,
for the transfer of guilt — which under the Mosaic system was
merely symbolized by the act of laying hands on the victim's
head — must for a true propitiatory sacrifice be more than external
and artificial. That is to say, there must be a real meaning in St.
Paul's tremendous words, ' Him Who knew no sin He made to be
sin on our behalf,' in the passages in which He is described as
bearing our sins, 1 in the great prophecy which told that ' the Lord
hath laid on Him the iniquity of us all.' How can we find an
explanation of the paradox so boldly stated by St. Paul, that He
who knew no sin was yet made sin ? We may not surely take all
these plain phrases to mean that He bore the punishment of our
sins ; it would have been easy to say that, had it been meant. No,
the relation typified by the Mosaic offerings must be real, and yet
the expression ' He made Him to be sin ' cannot without blasphemy
be understood to mean that God the Father actually made His
Son to sin. The solution of the difficulty can only be found in
the truth of the Incarnation. In order that the sacrifice might be
representative, He took upon Him the whole of our human nature,
and became flesh, conditioned though that fleshly nature was
throughout by sin. 2 It was not only in His death that we contem-
plate Him as the sin-bearer, but throughout His life He was, as it
1 See especially Heb. ix. 28, which is an echo of the LXX. of Is. liii. 12.
2 Athan., c. Ar., i. 43 : 'He put on the flesh which was enslaved to sin.'
Cf. also Augustine, de Musica, VI. iv : ' Hominem sine peccato, non sine
peccatoris conditione suscepit. Nam et nasci humanitus, et pati et mori
voluit.' I owe this reference to Norn's, Rudiments of Theology, p. 61 n.
vii. The Atonement. 247
were, conditioned by the inherent sinfulness of humanity. The
Crucifixion does not come as the unexpectedly shameful end of a
glorious and untroubled life, though it was undoubtedly in a
special sense the manifestation of the ' curse ' under which He
laid Himself. We cannot say that at a given moment in His life,
as when the sinner's hands were laid upon the victim's head and
his guilt was transferred, He began to bear our iniquity, for the
very nature which He took, freed though it was in Him from
hereditary guilt, was in itself, by its necessary human relations,
sin-bearing. Nor did His personal sinlessness make this impossible
or unreal ; rather it intensified it. As St. Matthew tells us, even
in relation to bodily sickness and infirmity, that He bore what He
took away, — ' Himself took our infirmities, and bare our diseases,'
— so it Was with our redemption from sin. In taking it away, He
had to bear its weight, intensified by reason of that very self-
sacrificing love which made Him realize with more than human
keenness the sinfulness of the human nature into which He had
come. There is thus nothing artificial or external in His sin-bearing,
for His human nature was so real and so perfect that He was
involved, so to speak, in all the consequences of the sin which is so
tremendous a factor in human life, even to the enduring of the very
sufferings and death which in us are the penal results and final out-
come of sin, but in Him were the means of His free self-sacrifice.
Once more He was our representative as the Priest who offered
the sacrifice. The requisite conditions of such an office are stated,
in the Epistle to the Hebrews, to be complete human sympathy,
and yet such separateness from sin, and from all limitations of
incompleteness, as can only be Divine. ' It behooved Him in all
things to be made like unto His brethren, that He might be a
merciful and faithful high priest ; ' * but He, because He abideth
forever, hath His priesthood unchangeable ... for such a high
priest became us, holy, harmless, undefiled, separated from sinners,
and made higher than the heavens ; ' ' for the law appointed men
high priests, having infirmity ; but the word of the oath, which
was after the law, appointeth a Son, perfected for evermore.' l In
these and similar passages the doctrine of the Priesthood of Christ
is developed, and it is obvious that quite as much stress is laid on
His unlikeness as on His likeness to us. 2 He is our representative
1 Heb. ii. 17 ; vii. 24, 26, 28; cf. ix. 13, 14, 24, 25, 26; x. n, 12, 13. 14.
2 Cf. Athan., c. Ar., ii. 69 ' He sends His own Son, and He becomes Son
of Man, by taking created flesh ; that, since all were under sentence of death,
He, being other than them all, might Himself for all offer to death His own
body.'
248 The Religion of the Incantation.
as Priest, because He is both man and more than man, and can
therefore perform for us what we could not and cannot perform for
ourselves, in offering the perfect propitiatory sacrifice. Here is
the true vicariousness of the Atonement, which consisted, not, as
we shall see later, in the substitution of His punishment for ours,
but in His offering the sacrifice which man had neither purity nor
power to offer. From out of the very heart and centre of the
human nature which was so enslaved and corrupted by sin that no
human offering was acceptable to God, there is raised the sinless
sacrifice of perfect humanity by the God-Man, our great High
Priest : human in the completeness of His sympathy, Divine in the
unique power of His Priesthood. So is the condition of the law
of righteousness fulfilled, and the sacrifice of obedience unto
death is offered by His submission to all that constitutes in sinners
the consummation and the punishment of their sin, which He
transformed into the occasion and the manifestation of His perfect
holiness. And it is a representative sacrifice, for unique though it
is, it consists of no unheard-of experience, of no merely symbolical
ceremony, unrelated and unmeaning to us ; but of just those uni-
versal incidents of suffering which, though He must have felt them
with a bitterness unknown to us, are intensely human, — poverty,
misunderstanding, failure, treachery, rejection, bodily anguish,
spiritual desolation, death. ' Surely He hath borne our griefs, and
carried our sorrows. . . . The chastisement of our peace was upon
Him/ and therefore ' by His stripes we are healed.'
2. It is not enough to consider the death of Christ only as pro-
pitiatory, or as standing alone in relation to our redemption. We
have seen how it secured our propitiation, and in what sense it has
a unique place in relation both to our Lord Himself and to man.
There remains the further aspect of His redemptive work, in which
it is regarded as effecting our reunion with God, by delivering us
from the power of sin, and by filling us with the Divine gift of
life. This, it should be noticed, is the conception of our Lord's
work which was chiefly in the minds of the early Christian writers,
though in almost all it was combined with the acknowledgment of
His deliverance of man from guilt and from the wrath of God by
His representative propitiation. 1 But to their consciousness the
1 The two aspects of the Atonement are frequently presented by St.
Athanasius, de Incarn. Verbi. Thus (ch. 10) ' By the sacrifice of His own
Body He both put an end to the law which was against us, and gave us a fresh
beginning of life, in that He bestowed on us the hope of resurrection.' Cf.
also chs. 8 and 9. Again (ch. 25), 'As He offered His Body unto death for
all ; so by it He again threw open the way to heaven.'
vii. The Atonement. 249
power of sin and of the spiritual forces with which man is sur-
rounded was so continually present that they were naturally
inclined to look mainly at that side of the Atonement which repre-
sents it as the victory over sin and Satan and the restoration of
man to the life of God. And this view, though by no means to
the exclusion of the propitiatory aspect, is amply justified by the
Bible. Considered as restoration, there seem to be three grades
or stages of redemption indicated in the New Testament. First,
there is the unanimous declaration that the object of our Lord's
life and death was to free us from sin. In the most sacrificial
descriptions of His work this further result of the Atonement is
implied. The ' Lamb of God ' is to ' take away the sin of the
world ; '. His Blood was to be ' shed for the remission of sins;' by
1 the precious Blood of Jesus Christ, as of a Lamb without blemish,'
men were ' redeemed from their vain conversation ; ' He ' gave
Himself for us, that He might redeem us from all iniquity? In
the next place, this deliverance from sin is identified with the gift
of life, which is repeatedly connected with our Lord's life and
death. ' I am come that they might have life ; ' for ' I will give
My flesh for the life of the world.' ' He died for all, that they
which live should not henceforth live unto themselves, but unto
Him Who died for them and rose again.' He 'bare our sins in
His own body on the tree, that we being dead to sins might live
unto righteousness.' Lastly, this new life is to issue in union with
the life of God in Christ. ' Christ suffered for sins, the just for
the unjust, that He might bring us to God.' ' In Christ Jesus ye
that once were far off are made nigh in the Blood of Christ.' In
such passages the Apostles are only drawing out the meaning of
our Lord's own declaration, * I, if I be lifted up, will draw all men
unto Me.'
Our Lord's death is thus intimately connected by the New Tes-
tament writers with the restoration of man to union with God by
means of the gift of life ; but it should be noticed that, unique and
necessary as His death was, it is continually spoken of in close con-
nection with the Resurrection or the Ascension, for in these, as
was foreshadowed by the typical ceremonies of the Law, the sacri-
fice culminated by the presentation of the ' life which had willingly
passed through death ' before the altar of God's presence. The
reason is clear. Pardon for the past, deliverance from guilt, pro-
pitiation of the just wrath of God, are necessary and all-important ;
but they cannot stand alone. They must, for man is helpless and
weak, be succeeded by the gift of life, and for this we must look to
those mighty acts in which the One Sacrifice reached its full con-
250 The Religion of the Incarnation.
summation. Thus our Lord Himself declares that He died in
order to rise again : ' I lay down My life that [in order that] I may
take it again.' So to St. Paul the Resurrection is the necessary
completion of the process which was begun by the death. ' He
was delivered for our offences, and was raised again for our justifi-
cation.' ' If while we were enemies, we were reconciled to God
through the death of His Son, much more being reconciled, shall
we be saved through [in] His life.' 'We were buried with Him
through baptism unto death ; that [in order that ] like as Christ
was raised from the dead through the glory of the Father, so we
also might walk in newness of life.' Even the passages which
speak of our salvation as effected by virtue of Christ's Blood, refer,
according to the Jewish conception of the ' blood which is the life,'
not only, or even chiefly, to the blood-shedding in death, but to the
heavenly ' sprinkling ' of the principle of life, its presentation in
heaven by means of the Resurrection and Ascension. The whole
process is described in what may be called the central core of St.
Paul's theology, the eighth chapter of the Epistle to the Romans.
' It is Christ Jesus that died, yea rather, that was raised from the
dead, Who is at the Right Hand of God, Who also maketh interces-
sion for us.' It has been the fault of much popular theology to
think only of our deliverance from wrath by the sacrificial death of
Christ, and to neglect the infinitely important continuation of the
process thus begun. The Gospel is a religion of life, the call to a
life of union with God by means of the grace which flows from the
mediation of the risen and ascended Saviour. We need not discuss
the comparative importance of the two aspects of the work of
Atonement, for propitiation and reunion, pardon and life, are alike
necessary elements in salvation, and by the love of God in Christ
are united in the sacrifice which was begun on Calvary, and is for-
ever presented for our redemption before the throne of God in
heaven.
3. So far we have been considering the Atonement as our Lord's
work on behalf of men : we have now to consider it as meeting the
inevitable demand of the human conscience that this vicarious sacri-
fice shall in some way satisfy man's sense of personal responsibility ;
that by means of the Atonement man shall, so far as he can, make
amends for his own sin. The charge of injustice, as it is generally
urged against the doctrine of the Atonement, rests, as will be shown,
upon a fundamental misconception as to the nature of Christ's
work for us ; but it is also commonly assumed that by the death
of Christ all was done for man, and nothing in man, so that we are
thereby relieved of all responsibility for our own wilful acts. It is
vii. The Atonement. 251
this notion that we have now to investigate. First, however, we
must acknowledge the truth contained in it. The Atonement is,
after all, God's forgiveness of us in Christ, and no forgiveness is
conceivable which does not in some degree relieve the offender of
the consequences of his offence. Human forgiveness, though it
may in some cases, perhaps, remit no part of the external penalty
due to wrong-doing, must, in the very act of forgiving, put away
and abolish the anger of the offended person, the alienation which
the offence has caused, and which is certainly part, sometimes the
greatest part, of the penal consequences of an offence. Human
forgiveness, therefore, necessarily transgresses the strict law of retri-
bution : yet no one can seriously contend that forgiveness is either
impossible or immoral. And more than this, there is even in our
imperfect forgiveness a power to blot out guilt, and to restore the
offender to new life. Inexplicable though the fact may be, expe-
rience tells us that forgiveness avails to lift the load of guilt that
presses upon an offender. A change passes over him that can only
be described as regenerative, life-giving ; and thus the assurance
of pardon, however conveyed, may be said to obliterate in some
degree the consequences of the past. 1 It is true that this result of
forgiveness cannot be explained logically so as to satisfy the reason,
but the possibility and the power of pardon are nevertheless facts
of human experience. The Atonement is undoubtedly a mystery,
but all forgiveness is a mystery. The Atonement undoubtedly
transgresses the strict law of exact retribution, but all forgiveness
transgresses it. And we may believe that human forgiveness is, in
spite of all its imperfection, like that of God, for this is surely the
lesson of the Lord's Prayer, ' Forgive us our trespasses, as we
forgive them that trespass against us.' Experience and conscience,
therefore, lead us to expect that the Divine method of forgiveness
will both disprove the exaggerated idea of personal responsibility,
which is based on a false estimate of man's power, and will also
transcend reason by rising into a region of mystery and of miracle. 2
We have to deal in this sphere of pardon with a God Who ' declares
His almighty power most chiefly in showing mercy and pity.'
One aspect of this mystery is to be found in the truth, stamped
on every page of the New Testament, of the mystical union be-
tween Christ and His people. By virtue of this union His acts are
1 Cf. Westcott, Historic Faith, p. 133.
2 Cf. Magee, The Gospel and the Age, pp. 270 ff. Bishop Magee, however,
seems to exaggerate the certainty and relentlessness of the temporal punish-
ment of sin (cf. against this Dale, The Atonement, Lect. viii.), and to over-
look the force of the analogy from human experience of forgiveness.
252 The Religion of the Incarnation.
ascribed to us ; and thus, according to St. Paul, we died in Him,
we are raised in Him, and the sacrifice which He offered, we have
also offered, as in Him. The doctrine of the Second Adam, of
the spiritual headship of Christ, would not indeed, if it stood alone,
satisfy the demands of the conscience ; but when taken in connec-
tion with the practical sacramental teaching which is based upon it,
it points to the solution of the problem. By the Incarnation we
are taken up into Him, and therefore the acts that in His human
nature He performed are our acts, by virtue of that union which is
described by Him as the union of a vine with its branches, by St.
Paul as that of the head with the members of a body. Butin con-
sidering the results of this union, the reciprocal communication
of the weakness of our bodily nature to Him, of His victorious
deeds in the body to us, a distinction must be drawn between
that part of His work which can, and that which cannot, be shared
by us. Of one part of His work, of the sacrifice which He offered
for man's guilt, the essence was its vicariousness. Man could not
and never can offer a sacrifice which can avail to propitiate for the
sins of the past. It is only in virtue of that one final and perfect
propitiation that we can draw nigh to God, can accomplish any-
thing good, can recognize that we are delivered from wrath. The
sins of the past are cancelled, the guilt is wiped out : in this respect
all was accomplished by Him for us who are in Him, and nothing
remains for us to do. He as our Representative, because He
shares our nature, can offer for us a prevailing sacrifice ; only as
His brethren, because He has united us to Him, are we enabled to
plead the sacrifice which He offered. It is indeed offered for us,
for it was utterly impossible that we could offer it for ourselves ; it
was the necessary initial step, which man could not take, towards
union with the righteous Father. As our spiritual head, the second
Adam, the Captain of our salvation, He had the right of offering on
our behalf; as in Him by virtue of the Incarnation we are empow-
ered to claim the infinite blessings of the redemption so obtained. 1
If this is mysterious, irrational, transcendental, so is all morality ;
for at the root of all morality lies the power of self-sacrifice, which
is nothing but the impulse of love to make a vicarious offering for
its fellows, and the virtue of such an offering to restore and to
quicken. 2 The righteousness of God required from the human
1 Cf. Ath., c. Ar., iii. 34. ' As the Lord in putting on the body, became Man,
so we men are made gods by the Word, being taken into Him through His
Flesh, and from henceforth inherit life eternal.'
' z For this thought fully drawn out, see Holland, Creed and Character, pp.
212 ff.
vii. The Atonement. 253
nature which had sinned the sacrifice of a perfect obedience mani-
fested in and through death : that is the unique and unapproach-
able mystery of the Atonement ; but that the sacrifice should be
offered by a sinless Man, and that we should be accepted by God
in virtue of His propitiation and because of our union with Him,
that, though mysterious enough, as human reason counts mystery,
is prefigured and illustrated and explained by all the deepest expe-
riences of the race, by all that is most human, though it most
evades logical analysis, in our moral consciousness. 1
There is, then, no additional propitiation demanded from us.
The Atonement, in this aspect, requires nothing from us, for the
forgiveness is there, bestowed upon us by God in consequence of
the sacrifice of Jesus Christ. But like the gifts of grace which
come after forgiveness, the forgiveness itself has to be personally
accepted by us ; it must be brought into contact with each man's
will. So regarded, the Atonement, though the great gift of recon-
ciliation is absolutely free, the product of the spontaneous love of
God, does lay upon us an obligation. On our part faith is de-
manded that we may realize, and appropriate, and associate our-
selves with the pardon which is ours in Christ. This is not the
place for a full discussion of justifying faith; it is enough to indi-
cate what seems to be its relation to the Atonement, as being man's
share in the propitiatory work of Christ. It is often said that the
faith which justifies is simply trust ; 2 but it must surely be a more
complex moral act than this. If faith is the acceptance of Christ's
propitiation, it must contain, in the first place, that longing for
reconciliation which springs from the personal consciousness of sin
as alienation from God, and from horror of its guilt and power.
There must then ensue the recognition of man's complete power-
lessness to free himself from sin, and a deeply humble sense of
dependence on God's mercy ; but this mere trust in His mercy is
not enough, for it would not satisfy the sense of sin. The sinner
has to own that God is not merely benevolent, and that sin must
be punished. Therefore faith must contain the recognition of the
justice of the Divine law against sin, manifested in the death of
Christ. Faith, in short, starts from the longing for a representative
to atone for us, and it ends with the recognition of Christ as our
representative, of His Atonement as sufficient, and of His death as
displaying the due reward of sin. For the Atonement cannot be
a mere external act. If Christ is our representative, He must be
1 On the truth of the solidarity of all men in Christ, see Westcott, The Vic-
tory of the Cross, pp 6-5^.
2 See, e, g., Moule, Outlines of Christian Doctrine, p. 185.
254 The Religion of the Incarnation.
acknowledged by those whom He represents ; otherwise His endur-
ance of suffering would avail nothing for them, for God will not be
satisfied with the mere infliction of punishment. But if the result
of His death is that men are brought, one by one, age after age, to
acknowledge the righteousness of the law for which He suffered,
to recognize the result of sin to which sin has blinded them, then
there has been made on their part the first step towards the great
reconciliation. Faith identifies the individual with the sacrifice
which has been offered for him, and therefore with Christ's attitude
towards God and towards sin, and though it it is but the first step,
yet it is emphatically that by reason of which we are justified. For
since we are thus identified with the sacrifice, God accepts the
first step for the whole course, of which it is the pledge and antici-
pation. We are justified because we believe in God, but also
because God believes in us. 1 Faith, being what it is, a complex
moral act whereby Christ's propitiation is accepted by man, implies
an attitude of mind towards sin so right that, though it is but the
first movement of the soul in Christ, God takes it for the whole,
sees us as wholly in Him, reckons it to us as righteousness. But
only because it is as a matter of fact the first, the hardest, perhaps,
and the most necessary, but still only the first step towards com-
plete sanctification. And if we now ask what is the further course
of sanctification, the answer will show the full relation of the sac-
rifice of Christ to man's will and conscience. For the life of sanc-
tification is nothing else but the ' imitation of Christ ' in that task
of ' learning obedience ' to which His life was devoted, and which
His death completed. In us too, as in Him, that task has to be
accomplished by suffering. ' He learnt obedience by the things
which He suffered.' ' It became Him ... in bringing many sons
unto glory, to make the Captain of their salvation perfect through
sufferings.' That same path towards perfection lies before all who
are justified by faith in His atoning sacrifice. For justification is
a spiritual act answering to the spiritual act of faith. The spiritual
germ of vitality thus implanted in us has to be developed in the
sphere in which the consequences of sin naturally and inevitably
work themselves out, in the bodily nature of man. ' Even we,' says
St. Paul, ' which have the first-fruits of the Spirit,' even we are
waiting for the further process, for ' the adoption, to wit the
redemption, of our body.' And the process consists in so following
' the Captain of our salvation ' that, like Him, we accept every one
1 Cf. Aug., de Trin., i. 10 : 'Tales nos amat Deus, quales futuri sumus,
no:i quales sumus.'
vii. The Atonement. 255
of those sufferings which are the consequences of sin, but accept
them not as punishment imposed from without upon unwilling
offenders, but as the material of our free-will sacrifice. From no
one pang or trial of our nature has He delivered us, indeed He
has rather laid them upon us more unsparingly, more inevitably.
But the sufferings from which He would not deliver us, He has
transformed for us. They are no longer penal, but remedial and
penitential. Pain has become the chastisement of a Father Who
loves us, and death the passage into His very presence. And this
He has done for us by the bestowal upon us of spiritual vitality.
The germ is implanted by the act of forgiveness which removes the
wrath and the impending death, and this germ of life, cherished
and developed by the gifts which flow from His mediation and
intercession, by the Holy Spirit Whom He sends to dwell in us,
works on all the penalties of sin, and makes them the sacrifice
which we offer in Him. This is the ' law of the Spirit of life.' ' If
Christ be in you, the body is dead because of sin ; but the Spirit is
life, because of righteousness. But if the Spirit of Him that raised
up jesus from the dead dwell in you, He that raised up Christ from
the dead shall also quicken your mortal bodies by His Spirit that
dwelleth in you.'
Our personal share, then, in the Atonement is not mere passiv-
ity. It consists, first, in the acceptance of God's forgiveness in
Christ, our self-identification with Christ's atoning attitude, and
then in working out, by the power of the life bestowed upon us, all
the consequences of forgiveness, the transformation of punishment
into sacrifice, the imitation of Christ in His perfect obedience to
the law of righteousness, the gradual sanctification of body, soul,
and spirit, by the grace which enables us to ' suffer with Him.'
,111. The doctrine of Atonement, more than any of the great
truths of Christianity, has been misconceived and misrepresented,
and has therefore not only been rejected itself, but has sometimes
been the cause of the rejection of the whole Christian system.
The truth of the vicarious sacrifice has been isolated till it has
almost become untrue, and, mysterious as it undoubtedly is, it
has been so stated as to be not only mysterious, but contrary to
reason and even to conscience. One most terrible misconception
it is hardly necessary to do more than mention. The truth of the
wrath of God against sin and of the love of Christ by which that
wrath was removed, has been perverted into a belief in a diver-
gence of will between God the Father and God the Son, as if it
was the Father's will that sinners should perish, the Son's will that
they should be saved ; as if the Atonement consisted in the pro-
256 The Religion of the Incarnation.
pitiation of the wrathful God by the substituted punishment of the
innocent for the guilty. It will be seen that while this statement
seems to represent the Catholic doctrine, in reality it introduces
a most vital difference. There can be no divergence of will
between the Persons of the Blessed Trinity ; and, in regard to
this special dealing with man, we have the clearest testimony of
Revelation that the whole Godhead shared in the work. Here,
as always, God the Father is revealed as the source and origin of
all good. ' God so loved the world that He gave His only begot-
ten Son, that whosoever believeth in Him should not perish, but
have everlasting life.' ' God was in Christ reconciling the world
to Himself.' The beginning and the end of the Atonement is the
love of God : the death of Christ was not the cause, but the reve-
lation of that love. 1 That it was the second Person of the Trinity
who was actually the means of our redemption may be ascribed
to that original relation of the Logos to the human race, by which
He was both its Creator and its perfect exemplar. 2 But nothing
can be farther from the truth than to imagine that His was all the
love which saved us, the Father's all the wrath which condemned
us. If the death of Christ was necessary to propitiate the wrath
of the Father, it was necessary to propitiate His own wrath also ;
if it manifested His love, it manifested the Father's love also.
The absolute, unbroken unity of will between the Father and the
Son is the secret of the atoning sacrifice.
Again, the isolation of the truth of the Atonement from other
parts of Christian doctrine has led to a mode of stating it which
deprives us of all motive to action, of all responsibility for our own
salvation. Just as .the misconception noticed above arose from a
failure to grasp the whole truth of our Lord's Divinity, so this
error springs from ignoring His perfect Humanity. Christ _ is
regarded as having no vital or real relation to us, and His work
is therefore wholly external, a mere gift from above. But what
has already been said will show that from the first the Atonement
has been taught as the offering of our spiritual Head, in Whom
we are redeemed, and whose example we are able to follow as
having Him in us. Salvation is thus given to us indeed, but it
is given to us because we are in Christ, and we have to work out
our share in it because of the responsibility, the call to sacrifice,
1 This is well stated by McLeod Campbell, 1. c., p. 16.
2 Cf. Athan., de Inc., passim, esp. chs. 20 and 42 Hooker, Eccles. Pol.,
V. li. 3 : ' It seemeth a thing unconsonant that the world should honor any
other as the Saviour but Him Whom it honoreth as the Creator of the
world.'
vii. The Atonement. 257
which that union with Him lays upon us. ' Work out your own
salvation with fear and trembling, for it is God which worketh in
you both to will and to do.' It is all from God and of God ; but
God has come into our life, and taken us up into Him, and called
upon us to follow Him in the way of the cross.
And this leads us to consider another error, or rather another
form of the same error. Nothing is more common than to hear
the doctrine of Atonement stated as if the work of Christ consisted
in His endurance of our punishment in order that we might not
endure it. This view of the doctrine leads to the objections —
perhaps the commonest of all the difficulties found in what men
take for Christianity — that the punishment of the innocent instead
of the guilty is unjust, and that punishment cannot be borne by
any one but the sinner. We have seen that the real vicariousness
of our Lord's work lay in the offering of the perfect sacrifice : the
theory we are now considering holds, on the contrary, that it lay
in the substitution of His punishment for ours. A partial truth is
contained in this theory ; for our Lord did endure sufferings, and,
as has been already said, the)'- were the very sufferings which are,
in sinners, the penalties of sin. But as a simple matter of fact
and experience, the sufferings and the pains of death which He
endured have not been remitted to us ; and that which is rdi ; tted,
the eternal penalty of alienation from God, was not, could nG be
endured by Him. For alienation from God is, essentially, a st.\te
of sin ; it is sin, regarded both in its origin and in its necessary
result. It could not, therefore, be borne by Christ, 'in Whom
was no sin,' between Whom and the Father was no alienation.
Attempts have been made to establish a quantitative relation
between our Lord's sufferings and the punishment which is thereby
remitted to us, to prove that the eternal nature of the Sufferer
made His death equivalent to eternal punishment. But even if
such attempts, in so mysterious a region, could succeed, it would
be vain to establish a quantitative equivalence where there is no
qualitative relation. Eternal punishment is ' eternal sin,' 1 and as
such could never be endured by the sinless Son of God.
But we have to face the question which naturally follows.
What, then, did His sufferings and death mean ? Why did He
endure what are to us the temporal penalties, the diverse conse-
quences of sin? And if He endured them, why are they not
remitted to us? It is true, as has been shown, that He bore just
those sufferings which are the results and penalties of sin, even to
1 Cf. the true reading of St. Mark lii. 29, R. V.
17
258 The Religion of the Incarnation.
that tremendous final experience in which man loses sight of God
as he enters the valley of the shadow of death ; but He bore them,
not that we might be freed from them, for we have deserved them,
but that we might be enabled to bear them, as He did, victoriously
and in unbroken union with God. He, the Innocent, suffered,
but the guilty do not ' go free ; ' for the very end and object of
all the obedience that He learnt was, that He might lead man
along the same path of suffering, not ' free,' but gladly submissive
to the pains, which, but for Him, would be the overwhelming
penalties of our sins. It may be true that ' punishment cannot
be borne by any one but the sinner,' 1 and therefore it may be right
not to call Christ's sufferings punishment, especially as the expres-
sion is significantly avoided in the New Testament. But it is
certainly not true that the sufferings which result from sin cannot
be borne by any one but the sinner : every day demonstrates the
falsity of such an assertion. Sufferings borne in the wrong spirit,
unsubmissively or without recognition of their justice, are penal ;
but the spirit of humility and obedience makes them remedial and
purgatorial. Christ, by so bearing the pains which sin brought
upon human nature, and which the special sin of His enemies
heaped upon Him, has not only offered the one perfect sacrifice,
but has also given us strength to make the same submission, to
learn the same obedience, and to share the same sacrifice.
IV. There are many topics connected with the Atonement
which it is impossible here to discuss, but which seem to fall into
their right place and proportion if those aspects of Christ's redeem-
ing work which have been dwelt upon are kept firmly in mind.
The central mystery of the cross, the forgiveness, the removal of
wrath, thereby freely bestowed upon us, remains a mystery, and
must always be an insuperable difficulty to those who depend
wholly on reason, or who trust wholly in man's power to extricate
himself from the destruction wrought by his sin, as it was an
offence to the Jew, and foolishness to the Greek. But mystery
though it is to the intellect, there is a moral fitness 2 in the bestowal
of forgiveness because of the obedience of Christ shown in His
sacrificial death, which appeals irresistibly to the moral conscious-
ness of mankind. The witness of this is the trustful gratitude with
which the doctrine of Christ crucified has been accepted by
1 W. R. Greg.
2 It should be noticed that the Greek Fathers and the English divines for
the most part confine themselves to showing this moral fitness and conso-
nance with God's moral nature in the Atonement, and do not attempt to
prove its absolute necessity. Cf. Athanasius, de Incarn. Verbi, ch. 6 ;
Hooker, Eccles. Pol., V. li. 3; Butler, Analogy, pt. ii. c. 5.
vii. The Atonement. 259
Christians, learned and unlearned, from the age of its first preach-
ing. The human heart accepts it, and by the cross is assured of
forgiveness : * to them which are called ' it is ' Christ the power of
God, and the wisdom of God.'
But if we may appeal to experience in support of this mysterious
truth, much more may we claim the same support for the plainer,
more human aspect of the Atonement. As St. Athanasius in his
day, 1 so we in ours may appeal for the practical and visible proof
of the Atonement, to the complete change in man's relation to
sorrow and suffering, and in the Christian view of death. 2 This is
no small matter. When we realize what suffering is in human life,
the vast place which it has in our experience, its power of absorbing
the mind, its culmination in the final pangs of death, and when we
see the transformation, however gradual and imperfect it may be,
of all this into the means and material of the sacrifice which the
follower of Christ is gladly willing to offer to the Father of our Lord
Jesus Christ, we realize the full force of the great words telling of
the destruction 'through death of him that had the power of death,
that is the devil,' and of the deliverance of ' them who through fear
of death were all their lifetime subject to bondage.' And the trans-
formation, the destruction, the deliverance, consist in this, that from
these sufferings His sacrifice has removed the element of rebellion,
the hopelessness of alienation, the sting of sin. They are ours,
because they were His ; but they are ours as they were His, purified
and perfected by obedience, by the offering of a holy Will ; ' by the
which Will we are sanctified through the offering of the body of
Jesus Christ once for all.'
1 Cf. De Incarn. Verbi, chs. 27, 28, 29.
2 Cf. Carlyle's apostrophe to Marie Antoinette on her way to the scaffold :
'Think of Him Whom thou worshippest, the Crucified, — Who also treading
the winepress alone, fronted sorrow still deeper ; and triumphed over it, and
made it Holy, and built of it a " Sanctuary of Sorrow " for thee and all the
wretched.' — Miscellaneous Essays , vol. v. p. 165 (ed. 1872).
VIII.
THE HOLY SPIRIT AND INSPIRATION.
CHARLES GORE.
VIII.
THE HOLY SPIRIT AND INSPIRATION.
I. The appeal to ' experience ' in religion, whether personal or
genera], brings before the mind so many associations of ungoverned
enthusiasm and untrustworthy fanaticism that it does not easily
commend itself to those of us who are most concerned to be reas-
onable. And yet, in one form or another, it is an essential part
of the appeal which Christianity makes on its own behalf since the
day when Jesus Christ met the question, ' Art thou He that should
come, or do we look for another? ' by pointing to the transforming
effect of His work : ' The blind receive their sight, and the lame
walk ; the lepers are cleansed, and the deaf hear ; the dead are
raised up, and the poor have the Gospel preached to them.'
The fact is that in current appeals to experience the fault, where
there is a fault, lies not in the appeal but in the nature of the
experience appealed to. What is meant by the term is often an
excited state of feeling, rather than a permanent transformation of
the whole moral, intellectual, and physical being of man. Or it
is something which seems individual and eccentric, or something
confined to a particular class of persons under special conditions
of education or of ignorance, or something which other religions
besides Christianity have been conspicuous for producing. When
a meaning broad and full, and at the same time exact enough,
has been given to experience, the appeal is essential to Chris-
tianity, because Christianity professes to be not a mere record of
the past, but a present life, and there is no life where there is no
experience.
It will be worth while, then, to bear in mind how freely the
original defenders of the Christian Church appealed, like their
Master, to facts of experience. Thus we find an individual, like
St. Cyprian, recalling the time of his baptism, and the personal
experience of illumination and power which it brought with it :
' Such were my frequent musings : for whereas I was encumbered
with the many sins of my past life, which it seemed impossible to
264 The Religion of the Incarnation.
be rid of, so I had used myself to give way to my clinging infirm-
ities, and, from despair of better things, to humor the evils of my
heart, as slaves born in my house, and my proper offspring. But
after that life-giving water succored me, washing away the stain
of former years, and pouring into my cleansed and hallowed breast
the light which comes from heaven, after that I drank in the
Heavenly Spirit, and was created into a new man by a second
birth, — then marvellously what before was doubtful became plain
to me, what was hidden was revealed, what was dark began to
shine, what was before difficult now had a way and a means, what
had seemed impossible now could be achieved, what was in me of
the guilty flesh now confessed that it was earthy, what was quickened
in me by the Holy Ghost now had a growth according to God.' *
Again, we find an apologist like St. Athanasius resting the stress
of his argument on behalf of Christ upon what He has done in the
world, and specially on the spiritual force He exercises on masses
of men, ' drawing them to religion, persuading them to virtue,
teaching them immortality, leading them to the desire of heavenly
things, revealing the knowledge of the Father, inspiring power over
death, showing each man to himself, abolishing the godlessness of
idolatry.' 2
The Fathers of the Christian Church appealed in this way to
experience, because Christianity, as they knew, is essentially not a
past event, but a present life, a life first manifested in Christ, and
then perpetuated in His Church. Christianity is a manifested life,
— a thing, therefore, like all other forms of life, known not in itself,
but in its effects, its fruits, its results. Christianity is a manifested
life, and it is this because it is the sphere in which the Spirit, the
Life-giver, finds His freest and most unhindered activity. The
Christian Church is the scene of the intensest, the most vigorous,
the richest, the most ' abundant ' life that the universe knows,
because in a pre-eminent sense it is the ' Spirit-bearing body.' The
Spirit is life ; that is His chief characteristic. We may indeed eluci-
date the idea of spirit by negations ; by negation of materiality, of
circumscription, of limitation : but the positive conception we are
to attach to spirit is the conception of life ; and where life is most
penetrating, profound, invincible, rational, conscious of God, there
in fullest freedom of operation is the Holy Spirit. 3
1 Cyprian, ad Donatum, 3. Trans, in Library of the Fathers, iii. 3.
2 Athanasius, de Incarnatione, 31, 48-52.
3 See St. Basil's fine definition of the term in his treatise On the Holy
Spirit, ix. 22. This treatise has been translated by the Rev. G. Lewis for
the Religious Tract Society.
viii. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 265
Thus, obviously enough, the doctrine of the Spirit is no remote
or esoteric thing ; it is no mere ultimate object of the rapt con-
templation of the mystic ; it is the doctrine of that wherein God
touches man most nearly, most familiarly, in common life. Last in
the eternal order of the Divine Being, ' proceeding from the Father
and the Son/ the Holy Spirit is the first point of contact with God
in the order of human experience. 1
' I believe in the Holy Ghost, the giver of life.' All life is His
operation. ' Wherever the Holy Spirit is, there is also life ; and
wherever life is, there is also the Holy Spirit.' 2 Thus if creation
takes its rise in the will of the Father, if it finds its law in the being
of the Word or Son, yet the effective instrument of creation, the
'finger of God,' the moving principle of vitalization is the Holy
Spirit, 'the divider and distributor of the gifts of life.' 3
Nature is one great body, and there is breath in the body ; but
this breath is not self-originated life, it is the influence of the
Divine Spirit. ' By the word of the Lord were the heavens made,
and all the host of them by the breath of His mouth.' The Spirit,
the breath of God, was brooding upon the face of the waters of
chaos ere life and order were. It is the sending forth of the breath
of God, which is the giving to things of the gift of life ; it is the
withdrawal of that breath which is their annihilation. 4 So keenly,
indeed, were the Christians of the early period conscious of the one
life of nature as the universal evidence of the one Spirit, that it
was a point of the charge against Origen that his language seemed
to involve an exclusion of the Holy Spirit from nature, and a limi-
tation of His activity to the Church. 5 The whole of life is certainly
His. And yet, because His special attribute is holiness, it is in
rational natures, which alone are capable of holiness, that He exerts
1 See Basil, as above, xvi. yj : ' We must not suppose because the Apostle
(1 Cor. xii. 4) mentions the Spirit first, and the Son second, and God the
Father third, that the order at the present day has been quite reversed. For
he made his beginning from our end of the relation: for it is by receiving
the gifts that we come in contact with the Distributor ; then we come to con-
sider the Sender ; then we carry back our thought to the Fount and Cause
of the good things/ Cf. xviii. 47 : 'The way of the knowledge of God is
from one Spirit, by the one Son, to the one Father ; and reversely, the nat-
ural goodness of God, His holiness of nature, His royal rank taking their
rise from the Father, reach the Spirit though the Only- begotten.'
2 Ambrose, de Spiritu Sancto, i. 15, 172.
3 So irenaeus, Cyril of Jerusalem, Athanasius, Basil, Didymus, Victori-
nus, express the relation of the Divine Persons in Creation.
4 Ps. xxxiii. 6 ; Gen. i. 2 ; Ps. civ. 29, 30.
5 Huet. Origeniana, L. ii., Qu. i. 2, c. xxvii. Cf. Athan., Epp. ad Seiapion.,
i. 23-31 ; iv. 9-12.
266 The Religion of the Incarnate
071.
His special influence. A special in-breathing of the Divine Spirit
gave to man his proper being. 1 In humanity, made after the
Divine Image, it was the original intention of God that the Spirit
should find His chiefest joy, building the edifice of a social life in
which nature was to find its crown and justification ; a life of con-
scious and free sonship, in which the gifts of God should be not
only received, but recognized as His, and consciously used in will-
ing and glad homage to the Divine Giver, in reverent execution of
the. law of development impressed by the Divine Reason, in the
realized fellowship of the Blessed Spirit of knowledge and love.
The history of humanity has in fact been a development, but a
development the continuity of which is most apparent in that
department in which man appears simply as the child of nature,
the most perfect and interesting of her products, consciously adapt-
ing himself to his environment and moulded by it. This indeed
has been so much the case that the facts of the history of civiliza-
tion have been used, at least plausibly, as an argument against our
race really possessing moral freedom at all. Such a use of the facts
is, we recognize, not justifiable. It leaves out of consideration
some of the most striking elements in human history, and some of
the most certain facts of human consciousness. But the very
plausibleness of the argument is suggestive. It means that com-
paratively very few men have been at pains to realize their true
freedom ; that men in masses have been dominated by the mere
forces of nature ; or, in other words, that human history presents
broadly the record of a one-sided, a distorted development. For
man was not meant for merely natural evolution, mere self-adapta-
tion to the ' things that are seen.' The consciousness that he was
meant for something higher has tinged his most brilliant physical
successes, his greatest triumphs of civilization and art, with the bit-
terness of remorse, the misery of conscious lawlessness.
Our race was created for conscious fellowship with God, for son-
ship, for the life of spirit. And it is just in this department that its
failure has been most conspicuous. It is here that the Divine
Spirit has found His chiefest disappointment. Everywhere He has
found rebellion, — not everywhere without exception, for ' in every
age entering into holy souls, He has made them sons of God and
prophets ; ' but everywhere in such a general sense that sin in fact
and in its consequences covers the whole region of humanity. In
the highest department of created life, where alone lawlessness was
possible, because what was asked for was the co-operation of free
1 Gen. ii. 7.
viii. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 267
service to carry out a freely accepted ideal, 1 — there alone is the
record of lawlessness, the record of the Spirit striving with man,
but resisted, rejected, ignored, quenched. Thus the word, which
in fact most forcibly characterizes man's spiritual history, so far as
it has been according to the mind of God, is not progress, but
recovery, or redemption. It is not natural, but supernatural, —
supernatural, that is, in view of the false nature which man made
for himself by excluding God. Otherwise the work of redemption
is only the reconstitution of the nature which God designed. It ib j
the recovery within the limits of a chosen race and by a deliberate
process of limitation, of a state of things which had been intended
to be universal 2 The ' elect ' represent not the special purpose of
God for a few, but the universal purpose which under the circum-
stances can only be realized through a few. The hedging in of
the few, the drawing of the lines so close, the method of exclusion
again and again renewed all down the history of redemption, repre-
sents the love of the Divine Spirit ever baffled in the mass, pre-
serving the truth of God in a 'remnant,' an elect body; who
themselves escaping the corruption which is in the world, become
in their turn a fresh centre from which the restorative influence can
flow out upon mankind. Rejected in the world, He secures for
Himself a sphere of operations in the Jews, isolating Abraham,
giving the law for a hedge, keeping alive in the nation the sense of
its vocation by the inspiration of prophets. Again and again
baffled in the body of the Jewish nation, He falls back upon the
faithful remnant, and keeps alive in them that prospective sonship
which was meant to be the vocation of the whole nation ; some-
times in narrower, sometimes in broader channels, the purpose of
love moves on till the Spirit finds in the Son of Man, the Anointed
One, the perfect realization of the destiny of man, the manhood in
which He can freely and fully work : ' He came down upon the Son
of God, made son of man, accustoming Himself in His case to
dwell in the human race, and to repose in man, and to dwell in
God's creatures, working out in them the will of the Father, and
recovering them from their old nature into the newness of Christ' 3
In Christ humanity is perfect, because in Him it retains no part of
that false independence which, in all its manifold forms, is the
secret of sin. In Christ humanity is perfect and complete, in
ungrudging and unimpaired obedience to the movement of the
Divine Spirit, Whose creation it was, Whose organ it gave itself to
1 Athan., de Incarn., xliii, 3. 2 Athan., 1. c, xliii. 4.
3 Iren., c. Haer., iii. 17, 1.
268 The Religion of the Incarnation.
be. The Spirit anoints Him ; the Spirit drives Him in to the wil-
derness ; the Spirit gives Him the law of His mission ; in the
power of the Spirit He works His miracles ; in the Holy Spirit He
lifts up the voice of human thankfulness to the Divine Father ; in
the Spirit He offers Himself without spot to God ; in the power of
the Spirit He is raised from the dead. 1 All that perfect human life
had been a life of obedience, of progressive obedience, a gradual
learning in each stage of experience what obedience meant ; 2 it had
been a life of obedience which became propitiatory as it bore loy-
ally, submissively, lovingly, all the heritage of pain and misery in
which sin in its long history had involved our manhood, all the
agony of that insult and rejection in which sin revealed itself by
antagonism to Him, — bore it, and by bearing it turned it into the
material of His accepted sacrifice. He was obedient unto death.
And because He thus made our human nature the organ of a life
of perfect obedience, therefore He can go on to make that same
humanity, freed from all the limitations of this lower world and
glorified in the Spirit at the right hand of God, at once the organ
of Divine supremacy over the universe of created things, and
(itself become quickening Spirit) 3 the fount to all the sons of
obedience and faith of its own life. Christ is the second Adam,
who having ' recapitulated the long development of humanity into
Himself/ 4 taken it up into Himself, that is, and healed its wounds
and fructified its barrenness, gives it a fresh start by a new birth
from Him. The Spirit coming forth at Pentecost out of His
uplifted manhood, as from a glorious fountain of new life, 5 perpet-
uates all its richness, its power, its fulness in the organized society
which He prepared and built for the Spirit's habitation. The
Church, His Spirit-bearing body, comes forth into the world, not
as the exclusive sphere of the Spirit's operations, for ' that breath
bloweth where it listeth ; ' 6 but as the special and covenanted
sphere of His regular and uniform operation, the place where He
is pledged to dwell and to work ; the centre marked out and
hedged in, whence ever and again proceeds forth anew the work
1 St. Mark i. 10, 12. St. Luke iv. 1, 18 ; x. 21. St. Matt. xii. 28. Heb.
ix. 14. Rom. viii. 11. (These two last passages at least imply the action of
the Holy Spirit in the Sacrifice and Resurrection of Christ.)
2 Heb. v. 7-10. Phil. ii. 8.
3 1 Cor. xv. 45, ' The last Adam became a life-giving Spirit.' St. John vi.
63, ' Spirit and Life.'
4 Iren., iii. 18, 1, and frequently elsewhere.
5 Iren., iii. 24, 1.
6 St. John iii. 4. The intention of this passage is to express not that the
Spirit is lawless in His operations, but that He is beyond our control.
viii. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 269
of human recovery ; the home where, in spite of sin and imper-
fection, is ever kept alive the picture of what the Christian life is,
that is, of what common human life is meant to be and can
become.
Of the work of the Holy Spirit in the Church we may note four
characteristics.
1. It is social. It treats man as a ' social being' who cannot
realize himself in isolation. For no other reason than because
grace is the restoration of nature, 1 the true, the redeemed humanity
is presented to us as a society or Church. This is apparent with
reference to either of the gifts which summarize the essence of the
Church's life, grace, or truth. Sacraments are the ordained instru-
ments of grace, and sacraments are in one of their aspects social
ceremonies — of incorporation, or restoration, or bestowal of au-
thority, or fraternal sharing of the bread of life. They presuppose
a social organization. Those who have attempted to explain why
there should be in the Church an Apostolic succession of ministers,
have seen the grounds of such appointment in the necessity for
preserving in a catholic society, which lacks the natural links of
race or language or common habitation, a visible and obligatory
bond of association. 2
The same fact appears in reference to the truth, the knowledge
of God and of the true nature and needs of man, which constitutes
one main part of the Christian life. That too is no mere individual
illumination. It is 'a rule of faith,' an l apostolic tradition,' 'a
pattern of sound words,' embodied in Holy Scripture and perpetu-
ated in a teaching Church, within the scope of which each indi-
vidual is to be brought to have his mind and conscience fashioned
by it, normally from earliest years. It would be going beyond the
province of this essay to stop to prove that from the beginnings of
the Christian life, a man was understood to become a Christian and
receive the benefits of redemption, by no other means than incor-
poration into the Christian society.
2. But none the less on account of this social method the Spirit
nourishes individuality. The very idea of the Spirit's gift is that of
an intenser life. Intenser life is more individualized life, for our
life becomes richer and fuller only by the intensification of perso-
nality and character. Thus Christianity has always trusted to
strongly marked character as the means by which religion is propa-
gated. It does not advance as an abstract doctrine, but by the
1 Aug., de Spiritu et Littera, xxvii. 47, ' Grace is not the negation of
nature, but its restoration.'
2 Raymund of Sabunde, Theol. Nat., tit. 303.
270 The Religion of the Incarnation.
subtle, penetrating influences of personality. It is the illuminated
man who becomes a centre of illumination. ' As clear transparent
bodies if a ray of light fall on them become radiant themselves and
diffuse their splendor all around, so souls illuminated by the in-
dwelling Spirit are rendered spiritual themselves and impart their
grace to others.' x Thus, from the first, Christianity has tended to
intensify individual life in a thousand ways, and has gloried in the
varieties of disposition and character which the full life of the Spirit
develops. The Church expects to see the same variety of life in
herself as she witnesses in Nature.
' One and the same rain,' says St. Cyril of Jerusalem to his cate-
chumens, ' comes down upon all the world, yet it becomes white in
the lily, and red in the rose, and purple in the violets and pansies,
and different and various in all the several kinds ; it is one thing in
the palm-tree, and another in the vine, and all in all things. In
itself, indeed, it is uniform and changes not, but by adapting itself
to the nature of each thing that receives it, it becomes what is ap-
propriate to each. Thus also the Holy Ghost, one and uniform
and undivided in Himself, distributes His grace to every man as
He wills. He employs the tongue of one man for wisdom ; the soul
of another He enlightens by prophecy ; to another He gives power
to drive away devils ; to another He gives to interpret the Divine
Scriptures ; He invigorates one man's self-command ; He teaches
another the way to give alms ; another He teaches to fast and train
himself; another He trains for martyrdom ; diverse to different men,
yet not diverse from Himself.' 2
Nor was this belief in the differences of the Spirit's work a mere
abstract theory. In fact the Church life of the early centuries did
present an aspect of great variety : not only in the dispositions of
individuals, for that will always be observable where human nature
is allowed to subsist, but in the types of life and thought cultivated
in different parts of the Church. Early in the life of Christianity
did something like the Roman type of Catholicism show itself, but
it showed itself as one among several types of ecclesiasticism, easily
distinguishable from what Alexandria or Africa or Antioch nour-
ished and produced.
And what is true in the life of religion as a whole is true in the
1 Basil, de Spiritu Sancto, ix. 23 (Lewis' translation). Cf. Newman's
Univ. Sermons, ' Personal Influence the means of propagating the truth.'
2 Cyril, Catech., xvi. 12. The attention to the differences of individual
character is very noticeable in St. Basil's monastic rule ; see the Regulae
fusius tractatse, resp. 19, and the Constit. Monast., 4. Also in the writings
of Gregory of Nazianzus, Chrysostom, and Gregory the Great on the Pastoral
Office.
viii. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 271
department of the intellect. Here again the authority of the col-
lective society, the 'rule of faith' is meant to nourish and quicken,
not to crush, individuality. Each individual Christian owes the
profoundest ' deference to the common tradition. Thus to ' keep
the traditions' is at all times, and not least in Scripture, a common
Christian exhortation. But this common tradition is not meant to
be a merely external law. It is meant to pass by the ordinary pro-
cesses of education into the individual consciousness, and there,
because it represents truth, to impart freedom. Thus St. Paul
speaks of the developed Christian, ' the man who is spiritual,' as
'judging all things and himself judged of none.' And St. John
makes the ground of Christian certainty to lie not in an external
authority, but in a personal gift : ' ye have an unction from the
Holy One, and ye know all things; ' ' ye need not that any one
teach you.' 1 There is then an individual ' inspiration,' 2 as well as
an inspiration of the whole body, only this inspiration is not barely
individual or separatist. As it proceeds out of the society, so it
ends in it. It ends by making each person more individualized,
more developed in personal characteristics, but for that very reason
more conscious of his own incompleteness, more ready to recognize
himself as only one member of the perfect Manhood.
The idea of authority is in fact a perfectly simple one. It never
received better expression than by Plato when he describes it as
the function of the society by a carefully regulated education to
implant right instincts, right affections and antipathies, in the grow-
ing mind of the child, at a time when he cannot know the reason
of things ; in order that as the mind develops it may recognize
the right reason of things by a certain inner kinship, and welcome
truth as a friend. 3 Authority, according to such a view of it, is a
necessary schooling of the individual temperament. Thus, we are
told that in the judgment of the philosopher Hegel, 'The basis
of sound education was . . . the submission of the mind to an
external lesson, which must be learnt by every one, and even
learnt by rote, with utter disregard of individual tastes and desires ;
only out of this self-abnegation, and submission to be guided and
taught, could any originality spring which was worth preserving.' 4
In fact, we all recognize the necessity for such external discipline
in all departments. Few people like good art, for instance, at
first. Probably they are attracted by what is weak but arrests
1 1 Cor. ii. 15. 1 St. John ii. 20-27.
2 Clement Alex., Strom., v. 13, 88.
3 Republic, 401 D, 402 A.
4 Caird's Hegel (Blackwood's Philosophical Classics), p. 72.
272 The Religion of the Incarnation.
attention by obvious and superficial merits. The standards which
artistic authority has erected, the accepted canons of good taste
and judgment, do not commend themselves at first as right or
natural. But modest and well-disposed people take it for granted
at starting that the orthodox judgment will turn out to be right ;
and they set themselves to school to learn why the artists and
poets of great name are great, till their own judgment becomes
enlightened, and they understand what at first they took on trust.
It' was the instinctive perception of this function of authority which,
made the Church insist so much on the principle 'credo ut intel-
ligam.' The Creed represents the catholic judgment, the highest
knowledge of God and the spiritual life granted to man by the
Divine Revelation. Let a man put himself to school in the Church
with reverence and godly fear, and his own judgment will become
enlightened. He will come to say, with St. Anselm, ' I give Thee
thanks, good Lord ; because what first I believed by Thy gift, I
now understand by Thy illumination.' x
Such an idea of authority leaves much for the individual to do.
It is the reaction of the individual on the society which is to keep
the common tradition pure and unnarrowed. The Church has in
Holy Scripture the highest expression of the mind of Christ. The
familiarity of all its members with this flawless and catholic image
is to ward off in each generation that tendency to deteriorate and
to become materialized which belongs to all 'traditions.' The
individual illumination is thus to react as a purifying force upon the
common mind of the Christian society. The individual Christian
is to pay the debt of his education, by himself ' testing all things,
and holding fast that which is good.' Specially gifted individuals
from time to time will be needed to effect more or less sudden
' reversions to type,' to the undying type of Apostolic teaching. 2
But such a true reformer is quite distinct in idea from the heretic.
He reforms ; he does not innovate. His note is to restore ; not
1 Anselm, Proslog., 4 ; he adds : ' So that even if I were unwilling to
believe that Thou art, I could not cease to understand it.' But the whole
relation of authority and reason is most completely grasped and stated by
St. Augustine; see Cunningham, St. Austin (Cambridge Univ. Press, 1886),
pp. 9, 157 ff.
2 Dr. Salmon, Infallibility, p. 115, has a clever comparison of the authority
of the Church to that of the town clock. The value we assign to having such
an authoritative standard of the right time does not prevent our recognizing
the importance of having it regulated. ' And if we desired to remove an
error which had accumulated during a long season of neglect, it would be
very unfair to represent us as wishing to silence the clock, or else as wish-
ing to allow every townsman to get up and push the hands backwards and
forwards as he pleased.'
viii. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 273
to reject. And the absence of necessity for fundamental rejection
comes from this simple fact, that the Christian Creed is rational
and true. If any man comes to us and says that he has studied
and assimilated the Christian Creed with all the care and reverence
in his ability, and has rejected it because he finds it irrational and
false, we cannot complain of him. 1 We cannot ask him to accept
it though he thinks it false. We do not at all complain of his
having inquired and thought freely — only we venture to assure
him, with a confidence which can hardly fail to be irritating,
because it is confident, that he is mistaken, that he has thought
not only freely, but erroneously. When Christianity adopts, as in
the modern Romanist system, a different tone, proscribing free
inquiry as 'rationalistic,' and making the appeal to antiquity a
' treason and a heresy,' 2 it is abjuring its own rational heritage, and
adopting a method which Charles Kingsley had good reason to
call Manichsean. It is the test of the Church's legitimate tenure
that she can encourage free inquiry into her title-deeds.
3. Thirdly, the Spirit claims for His own, and consecrates the
whole of nature. One Spirit was the original author of all that is ;
and all that exists is in its essence very good. It is only sin which
has produced the appearance of antagonism between the Divine .
operation and human freedom, or between the spiritual and the
material. Thus the humanity of Christ, which is the Spirit's per-
fect work, exhibits in its perfection how every faculty of human
nature, spiritual and physical, is enriched and vitalized, not annihi-
lated, by the closest conceivable interaction of the Divine Energy.
This principle as carried out in the Church, occupies a prominent
place in the earliest theology ; in part because Montanism, with its
pagan idea of inspiration, as an ecstasy which deprived its subject
of reason, gave the Church an opportunity of emphasizing that
the fullest action of the Spirit, in the case of her inspired men,
intensified and did not supersede their own thought, judgment, and
individuality ; still more because Gnostic dualism, turning every
antithesis of nature and grace, of spirit and flesh, of natural and
supernatural, into an antagonism, forced upon the Church the
assertion of her own true and comprehensive Creed. That every-
thing in Christianity is realized ' in flesh as in spirit ' is the con-
stantly reiterated cry of St. Ignatius, who of all men was most
'spiritual.' That the spiritual is not the immaterial, that we
become spiritual not by any change or curtailment of nature; not
1 But cf. pp. 163-165, 19T-194, 214-216.
2 Manning, Temporal Mission of the Holv Ghost, third edit., pp. 9, 29,
238-240.
18
274 The Religion of the Incarnation.
by any depreciation or ignoring of the body, is the constantly
asserted principle of St. Irenseus. 1 And the earliest writers in
general emphasize the visible organization of the Church, and the
institution of external sacraments, as negations of the false prin-
ciple which would sunder nature from God, and repudiate the
unity of the material and the spiritual which the Word had been
made Flesh in order to reveal and to perpetuate.
4. But the unity of the spirit and the flesh, of faith and experi-
ence, of God and the world, is certainly not an accomplished fact.
On the contrary, dualism is always making appeals which strike
home to our present experience. Thus if the Church was to main-
tain the unity of all things, it could only be by laying great stress
upon the ravages which sin had wrought, and upon the gradual-
ness of the Spirit's method in recovery. The Old Testament, for
example, presented a most unspiritual appearance. Its material
sacrifices, its low standard of morals, its worldliness, were con-
stantly being objected to by the Gnostic and Manichsean sects,
who could not tolerate the Old Testament canon. ' But you are
ignoring,' the Church replied, ' the gradualness of the Spirit's
method.' He lifts man by little and little, He condescends to
man's infirmity ; He puts up with him as he is, if only He can at
the last bring him back to God.
It is of the essence of the New Testament, as the religion of
the Incarnation, to be final and catholic : on the other hand, it is
of the essence of the Old Testament to be imperfect, because it
represents a gradual process of education by which man was lifted
out of depths of sin and ignorance. That this is the case, and
that in consequence the justification of the Old Testament method
lies not in itself at any particular stage, but in its result taken as a
whole, is a thought very familiar to modern Christians. 2 But it is
important to make plain that it was a thought equally familiar to
1 See, for instance, c. Haer., v. 10, 2. ' The wild olive does not change its
substance [when it is grafted in, see Rom. xi. 17], but only the quality of
its fruit, and takes a new name, no longer being called an oleaster, but an
olive ; so also man when he is by faith grafted in, and receives the Spirit of
God, does not lose his fleshly substance, but changes the quality of the
works which are his fruits, and takes another name indicating his improved
condition, and is no longer described as flesh and blood, but as a spiritual
man.' So also v. 6, 1, 'whom the Apostle calls "spiritual" because they
have the Spirit, not because they have been robbed of the flesh and become
bare spirit.' It is the recognition of this principle that makes most of the
language of the Fathers on fasting so healthy and sensible. The end of
fasting is not to destroy the flesh, but to free the spirit.
2 See especially Mozley's Lectures on the Old Testament, x. : ' The end
the test of progressive revelation.'
vin. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 275
the Fathers of the Christian Church. Thus St. Gregory of Nazi-
anzus, speaking of God's dealings with the Jews of old, describes
how, in order to gain the co-operation of man's good will in work-
ing for his recovery, He dealt ' after the manner of a schoolmaster
or a physician, and while curtailing part of their ancestral customs,
tolerated the rest, making some concession to their tastes, just as
physicians make their medicines palatable that they may be taken
by their patients. For men do not easily abandon what long
custom has consecrated. Thus the first law, while it abolished
their idols, tolerated their sacrifices ; the second, while it abolished
their sacrifices, allowed them to be circumcised : then when once
they had accepted the removal of what was taken from them, they
went further and gave up what had been conceded to them, — in
the first case their sacrifices, in the second their practice of circum-
cision, — and they became instead of heathens, Jews, instead of
Jews, Christians, being betrayed as it were by gradual changes into
acceptance of the Gospel.' x Again, St. Chrysostom explains how
it is the very merit of the Old Testament that it has taught us to
think things intolerable, which under it were tolerated. ' Do not
ask,' he says, ' how these [Old Testament precepts] can be good,
now when the need for them is past : ask how they were good
when the period required them. Or rather, if you wish, do inquire
into their merit even now. It is still conspicuous, and lies in
nothing so much as what now enables us to find fault with them.
Their highest praise is that we now see them to be defective. If
they had not trained us well, so that we became susceptible of
higher things, we should not have now seen their deficiency.'
Then he shows how under the old law swearing by the true God
was allowed, to avoid swearing by idols, the worse ill. 'But is not
swearing at all of the evil one ? ' he asks. ' Undoubtedly, now,
after this long course of training, but then not. And how can the
same thing be good at one time, and bad at another? I ask rather,
how should it not be so, when we have regard to the plain teaching
of the fact of growth in all things, fruits of the earth or acquirements
of man ? Look at man's own nature ; the food, the occupations
which suit his infancy, are repulsive to his manhood. Or consider
facts of history. All agree that murder is an invention of Satan,
1 Greg. Naz., Orat. xxxi. 25. Many of the greatest of the ancient Christian
writers depreciate the sacrificial .law as a mere concession made to avoid
worse things, when the incident of the calf showed that the first legislation
of the Ten Commandments was too spiritual; so Jerome in Isai. i. 12, in
Jer. vii 21. Cf. Justin, Trypho, 19. Chrys., adv. Jud., iv. 6. Epiphan., Haer.,
lxvi. 71. Constt. ap., i. 6; vi. 20. This method of interpretation is perhaps
derived from the Epistle of Barnabas, 2-4.
276 The Religion of the Incarnation.
yet this very act at a suitable time made Phineas to be honored
with the high priesthood. Phineas' murder " was reckoned to him
for righteousness." Just in the same way Abraham obtained an
even higher honor for being not a murderer only, but what was
much worse, a child-murderer. We must not then look at the
facts in themselves only, but investigate with attention the period
also, the cause, the motive, the difference of persons, and all the
attendant circumstances : so only can one get at the truth.' *
Once more St. Basil : ' Surely it is absolutely infantile and worthy
of a child who must be really fed on milk, to be ignorant of the
great mystery of our salvation — that just as we received our
earliest instruction, so, in exercising unto godliness and going on
unto perfection, we were first trained by lessons easy to apprehend
and suited to our intelligence. He Who regulates our lives deals
with us as those who have been reared in darkness, and gradually
accustoms our eyes to the light of truth. For He spares our
weakness, and in the depth of the riches of His wisdom and the
unsearchable judgments of His understanding adopts this gentle
treatment, so well adapted to our needs, accustoming us first to
see the shadow of objects, and to look at the sun's reflection in
water, so that we may not be suddenly blinded by the exposure
to the pure light. By parity of reasoning, the law being a shadow
of things to come, and the typical teaching of the prophets, which
is the truth darkly, have been devised as exercises for the eyes of
the heart, inasmuch as it will be easy for us to pass from these to
wisdom hidden in mystery.' 2
In the same spirit was the Church's answer to the difficulties
which facts of personal experience were constantly putting in the
way of her claims. Churchmen were frequently seen to be vulgar,
ignorant, imperfect, sinful. If, in spite of manifold evils existing
within her, the Church could still appeal to her fruits, it must be
by comparison with what was to be found elsewhere, or by taking
in a large area for comparison, or by appealing to her special
grounds of hope. In fact, what she represented was a hope, not
a realization ; a tendency, not a result ; a life in process, not
a ripened fruit. But then she claimed that this was God's way.
' He loves us not as we are, but as we are becoming.' 3 Let but a
1 Chrys., in Matth., Homil. xvii. 5-6 (slightly abbreviated). Cf. Libell.
Faustin. et Marcellin., in Bibl. Vet. Patrum, torn. v. 657 d.
2 On the Holy Spirit, xiv. 33 (Lewis' trans).
3 Aug., de Trin., i. 10, 21. This principle alone gives a basis for the doc-
trine of ' imputation ' so far as it is true. God deals with us, e. g. in absolu-
tion, by anticipation of what is to come about in us, in Christ.
viii. The Holy Spirit and Inspiratio?i. 277
man once lay hold of the life-giving principle of faith, and God
sets a value on him, life has a promise for him, altogether out of
proportion to present attainments. For God estimates him, in
view of all the forces of a new life which are set loose to work
upon him, and he can assure himself that the movement of
recovery which he has begun to feel stirring within him will carry
him on through eternal ages, beyond what he can ask or think.
It is because of this gradualness of the Spirit's method that
it lays so great a strain on human patience. The spiritually
minded of all ages have tended to find the visible Church a very
troubled and imperfect home. Most startling disclosures of the
actual state of ecclesiastical disorder and moral collapse, may be
gathered . out of the Christian Fathers. Thus to found a ' pure
Church ' has been the instinct of impatient zeal since Tertullian's
day. But the instinct has to be restrained, the visible Church has
to be borne with, because it is the Spirit's purpose to provide a
home for the training and improvement of the imperfect. ' Let
both grow together unto the harvest. ' 'A bruised reed will He
not break, and smoking flax will He not quench.' The Church
must have her terms of communion, moral and intellectual ; this
is essential to keep her fundamental principles intact, and to pre-
vent her betraying her secret springs of strength and recovery.
But short of this necessity she is tolerant. It is her note to be
tolerant, morally and theologically. She is the mother, not the
magistrate. No doubt her balanced duty is one difficult to ful-
fil. At times she has been puritanical, at others morally lax ; at
times doctrinally lax, at others rigid. But however well or ill she
has fulfilled the obligations laid on her, this is her ideal. She
is the guardian, the depository of a great gift, a mighty presence,
which in its essence is unchanging and perfect, but is realized
very imperfectly in her experience and manifested life. This is
what St. Thomas Aquinas means when he says ' that to believe
in the Church is only possible if we mean by it to believe in
the Spirit vivifying the Church.' * The true self of the Church
is the Holy Spirit ; but a great deal in the Church at any date does
not belong to her true self, and is obscuring the Spirit's mind.
Thus the treasure is in earthen vessels, it is sometimes a light hid
under a bushel ; and the Church is the probation of faith, as well
as its encouragement.
It will not be out of place to conclude this review of the Spirit's
method in the Church by calling attention to the emphasis which,
from the first, Christians laid upon the fact that the animating
principle both of their individual lives and of their society as a
1 Thorn. Aq., Summa Theol., pars sec. sec, Qu. 1, Art. ix.
278 The Religion of the Incarnation.
whole, was nothing less than the Holy Spirit Himself. To know
Him was (as against all the philosophical schools, and in a sense
in which the same could not be said even of the Divine Word)
their peculiar privilege, to possess Him their summary character-
istic. Under the old covenant, and in all the various avenues of
approach to the Church, men could be the subjects of the Spirit's
guidance and could be receiving gifts from Him ; but the ' initi-
ated ' Christian, baptized and confirmed, possessed not merely His
gifts but Himself. He is in the Church, as the ' Vicar of Christ,'
in Whose presence Christ Himself is with them. He is the con-
secrator of every sacrament, and the substance of His own sacra-
mental gifts. The services of ordained men indeed are required
for the administration of sacraments, but as ministers simply of a
Power higher than themselves, of a Personal Spirit Who indeed is
invoked by their ministry, and pledges Himself to respond to their
invocations, but never subjects Himself to their power. Therefore
the unworthiness of the minister diminishes in no way the efficacy
of the sacrament, or the reality of the gift given, because the min-
istry of men neither creates the gift nor adds to or diminishes its
force. He is the giver of the gift, and the gift He gives is the
same to all. Only the meagreness of human faith and love
restrains the largeness of His bounty and conditions the Thing
received by the narrowness and variability of the faculty which
receives it. According to our faith is it done to us, and where
there is no faith and no love, there the grace is equally, in St.
Augustine's phrase, present and profitless. 1
II. In something of this way the early Christian writers — and
it has seemed better to let them speak for us — teach the doctrine
of the Holy Spirit. What they teach is grounded in part on actual
experience, in part on the revelation of the being and action of
God made once for all in the Person of Jesus Christ and recorded
in the New Testament. On this mingled basis of experience and
Holy Scripture they passed back from the doctrine of the Holy
1 The above paragraph is a summary of expressions constantly met with
in the Fathers. It is St. Ambrose who protests against the idea that the
priest can be spoken of as having power over the Divine Things which he
ministers ; see De Spiritu Sancto, praef. 18, lib. i. 11, 118 : ' Nostra sunt ser-
vitia sed tua sacramenta. Neque enim humanae opis est divina conferre.'
St. Augustine, among others, draws the distinction between gifts from the
Spirit and the gift of Himself. Ep. cxciv. : ' Aliter adiuvat nondum inhabi-
tans, aliter inhabitans : nam nondum inhabitans adiuvat ut sint fideles,
inhabitans adiuvat iam fideles.' Didymus, de Spiritu Sancto 15, calls atten-
tion to the distinction in the New Testament between irvevfia (without the
article), i. e., 'a spiritual gift,' and rb -jruevfxa, i. e., the Spirit Himself; cf.
Westcott on St. John vii. 39.
viii. TJie Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 279
Spirit as He is operative in the world, to the Theology of His
Person. They passed back but slowly, with great hesitation, even
unwillingness. Nothing, we may say, was further removed from
the Fathers than the easy-going assumption that because we are
the subjects of a revelation, therefore we are able to speculate with
tolerably complete information about the mysteries which lie beyond
experience. The truth that ' we know in part,' we see i in a glass
darkly,' was profoundly impressed upon their minds. God mani-
fested Himself, St. Gregory of Nazianzus tells, in such a way as to
escape the nets of our syllogisms, and to show Himself superior
to our logical distinctions. If we expect to find our logic equal to
express Him, we show only our mad presumption, ' we who are not
able even to know what lies at our feet, or to count the waves of
the sea, or the drops of rain, or the days of the world, much less
to fathom the depths of God, and give account of His nature,
which transcends alike our reason and our power of expres-
sion.* x Besides this, the early theologians realized the obliga-
tion of keeping to Holy Scripture — of not being wise 'above
that which is written ' — and they were conscious of the danger
of building on isolated texts of Scripture or of treating its
'simple and untechnical' language as if it was the language of
a formal treatise. 2
For these reasons they were cautious in theological speculation.
Yet the facts and relationships introduced into the world of expe-
rience by the revelation of the Son represent eternal realities, if
under great limitations, yet still truly, and thus make possible a real
security up to a certain point on what lies beyond the unassisted
human knowledge. Thus, first, when the Arian movement passed
from the denial of the true Godhead of Christ to a similar posi-
tion with reference to the Holy Spirit, the Christian Church felt
itself fully justified alike by its past traditions, 3 and by its
Scriptures, in emphasizing the personal distinctness and the true
Godhead of the Holy Spirit. Unless all Christ's language was
an illusion, the Holy Spirit was really personal and really distinct
from Himself and the Father ; nor could One who was associated
with the Father and the Son in all the essentially Divine operations
of nature and grace, be less than truly and really God, an essential
element in the Eternal Being. The Arian controversy in its
1 Greg. Naz., Orat. xxxi. 8.
2 See Athan., Epp. ad Serapion, i. 17. Cyril Hieros., Cat., xvi. 24.
Iren., v. 13, 2. Basil, de Spiritu Sancto, iii. 5.
3 The Diet, of Chr. Biog., Art. ' Holy Ghost ' (by Dr. Swete), has an
admirable summary of the theology of the subject.
280 The Religion of the Incarnation.
earlier stages had disposed of the notion that Christian theology
could at any cost admit the conception of a created personality,
clothed with Divine attributes and exercising Divine functions.
Secondly, the consideration that the relations manifested in the
Incarnation in terms of our experience between the Father, the
Son, and the Holy Ghost, express transcendent and eternal rela-
tions, led the Church to speak of the Holy Ghost as proceeding
from the Father, as the unique fount of Godhead, through the
Son: or in somewhat less nicely discriminated language 'from the
Father and the Son.' l In the fifth century there is a tendency to
use in the East the former, in the West the latter mode of expres-
sion, but without any essential difference. Nor can it be said that
the causes which were at work later to divide the Eastern and
the Western Churches on the subject of the procession of the
Holy Ghost, were so much really theological as ecclesiastical and
political.
Thirdly, the accurate consideration of the language in which is
expressed the relation of Christ to the Holy Spirit, helped the
Church to guard the doctrine of the Trinity from the associations of
Tritheism. For the coming of the Holy Spirit is clearly spoken
of in Holy Scripture as coincident with and involving the coming
of Christ. 'While we are illuminated by the Holy Spirit, it is
Christ Who illuminates us ; when we drink in the Spirit, it is Christ
we drink.' The Spirit is distinct from Christ, — ' another Para-
clete,' — yet in His coming, Christ comes; in His indwelling is
the indwelling of the Father and the Son.' 2 How can this be?
Because the ' Persons ' of the Holy Trinity are not to be thought of
as distinct individuals, as three Gods. No doubt in our ordinary
language, persons are understood to be separate, and mutually
exclusive beings. Even in regard to ourselves deeper reflection
shows us that our personalities are very far from being as separate
as they appear to be on the surface ; and with regard to God, it
was only with an expressed apology for the imperfection of human
language that the Church spoke of the Divine Three, as Three
Persons at all. But 'we have no celestial language,' and the word
is the only one which will express what Christ's language implies
about Himself, the Father, and the Spirit. Only while we use it,
it must be understood to express mutual inclusion, not mutual
exclusion.
Wherever the Father works, He works essentially and inevitably
1 See Godet on St. John xv. 26, 27.
2 Athan., Epp. ad Serap., i. 19. S. John xiv. 16, 18, 23.
vi ii. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 281
through the Son and the Spirit ; whenever the Son acts, He acts
from the Father by the Holy Spirit; whenever the Holy Spirit
comes, He brings with Him in His coming the Son and the
Father. Thus when an image was necessary to interpret in part
the Divine relationships, the Fathers sought it nowhere so much as
in the three distinct yet inseparable elements of man's spiritual
nature ; the triune character of which Plato had already brought
into notice, and which is in fact an earthly image, however inade-
quate, of the Triune God. 1
III. Hitherto nothing has been said about that part of the
Holy Spirit's work which is called the inspiration of Scripture.
It has been kept to the last because of the great importance of
putting it in context with less familiar truths. The Scriptures
have, it is a commonplace to say, suffered greatly from being iso-
lated. This is as true whether we are considering them as a
source of evidence or as the sphere of inspiration.
As a source of evidence they contain the record of historical
facts with some of which at any rate the Creed of Christendom is
1 Plato's human trinity is made up of reason, spirit [6v[x6s], and desire: St.
Augustine's of memory \i. e., personal identity), reason, and will; or mind,
knowledge, and love. Nothing has been said in the text of Patristic and
more recent attempts to express the function of the Holy Spirit in the inner
relations of the Trinity. Some of the Fathers speak of the Holy Spirit as
completing the circle of the Divine Life, or as 'the return of God upon
Himself,' 'the bond of the Father and the Son.' This eternal function
would interpret His temporal mission to bring all creatures back into union
with God. Not very differently St. Augustine speaks of Him as the Love
of the Father and the Son: 'Vides Trinitatem si caritatem vides. Ecce
tria sunt; amans et quod amatur et amor.' And this Love is itself personal
and co-ordinate : ' commune aliquid est Patris et Filii : at ipsa commumo
consubstantialis et coaeterna.' But in such speculation they allow themselves
with much reserve and expression of unwillingness.
In fact it is easy to see that an eternally living God, knowing and loving,
must be a God Whose Being involves eternal relationships. Knowledge in-
volves a relation of subject and object : to make love possible there must be
a lover and a loved. It is more difficult to see how a perfect relationship
must be threefold ; but there are true lines of thought which lead up to this,
such, for instance, as make us see first in the family, the type of complete
life. Love which is only a relation of two, is selfish or unsatisfied : it
demands an object and a product of mutual love. See especially Richard
of St. Victor, de Trim, Pars i. lib. iii. cc. 14, 15: ' Communio amoris non
potest esse omnino minus quam in tribus personis. Nihil autem (ut dictum
est) gloriosius. nihil magnificentius, quam quicquid habes utile et dulce in
commune deducere; . . . hujusmodi dulcedinis delicias solus non possidet
qui in exhibita sibi dilectione socium et condilectum non habet ; quamdiu
condilectum non habet, praecipui gaudii communione caret.' See also Sarto-
rius, Doctrine of Divine Love (Clark's Foreign Theol. Libr.), p. id
282 The Religion of the Incarnation..
inseparably interwoven. Thus it is impossible for Christians who
know what they are about, to underestimate the importance of
the historical evidence for those facts at least of which the Creed
contains a summary. But the tendency with books of historical
evidence has been, at least till recently, to exaggerate the extent
to which the mere evidence of remote facts can compel belief.
What we should make of the New Testament record, what esti-
mate we should be able to form of the Person of Jesus Christ and
the meaning of His life and work, if it was contained simply in
some old manuscripts, or unearthed in some way by antiquaries
out of the Syrian sand, it is impossible to say. In order to have
grounds for believing the facts, in order to be susceptible of their
evidence, we require an antecedent state of conception and
expectation. A whole set of presuppositions about God, about
the slavery of sin, about the reasonableness of redemption, must
be present with us. So only can the facts presented to us in the
Gospel come to us as credible things, or as parts of an intelligible
universe, correlated elements in a rational whole. Now the work
of the Spirit in the Church has been to keep alive and real these
presuppositions, this frame of mind. He convinces of sin, of
righteousness, of judgment. He does this not merely in isolated
individuals, however numerous, but in an organized continuous
society. The spiritual life of the Church assures me that in desir-
ing union with God, in feeling the burden of sin, in hungering for
redemption, I am not doing an eccentric, abnormal thing. I am
doing only what belongs to the best and richest movement of
humanity. More than this, it assures me that assent to the claims
and promises of Jesus Christ satisfies these spiritual needs in such
a way as to produce the strongest, the most lasting, the most
catholic sort of human character. The historical life of the Church
thus in every age ' setting to its seal ' that God's offer in Christ is
true, reproduces the original ' witness,' commends it to conscience
and reason, spans the gulf of the ages, and brings down remote
and alien incidents into close and intelligible familiarity. Lotze
speaks of revelation as ' either contained in some divine act of
historic occurrence or continually repeated in men's hearts.' 1
But in fact the antithesis is not an alternative. The strength of
the Christian Creed is that it is both. It is a revelation continu-
ously renewed in men's hearts by an organized and systematic
operation of the Spirit in the Church, while at the same time it
finds its guarantee and security in certain Divine acts of historic
occurrence.
1 Microcosmus, B. ix. C. iv. (E. T., ii. 660.)
viii. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 283
* Once more, the belief in the Holy Scriptures as inspired re-
quires to be held in context by the belief in the general action of
the Holy Spirit upon the Christian society and the individual soul.
It is, we may perhaps say, becoming more and more difficult
to believe in the Bible without believing in the Church. The
Apostles, indeed, — and the New Testament canon consists largely
of the words of Apostles, — have an authority which, reasonably
considered, is unique, and stands by itself as that of the accredited
witnesses of Christ ; but when we find them appealing to members
of the Church, they appeal not as the possessors of an absolute
authority or of a Spirit in which others do not share. They are
the ministers of a ' tradition ' to which they themselves are subject,
a tradition ' once for all delivered : ' x they appeal to those who
hear them as men ' who have an unction from the Holy One and
know all things.' The tone in fact of the Apostolic writers forces
us to regard the spirit in which the Church lives, as co-operating
with, and in a real sense limiting, the spirit in which they them-
selves speak and write. Thus in fact the Apostolic writings were
written as occasion required, within the Church, and for the
Church. They presuppose membership in it and familiarity with
its tradition. They are secondary, not primary, instructors ; for
edification, not for initiation. Nor, in fact, can a hard and fast
line be drawn between what lies within and what lies without the
canon. For example, Protestantism of an unecclesiastical sort
has built upon the Epistle to the Hebrews as much as upon any
book of the New Testament. This book is of unknown author-
ship. If ' Pauline,' it is pretty certainly not St. Paul's. In large
part it is the judgment of the Church which enables us to draw a
line between it and St. Clement's ' scripture.' The line indeed
our own judgment approves. The Epistle to the Hebrews and
St. Clement's letter are closely linked together, but the latter
depends on the former : it is secondary, and the other is primary.
Yet how narrow is the historical interval between them ! How
impossible to tear the one from the other ! How seemingly irra-
tional to attribute absolute authority to the anonymous Epistle to
the Hebrews, which represents Apostolic teaching at second hand, 2
and then to interpret it in a sense hostile to the Epistle of
Clement, which represents exactly the same stream of Apostolic
teaching only one short stage lower down ! For Clement inter-
prets the high priesthood of Christ in a sense which, instead of
excluding, makes it the basis of, the ministerial hierarchy of the
1 See especially Gal. i. 8, 9. 2 Heb. \\. 3,
284 The Religion of the Incarnation.
Church. Or to put the matter more broadly, how irrational it is,
considering the intimate links by which the New Testament canon
is bound up with the historic Church, not to accept the mind
of the Church, especially when we have its consent down
independent lines of tradition, as interpreting the mind of the
Apostolic writers. Most rational surely is the attitude of the early
Church towards Scripture. The Scripture was regarded as the
highest utterance of the Spirit, the unique and constant test of
the Church's life and teaching. But the Spirit in the Church
interpreted the meaning of Scripture. Thus the Church taught
and the Scripture tested and verified or corrected her teaching :
and this because all was of one piece, the life of the Church
including the Scriptures, the inspired writers themselves appealing
to the Spirit in the Churches. 1
And now, what is to be said about this, at present, much con-
troverted subject of the inspiration of Holy Scripture? What
does the doctrine imply, and what attitude does belief in it involve
towards the modern critical treatment of the inspired literature ?
1. Let us bear carefully in mind the place which the doctrine
holds in the building up of a Christian faith. It is in fact an
important part of the superstructure, but it is not among the bases
of the Christian belief. The Christian creed asserts the reality of
certain historical facts. To these facts, in the Church's name, we
claim assent : but we do so on grounds which, so far, are quite
independent of the inspiration of the evangelic records. All that
we claim to show at this stage is that they are historical : not
historical so as to be absolutely without error, but historical in the
general sense, so as to be trustworthy. All that is necessary for
faith in Christ is to be found in the moral dispositions which pre-
dispose to belief, and make intelligible and credible the thing to
be believed : coupled with such acceptance of the generally his-
torical character of the Gospels, and of the trustworthiness of the
other Apostolic documents, as justifies belief that our Lord was
actually born of the Virgin Mary, manifested as the Son of God
' with power according to a spirit of holiness,' crucified, raised
again the third day from the dead, exalted to the right hand of
the Father, the Founder of the Church and the Source to it of the
informing Spirit.
In all this no claim is made for any special belief as to the
method of the Spirit's work in the Scripture or in the Church.
1 See further on the fatal results of separating the Spirit's work in Scrip-
ture from His work in the Church, Coleridge, Remains, iii. 93, iv. 118; or
quoted by Hare, Mission of the Comforter, Note H, ii. 468, 474.
viii. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration, 285
Logically such belief follows, does not precede, belief in Christ.
Indeed, in the past, Christian apologists have made a great mistake
in allowing opponents to advance as objections against the his-
torical character of the Gospel narrative what are really objections
not against its historical character, — not such as could tell against
the substantially historical character of secular documents, — but
against a certain view of the meaning of inspiration. Let it be
laid down, then, that Christianity brings with it indeed a doctrine
of the inspiration of Holy Scriptures, but is not based upon it. 1
2. But such a doctrine it does bring with it. Our Lord and
His Apostles are clearly found to believe and to teach that the
Scriptures of the Old Testament were given by inspiration of God ;
and the Christian Church from the earliest days postulated the
same belief about the Scriptures of the New Testament. To dis-
believe that ' the Scriptures were spoken by the Holy Ghost,' was
equivalent to being ' an unbeliever.' 2
Thus when once a man finds himself a believer in Christ, he
will find himself in a position where alike the authority of his Mas-
ter and the ' communis sensus ' of the society he belongs to give
into his hand certain documents and declare them inspired.
3. What in its general idea does this mean?
St. Athanasius expresses the function of the Jews in the world in
a luminous phrase, when he describes them as having been the
' sacred school for all the world of the knowledge of God and of
the spiritual life.' 3 Every race has its special vocation, and we
recognize in the great writers of each race the interpreters of that
vocation. They are specially gifted individuals, but not merely
individuals. The race speaks in them. Rome is interpreted by
Virgil, and Greece by ^Eschylus or Plato. Now, every believer
in God must see in these special missions of races a Divine inspi-
ration. If we can once get down to the bottom of human life, —
below its pride, its wilfulness, its pretentiousness, down to its
essence, — we get to God and to a movement of His Spirit. 4
Thus every race has its inspiration and its prophets.
But the inspiration of the Jews was supernatural. What does
this mean? That the Jews were selected, — not to be the school
for humanity in any of the arts and sciences which involve the
thought of God only indirectly, and can therefore be carried on
1 This distinction was drawn by Bishop Clifford, Fortnightly Review,
January, 1887, p. 145.
2 Cf. the quotation in Eusebius, H. E., v. 28.
3 Athan., de Incarn., 12. Cf. Ewald's preface to his History of Israel.
4 See Gratry, Henri Perreyve, pp 162, 163.
286 The Religion of the Incarnation.
without a fundamental restoration of man into that relation to God
which sin had clouded or broken, — but to be the school of that
fundamental restoration itself. Therefore, in the case of the Jews
the inspiration is both in itself more direct and more intense, and
also involves a direct consciousness on the part of its subjects. In
the race, indeed, the consciousness might be dim ; but the con-
sciousness, as the prophets all assure us, did belong to the race,
I md not merely to its individual interpreters. They speak as
•recalling the people to something which they know, or ought to
know, not as preachers of a new religion. They were ' the con-
science of the state.' x But special men — prophets, psalmists,
moralists, historians — were thus the inspired interpreters of the
Divine message to and in the race ; and their inspiration lies in
this : that they were the subjects of a movement of the Holy
Ghost, so shaping, controlling, quickening their minds and thoughts
and aspirations, as to make them the instruments through which
was imparted ' the knowledge of God and of the spiritual life.'
Various are the degrees of this inspiration ; the inspiration of
the prophet is direct, continuous, absorbing. The inspiration
of the writer of Ecclesiastes, on the other hand, is such as to lead
him to ponder on all the phases of a worldly experience, passing
through many a false conclusion and cynical denial, till at the last
his thought is led to unite itself to the great stream of Divine
movement by finding the only possible solution of the problems of
life in the recognition of God and in obedience to Him.
Various also are the sorts of literature inspired ; for the super-
natural fertilizes and does not annihilate the natural. The Church
repudiated the Montanist conception of inspiration, according to
which the inspired man speaks in ecstasy, as the passive, uncon-
scious instrument of the Spirit ; and the metaphors which would
describe the Holy Spirit as acting upon a man ' like a flute-player
breathing into his flute,' or ' a plectrum striking a lyre,' have
always a suspicion of heresy attaching to their use. 2 As the
humanity of Christ is none the less a true humanity for being con-
ditioned by absolute oneness with God, so the human activity is
none the less free, conscious, rational, because the Spirit inspires
it. The poet is a poet, the philosopher a philosopher, the his-
torian an historian, each with his own idiosyncrasies, ways, and
methods, to be interpreted each by the laws of his own literature.
1 Delitzsch, O. T. History of Redemption, p. 106. Cf . Professor Robertson
Smith, Propht-ts of Israel, p. 108.
2 See Eoiphan., Ha;r., xlviii. 4 ; Westcott, In trod, to the Study of the
Gospels, App. B, sect. ii. 4, sect, iv. 4 ; Mason, Faith of the Gospel, p. 255.
vni. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 287
And just as truly as physiology, in telling us more and more about
the human body is telling us about the body which the Son of God
assumed, so with the growth of our knowledge about the kinds and
sequences of human literature shall we know more and more about
the literature of the Jews which the Holy Spirit inspired.
What, then, is meant by the inspiration of Holy Scripture? If
we begin our inquiry with the account of creation with which the
Jible opens, we may take note of its affinities in general substance
with the Babylonian and Phoenician cosmogonies ; but we are much
more struck with its differences, and it is in these we shall look for
its inspiration. We observe that it has for its motive and impulse
not the satisfaction of a fantastic curiosity or the later interest of
scientific discovery, but to reveal certain fundamental religious
principles ; that everything as we see it was made by God ; that it
has no being in itself but at God's will. On the other hand, that
everything is in its essence good, as the product of the good God ;
that man, besides sharing the physical nature of all creation, has a
special relation to God, as made in God's image, to be God's vice-
gerent ; that sin, and all that sin brings with it of misery and death,
came not of man's nature, but of his disobedience to God and
rejection of the limitations under which He put him ; that in spite
of all that sin brought about, God has not left man to himself, that
there is a hope and a promise. These are the fundamental prin-
ciples of true religion and progressive morality, and in these lies
the supernatural inspiration of the Bible account of creation. 1
As we pass on down the record of Genesis, we do not find our-
selves in any doubt as to the primary and certain meaning of its
inspiration. The first traditions of the race are all given there from
a special point of view. In that point of view lies the inspiration.
It is that everything is presented to us as illustrating God's deal-
ings with man, — God's judgment on sin ; His call of a single man
to work out a universal mission ; His gradual delimitation of a
chosen race ; His care for the race ; His overruling of evil to work
out His purpose. The narrative of Genesis has all the fullest
, wealth of human interest, but it is in the unveiling of the hand of
Sod that its special characteristic lies. As we go on into the his-
tory we find the recorders acting like the recorders of other
nations, — collecting, sorting, adapting, combining their materials ;
but in this inspired : that the animating motive of their work is
not to bring out the national glory or to flatter the national vanity,
nor, like the motive of a modern historian, — the mere interest in
1 See Professor Driver's admirable article on ' the cosmogony of Genesis-'
Expositor, January, 1886.
288 The Religion of the Incarnation.
fact, — but to keep before the chosen people the record of how-
God has dealt with them. This, as we perceive, gives them a spe-
cial sense of the value of fact. 1 They record what God has done,
how God did in such and such ways take action on behalf of His
peculiar people ; delivering them, punishing them, teaching them,
keeping them, disciplining them for higher ends. And none who
have eyes to see God's spiritual purposes can doubt that those his-
torians read aright the chronicles of the kings of Israel. The
spiritual significance which they see is the true significance.
God's special purpose was on Israel.
It is not necessary to emphasize in what consists the special
inspiration of psalmists or of prophets. The psalmists take some
of the highest places among the poets of all nations, but the poetic
faculty is directed to one great end, — to reveal the soul in its rela-
tion to God, in its exultations and in its self-abasements. ' Where
. . . did they come from, those piercing, lightning-like gleams of
strange spiritual truth, those magnificent outlooks upon the king-
dom of God, those raptures at His presence and His glory, those
wonderful disclosures of self-knowledge, those pure outpourings
of the love of God ? Surely here is something more than the mere
working of the mind of man. Surely . . . they repeat the whis-
pers of the Spirit of God, they reflect the very light of the Eternal
Wisdom.' 2
In the case of prophets once more we get the most obvious
and typical instances of inspiration. 3 The prophets make a direct
claim to be the instruments of the Divine Spirit. Not that the
Divine Spirit supersedes their human faculties, but He intensifies
them. They see deeper under the surface of life what God is
doing, and therefore further into the future what He will do. No
1 Professor Cheyne. speaking of such narratives of Scriptures as the
record of Elijah, protests against the supposition that they are 'true to fact.'
1 True to fact ! Who goes to the artist for hard dry facts ? Why even the
historians of antiquity thought it no part of their duty to give the mere prose
of life. How much less can the unconscious artists of the imaginative East
have described their heroes with relentless photographic accuracy ! ' (The
Hallowing of Criticism, p. 5.) But it seems to me that such a passage, by
treating the recorders of the Old Testament as ' artists,' ignores their obvious
intention to lay stress on what God has actually done, the deliverances He
has actually wrought. They, at least, like the Greek historical ' artist ' of
the defeat of Persia, would have laid great stress on the facts having
happened.
2 Church, Discipline of the Christian Character, p. 57. This work seems
to me the best existing answer to the question, in what does the inspiration
of the Old Testament consist.
3 Cf. pp. I34-I39-
viii. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 289
doubt their predictive knowledge is general, it is of the issue to
which things tend. It is not at least usually a knowledge ' of
times and of seasons which the Father hath put in His own power.'
Thus at times they foreshorten the distance, and place the great
deliverance and the ' day of Jehovah ' in the too immediate fore-
ground. 1 The prophetic inspiration is thus consistent with erro-
neous anticipations as to the circumstances and the opportunity of
God's self-revelation, just as the Apostolic inspiration admitted of
St. Paul expecting the second coming of Christ within his own life-
time. But the prophets claim to be directly and really inspired to
teach and interpret what God is doing and commanding in their
own age, and to forecast what in judgment and redemptive mercy
God means to do and must do in the Divine event. The figure
of the king Messiah dawns upon their horizon with increasing
definiteness of outline and characteristic, and we, with the expe-
rience of history between us and them, are sure that the corre-
spondence of prophecy and fulfilment can be due to no other
cause than that they spoke in fact the ' word of the Lord.'
Thus there is built up for us in the literature of a nation, marked
by an unparalleled unity of purpose and character, a spiritual
fabric, which in its result we cannot but recognize as the action
of the Divine Spirit. A knowledge of God and of the spiritual life
gradually appears, not as the product of human ingenuity, but as
the result of Divine communication : and the outcome of this
communication is to produce an organic whole which postulates
a climax not yet reached, a redemption not yet given, a hope not
yet satisfied. In this general sense at least no Christian ought to
feel a difficulty in believing, and believing with joy, in the inspira-
tion of the Old Testament : nor can he feel that he is left without
a standard by which to judge what it means. Christ, the goal of
Old Testament development, stands forth as the test and measure
of its inspiration.
The New Testament consists of writings of Apostles or of men
of sub-apostolic rank, like St. Luke and probably the author of the
Epistle to the Hebrews. There is not, except perhaps in the case
of the Apocalypse, any sign of an inspiration to write, other than
the inspiration which gave power to teach. What then is, whether
for writing or for teaching, the inspiration of an Apostle ?
If Jesus Christ both was, and knew Himself to be, the Revealer
1 See, for instance, Micah v. 2-6. For an anticipation not historically
fulfilled in details, see Isaiah x. 28-32 ; cf. Driver's Isaiah, p. 73. See also
the prophecies of the destruction of Tyre by Babylon, Jer. xxvii. 3-6: Ezek.
xxvi. 4-17 ; and contrast Ezek. xxix. 17-21.
19
200 The Religion of the Incarnation.
of the Father, it almost stands to reason that He must have secured
that His revelation should be, without material alloy, communica-
ted to the Church which was to enshrine and perpetuate it. Thus,
in fact, we find that He spent His chief pains on the training of
His Apostolic witnesses. And all the training which He gave
them while He was present among them was only to prepare them
to receive the Holy Ghost Who, after He was gone; was to be
poured out upon them to qualify them to bear His witness among
men.
' Ye shall receive power, when the Holy Ghost is come upon
you, and ye shall be My witnesses.' ' These things have I spoken
unto you while yet abiding with you. And the Comforter, even
the Holy Ghost, Whom the Father will send in My name, He
shall teach you all things, and bring to your remembrance all that
I said unto you.' ' I have yet many things to say unto you, but
ye cannot bear them now. Howbeit when He, the Spirit of truth,
is come, He will guide you into all the truth.' 1
Thus the Church sees in the Apostles men specially and delib-
erately qualified to interpret Christ to the world'. It understands
by their inspiration an endowment which enables men of all ages
to take their teaching as representing, and not misrepresenting,
His teaching and Himself. In St. John's Gospel, for example,
we have an account of our Lord which has obviously passed
through the medium of a most remarkable personality. We have
the outcome of the meditation, as well as the recollection, of the
Apostle. But, as the evidence assures us that the Gospel is really
St. John's, so the Church unhesitatingly accepts St. John's strong
and repeated asseveration that he is interpreting and not distorting
the record, the personality, the claims of Jesus Christ. ' He bears
record, and his record is true.' 2
This assurance is indeed not without verification : it is verified
by the unity of testimony which, under all differences of character
and circumstance, we find among the Apostolic witnesses. The
accepted doctrine of the Church when St. Paul wrote his
' undoubted Epistles ' — the points of agreement amidst all differ-
ences between him and the judaizers — gives us substantially the
same conception of the Person of the Incarnate Son of God as
we find in St. John. 3 The same conception of what He was, is
required to interpret the record of what He did and said in the
1 Acts i. 8. St. John xiv. 25, 26; xvi. 12, 13.
2 St. John xix. 35 ; xxi. 24. 1 St. John i. 1-3.
3 See Professor Sanday's What the First Christians thought about Christ.
(Oxford House Papers : Rivington.)
vin. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 291
Synoptic Gospels. Further, the witness of the Apostles, though it
receives its final guarantee through the belief in their inspiration,
has its natural basis in the prolonged training by which — ' cora-
panying with them all the time that He went in and out among
them, beginning from the baptism of John, until the day that He
was received up,' — they were prepared to be His witnesses.
Thus if an act of faith is asked of us in the Apostolic inspiration,
it is a reasonable act of faith.
If we pass from the writings properly Apostolic to those like St.
Luke's records, which represent Apostolic teaching at second hand,
we do not find that the inspiration of their writers was of such sort
as enabled them to dispense with the ordinary means or guarantees
of accuracy. The simple claim of St. Luke's preface to have had
the best means of information and to have taken the greatest care
in the use of them, is on this score most instructive. We should
suppose that their inspiration was part of the whole spiritual
endowment of their life which made them the trusted friends of
the Apostles, and qualified them to be the chosen instruments to
record their teaching, in the midst of a Church whose quick and
eager memory of ' the tradition ' would have acted as a check to
prevent any material error creeping into the record.
4. It will be remembered that when inspiration is spoken of
by St. Paul, he mentions it as a positive endowment which quali-
fies the writings of those who were its subjects, to be permanent
sources of spiritual instruction. ' Every Scripture inspired of God
is also profitable for teaching, for reproof, for correction, for in-
struction which is in righteousness.' * Following out this idea of
Holy Scripture, then, we are led to think of the belief in inspiration
as having this primary practical result : that we submit ourselves to
the teaching of every book which is given to us as inspired. We
are to put ourselves to school with each in turn of the inspired
writers ; with St. James, for example, in the New Testament, as
well as with St. John and St. Paul ; with St. Luke as well as with
St. Matthew ; with the Pastoral Epistles as well as with the Epistle
to the Galatians. 2 At starting, each of us, according to his predis-
position, is conscious of liking some books of Scripture better than
others. This, however, should lead us to recognize that in some
way we specially need the teaching which is less attractive to us.
We should set ourselves to study what we like less, till that too has
had its proper effect in moulding our conscience and character.
1 2 Tim. iii. 16.
2 Mr. Horton's book on Inspiration and the Bible is almost naively lack-
ing in this quality of impartial regard to inspired books.
292 The Religion of the Incarnation.
It is hardly possible to estimate how much division would have
been avoided in the Church if those, for example, who were most
ecclesiastically disposed had been at pains to assimilate the teach-
ing of the Epistle to the Romans, and those who most valued ' the
freedom of the Gospel,' had recognized a special obligation to
deepen their hold on the Epistles to the Corinthians and the
Pastoral Epistles and the Epistle of St. James.
To believe in the inspiration of Holy Scripture is to put our-
selves to school with every part of the Old Testament, as of the
New. True, the Old Testament is imperfect, but for that very
reason has a special value. ' The real use of the earlier record is
not to add something to the things revealed in Christ, but to give
us that clear and all-sided insight into the meaning and practical
worth of the perfect scheme of Divine grace which can only be
attained by tracing its growth.' x We see in the Old Testament the
elements, each in separation, which went to make up the perfect
whole, and which must still lie at the basis of all rightly formed life
of individuals and societies.
Thus to believe, for instance, in the inspiration of the Old Tes-
tament forces us to recognize a real element of the Divine educa-
tion in the imprecatory Psalms. They are not the utterances of
selfish spite : 2 they are the claim which righteous Israel makes
upon God that He should vindicate Himself, and let their eyes see
how ' righteousness turns again unto judgment.' The claim is
made in a form which b^ongs to an early stage of spiritual educa-
tion ; to a time when this life was regarded as the scene in which
God must finally vindicate Himself, and when the large powers and
possibilities of the Divine compassion were very imperfectly recog-
nized. But behind these limitations, which characterize the greater
part of the Old Testament, the claim of these Psalms still remains
a necessary part of the claim of the Christian soul. We must not
only recognize the reality of Divine judgments in time and eter-
nity, bodily and spiritual ; we must not only acquiesce in them
because they are God's ; we must go on to claim of God the
manifestation of His just judgment, so that holiness and joy, sin
and failure, shall be seen to coincide.
To recognize then the inspiration of the Bible is to put ourselves
to school in every part of it, and everywhere to bear in mind the
admonition of the De Imitatione ' that every Scripture must be
1 Professor Robertson Smith, Prophets of Israel, p. 6.
2 Cf. Professor Robertson Smith, The Old Testament in the Jewish Church,
Lect. vii. p. 207 : ' Another point in which criticism removes a serious diffi-
culty is the interpretation of the imprecatory psalms/
vin. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 293
read in the same spirit in which it was written.' So far it will not
be a point in dispute among Christians what inspiration means, or
what its purpose is. ' The Councils of Trent and the Vatican,'
writes Cardinal Newman, ' tell us distinctly the object and the
promise of Scriptural inspiration. They specify " faith and moral
conduct " as the drift of that teaching which has the guarantee of
inspiration.' x Nor can it be denied that the more Holy Scripture
is read from this point of view, the more confidently it is treated
as the inspired guide of faith and conduct, no less in the types
of character which it sets before us than in its direct instruction,
the more the experience and appreciation of its inspiration grows
upon us, so that to deny or to doubt it comes to mean to deny
or to doubt a matter plain to the senses. Indeed what has been
said under this head will probably appear to those practised in the
spiritual use of Holy Scripture as an under-statement, perhaps
not easy to justify, of the sense in which the Scripture is the word
of God and the spiritual food of the soul. 2
5. But here certain important questions arise, (a) The revel-
ation of God was made in a historical process. Its record is in
large part the record of a national life : it is historical. Now the
inspiration of the recorder lies, as we have seen, primarily in this,
that he sees the hand of God in the history and interprets His
purpose. Further, we must add, his sense of the working of God
in history increases his realization of the importance of historical
fact. Thus there is a profound air of historical truthfulness per-
vading the Old Testament record from Abraham downward. The
weaknesses, the sins, of Israel's heroes are not spared. Their sin
and its punishment are always before us. There is no flattering of
national pride, no giving the reins to boastfulness. In all this the
Old Testament appears to be in marked contrast, as to contempo-
rary Assyrian monuments, so also to a good deal of much later
ecclesiastical history. But does the inspiration of the recorder
guarantee the exact historical truth of what he records? And in
matter of fact can the record, with due regard to legitimate histo-
rical criticism, be pronounced true ? Now, to the latter of these
two questions (and they are quite distinct questions) we may reply
that there is nothing to prevent our believing, as our faith certainly
1 See Nineteenth Century, February, 1884, p. 189.
2 ' When from time to time,' says St. Bernard to his monks, ' anything that
was hidden or obscure in the Scriptures has come out into the light to any
one of you, at once the voice of exultation and thankfulness for the nourish-
ment of spiritual food that has been received must rise as from a banquet
to delight the ears of God.'
294 The Religion of the Incarnation,
strongly disposes us to believe, that the record from Abraham
downward is in substance in the strict sense historical. Of course
the battle of historical truth cannot be fought on the field of the
Old Testament as it can on that of the New, because it is so
vast and indecisive, and because (however certainly ancient is
such a narrative as that contained in Genesis xiv.) very little
of the early record can be securely traced to a period near the
events. Thus the Church cannot insist upon the historical charac-
ter of the earliest records of the ancient Church in detail, as she
can on the historical character of the Gospels or the Acts of the
Apostles. On the other hand, as it seems the more probable
opinion that the Hebrews must have been acquainted with the art
of writing in some form long before the Exodus, there is no reason
to doubt the existence of some written records among them from
very early days. 1 Internal evidence again certainly commends to
our acceptance the history of the patriarchs, of the Egyptian bond-
age, of the great redemption, of the wanderings, as well as of the
later period as to which there would be less dispute. In a word,
we are, we believe, not wrong in anticipating that the Church will
continue to believe and to teach that the Old Testament from Abra-
ham downwards is really historical, and that there will be nothing
to make such belief and teaching unreasonable or wilful. But within
the limits of what is substantially historical, there is still room for
an admixture of what, though marked by spiritual purpose, is yet
not strictly historical, — for instance, for a feature which charac-
terizes all early history, the attribution to first founders of what is
really the remoter result of their institutions. Now historical criti-
cism 2 assures us that this process has been largely at work in the
Pentateuch. By an analysis, for instance, the force of which is
very great, it distinguishes distinct stages in the growth of the law of
worship : at least an early stage such as is represented in ' the Book
of the Covenant,' 3 a second stage in the Book of Deuteronomy, a
last stage in ' the Priestly Code.' What we may suppose to have
1 See the Annual Address (1889) delivered at the Victoria Institute by
Professor Sayce on the cuneiform tablets of Tel el-amarna, pp. 4, 14 f. : ' We
learn that in the fifteenth century before our era — a century before the
Exodus — active literary intercourse was going on throughout the civilized
world of Western Asia, between Babylonia and Egypt and the smaller States
of Palestine. . . . This intercourse was carried on by means of the Babylonian
language and the complicated Babylonian script. How educated the old
world was, we are but just beginning to learn. But we have already learnt
enough to discover how important a bearing it has on the criticism of the
Old Testament.'
' 2 See Driver, Crit Notes on Sunday-school Lessons (Scribner : New York).
3 Ex. xx. xxii.-xxiii. xxxiii.
vni. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 295
happened is that Moses himself established a certain germ of cere-
monial enactment in connection with the ark and its sacred tent,
and with the ' ten words ; ' and that this developed always as 6 the
law of Moses,' the whole result being constantly attributed, probably
unconsciously and certainly not from any intention to deceive, to
the original founder. This view would certainly imply that the
recorders of Israel's history were subject to the ordinary laws in the
estimate of evidence, that their inspiration did not consist in a
miraculous communication to them of facts as they originally hap-
pened ; but if we believe that the law, as it grew, really did repre-
sent the Divine intention for the Jews, gradually worked out upon the
jf a Mosaic institution, there is nothing materially untruthful,
though there is something uncritical, in attributing the whole legisla-
tion to Moses acting under the Divine command. It would be only
of a piece with the attribution of the collection of Psalms to David
and of Proverbs to Solomon. Nor does the supposition that the law
was of gradual growth interfere in any way with the symbolical and
typical value of its various ordinances.
Once again, the same school of criticism would assure us that the
Books of Chronicles represent a later and less historical version of
Israel's history than that given in Samuel and Kings : * they repre-
sent, according to this view, the version of that history which had
become current in the priestly schools. What we are asked to
admit is not conscious perversion, but unconscious idealizing of
history, the reading back into past records of a ritual development
which was really later. Now inspiration excludes conscious decep-
tion or pious fraud, but it appears to be quite consistent with this
sort of idealizing, — always supposing that the result read back into
the earlier history does represent the real purpose of God, and only
anticipates its realization.
Here then is one great question. Inspiration certainly means the
illumination of the judgment of the recorder. ' By the contact of
the Holy Spirit,' says Origen, ' they became clearer in their mental
perceptions, and their souls were filled with a brighter light.' 2 But
have we any reason to believe that it means, over and above this,
the miraculous communication of facts not otherwise to be known.
a miraculous communication such as would make the recorder
independent of the ordinary processes of historical tradition? Cer-
tainly neither St. Luke's preface to his Gospel, nor the evidence of
any inspired record, justifies us in this assumption. Nor would it
1 The Books of Kings seem to be compiled from the point of view of the
Deuteronomist.
2 Origen, c. Cels., vii 4.
296 The Religion of the Incarnation.
appear that spiritual illumination, even in the highest degree, has
any tendency to lift men out of the natural conditions of knowledge
which belong to their time. Certainly in the similar case of exe-
gesis, it would appear that St. Paul is left to the method of his time,
though he uses it with inspired insight into the function and mean-
ing of law and of prophecy as a whole. Thus, without pronouncing
an opinion, where we have no right to do so, on the critical ques-
tions at present under discussion, we may maintain with consider-
able assurance that there is nothing in the doctrine of inspiration to
prevent our recognizing a considerable idealizing element in the Old
Testament history. The reason is of course obvious enough why
what can be admitted in the Old Testament, could not, without
results disastrous to the Christian Creed, be admitted in the New.
It is because the Old Testament is the record of how God produced
a need, or anticipation, or ideal, while the New Testament records
how in fact He satisfied it. The absolute coincidence of idea and
fact is vital in the realization, not in the preparation for it. It is
equally obvious, too, that where fact is of supreme importance, as in
the New Testament, the evidence has none of the ambiguity or re-
moteness which belongs to much of the record of the preparation.
{b) But once again ; we find all sorts of literature in the inspired
volume : men can be inspired to think and to write for God under
all the forms of natural genius. Now one form of genius is the
dramatic : its essence is to make characters, real or imaginary, the
vehicles for an ideal presentation. It presents embodied ideas.
Now the Song of Solomon is of the nature of a drama. The book
of Job, although it works on an historical basis, is, it can hardly be
denied, mainly dramatic. The Book of Wisdom, which with us is
among the books of the Bible, though in the second rank, outside
the canon, and which is inside the canon of the Roman Church,
professes to be written by Solomon, 1 but is certainly written not by
him, but in his person by another author. We may then conceive
the same to be true of Ecclesiastes and of Deuteronomy ; i. ., we
may suppose Deuteronomy to be a republication of the law * in
the spirit and power ' of Moses put dramatically into his mouth.
Criticism goes further, and asks us to regard Jonah and Daniel,
1 E. g., chs. vii., ix. The Roman Church admits that it is, to use Newman's
phrase, 'a prosopopoeia;' 'our Bibles say, "it is written in the person of
Solomon," and "it is uncertain who was the writer," ' 1. c, p. 197. It is
important to bear in mind that the Western Church in general has, since
St. Agustine's day, admitted into the canon a book the literary method of
which is thus confessedly dramatic. Newman makes this the ground for
saying that the same may be true of Ecclesiastes.
viii. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 297
among the prophetic books, as dramatic compositions worked up
on a basis of history. The discussion of these books has often been
approached from a point of view from which the miraculous is
necessarily unhistorical. With such a point of view we are not con-
cerned. The possibility and reality of miracles has to be vindicated
first of all in the field of the New Testament ; and one who admits
them there, cannot reasonably exclude their possibility in the earlier
history. The question must be treated simply on literary and evi-
dential grounds. 1 But we would contend that if criticism should
show these books to be probably dramatic, that would be no hin-
drance to their performing ' an important canonical function,' or to
their being inspired. Dramatic composition has played an immense
part in training the human mind. It is as far removed as possible
from a violation of truth, though in an uncritical age its results may
very soon pass for history. It admits of being inspired as much as
poetry or history, and indeed there are few who could feel a diffi-
culty in recognizing as inspired the teaching of the books of Jonah
and Daniel. 2 It is maintained then that the Church leaves open
to literary criticism the question whether several of the writings
of the Old Testament are or are not dramatic. Certainly the fact
that they have not commonly been taken to be so in the past will
be no evidence to the contrary, unless it can be denied that a liter-
ary criticism is being developed, which is as really new an intel-
lectual product as the scientific development, and as such, certain
to reverse a good many of the literary judgments of previous ages.
We are being asked to make considerable changes in our literary
conception of the Scriptures, but not greater changes than were
involved in the acceptance of the heliocentric astronomy.
(c) Once again : an enlarged study of comparative history has
led to our perceiving that the various sorts of mental or literary
activity develop in their different lines out of an earlier condition
in which they lie fused and undifferentiated. This we can vaguely
call the mythical stage of mental evolution. A myth is not a false-
hood ; it is a product of mental activity, as instructive and rich as
any later product, but its characteristic is that it is not yet distin-
guished into history, and poetry, and philosophy. It is all of these
1 On the evidence of O. T. miracles I may refer to Mr. Samuel Cox's
Essay: Miracles, an Argument and a Challenge. (Kegan Paul, 1884.)
2 Of course the distinction must be maintained in the case of the book of
Daniel between a ' pious fraud,' which cannot be inspired, and an idealizing
personification, which, as a normal type of literature, can. Further study will
probably solve the special difficulty which on the critical hypothesis attaches
to the book of Daniel from this point of view ; see Stanton, Jewish and
Christian Messiah, p. 109, note I.
29 3 The Religion of the Incarnation,
in the germ, as dream and imagination, and thought and experience,
are fused in the mental furniture of a child's mind. ' These myths,
or current stories,' says Grote, writing of Greek history, ' the spon-
taneous and earliest growth of the Greek mind, constituted at the
same time the entire intellectual stock of the age to which they be-
longed. They are the common root of all those different rami-
fications into which the mental activity of the Greeks subsequently
diverged ; containing, as it were, the preface and germ of the
positive history and philosophy, the dogmatic theology and the pro-
fessed romance, which we shall hereafter trace, each in its separate
development/ Now has the Jewish history such earlier stage?
Does it pass back out of history into myth ? In particular, are
not its earlier narratives, before the call of Abraham, of the nature
of myth, in which we cannot distinguish the historical germ, though
we do not at all deny that it exists ? The inspiration of these nar-
ratives is as conspicuous as that of any part of scripture ; but is
there anything to prevent our regarding these great inspirations
about the origin of all things, — the nature of sin, the judgment of
God on sin, and the alienation among men which follows their
alienation from God, — as conveyed to us in that form of myth or
allegorical picture, which is the earliest mode in which the mind of
man apprehended truth?
6. The present writer, believing that the modern development
of historical criticism is reaching results as sure, where it is fairly
used, as scientific inquiry, and feeling, therefore, that the warning
which the name of Galileo must ever bring before the memory of
Churchmen, is not unneeded now, believes also that the Church is
in no way restrained from admitting the modifications just hinted
at, in what has latterly been the current idea of inspiration.
The Church is not restrained, in the first place, by having com-
mitted herself to any dogmatic definitions of the meaning of inspir-
ation. 1 It is remarkable indeed that Origen's almost reckless
mysticism, and his accompanying repudiation of the historical charac-
ter of large parts of the narrative of the Old Testament, and of some
parts of the New, 2 though it did not gain acceptance, and indeed
1 This is certainly true of the Church as a whole. For the most that can
be said in the same sense of the Roman Church, see Newman in the article
above cited.
2 De Principiis, iv. 15, 16, 17. His point is that incidents which could not
have occurred in fact, or at least did not occur, are inserted in the narrative of
the Old and New Testaments, that their very historical impossibility or im-
probability may drive us to the consideration of their spiritual significance.
' The attentive reader may notice . . . innumerable other passages, like
these, so that he will be convinced that in tli2 histories that are literally
vin. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 299
had no right to it (for it had no sound basis), on the other hand
never roused the Church to contrary definitions. Nor is it only
Origen who disputed the historical character of parts of the narra-
tive of Holy Scripture. Clement before him in Alexandria, and
the mediaeval Anselm in the West, treat the seven days' creation
as allegory and not history. Athanasius speaks of paradise as a
' figure.' A mediaeval Greek writer, who had more of Irenaeus
than remains to us, declared that ' he did not know how those who
kept to the letter and took the account of the temptation histori
cally rather than allegorically, could meet the arguments of Irenaeus
against them.' Further than this, it cannot be denied that the mys-
tical method, as a whole, tended to the depreciation of the his-
torical sense, in comparison with the spiritual teaching which it
conveyed. 1 . In a different line, Chrysostom, of the literal school of
interpreters, explains quite in the tone of a modern apologist, how
the discrepancies in detail between the different Gospels assure us
of the independence of the witnesses, and do not touch the facts
of importance in which all agree.
The Church is not tied then by any existing definitions. We
cannot make any exact claim upon any one's belief in regard to
inspiration, simply because we have no authoritative definition to
bring to bear upon him. Those of us who believe most in the
inspiration of the Church will see a Divine Providence in this
absence of dogma, because we shall perceive that only now is the
state of knowledge such as admits of the question being legitimately
raised.
Nor does it seem that the use which our Lord made of the Old
Testament is an argument against the proposed concessions. Our
Lord, in His use of the Old Testament, does indeed indorse with
the utmost emphasis the Jewish view of their own history. He
does thus imply, on the one hand, the real inspiration of their
canon in its completeness, and, on the other hand, that He Him-
self was the goal of that inspired leading and the standard of that
inspiration. ' Your father Abraham rejoiced to see My day ; ' * I
am not come to destroy, but to fufil.' This, and it is the important
matter for all that concerns our spiritual education, is not in dis-
pute. What is questioned is that our Lord's words foreclose cer-
tain critical positions as to the character of Old Testament litera-
ture. For example, does His use of Jonah's resurrection, as a type
of His own, depend in any real degree upon whether it is historical
recorded, circumstances are inserted that did not occur.'
Platonists, pp. 137-138.
1 Cf. Jerome, ad Nepotian., ep. Hi. 2.
300 The Religion of the Incarnation.
fact or allegory ? 1 It is of the essence of a type to suggest an idea,
as of the antitype to realize it. The narrative of Jonah suggested
certainly the idea of resurrection after three days, of triumph
over death, and by suggesting this gave our Lord what His dis-
course required. Once more, our Lord uses the time before
the flood' 2 to illustrate the carelessness of men before His
own coming. He is using the flood here as a typical judgment,
as elsewhere He uses other contemporary visitations for a like pur-
pose. In referring to the flood He certainly suggests that He is
treating it as typical, for He introduces circumstances — ' eating
and drinking, marrying and giving in marriage ' — which have no
counterpart in the original narrative. Nothing in his use of it
depends on its being more than a typical instance. Once more,
He argues with the Pharisees on the assumption of the Davidic
authorship of Psalm ex. 3 But it must be noticed that He is asking
a question rather than making a statement, — a question, moreover,
which does not admit of being turned into a statement without sug-
gesting the conclusion, of which rationalistic critics have not hesi-
tated to avail themselves, that David's Lord could not be David's
son. There are, we notice, other occasions when our Lord asked
questions which cannot be made the basis of positive propositions. 4
It was in fact part of His method to lead men to examine their
own principles, without at the time suggesting any positive conclu-
sion at all. It may also fairly be represented, on a review of our
Lord's teaching as a whole, that if He had intended to convey
instruction to us on critical and literary questions, He would have
made His purpose plainer. It is contrary to His whole method to
reveal His Godhead by any anticipations of natural knowledge.
The Incarnation was a self-emptying of God to reveal Himself
under conditions of human nature and from the human point of
view. We are able to draw a distinction between what He revealed
and what He used. He revealed God, His mind, His character,
His claim, within certain limits His Threefold Being ; He revealed
man, his sinfulness, his need, his capacity; -He revealed His pur-
pose of redemption, and founded His Church as a home in which
man was to be through all the ages reconciled to God in knowl-
edge and love. All this He revealed, but through, and under con-
1 St. Matt. xii. 40. 2 St. Matt. xxiv. 37-39. 3 St. Matt. xxii. 41-46.
4 See especially St. Mark x. 17-18 (and parallel passages), where our
Lord's question, if converted into a positive proposition, suggests a repudi-
ation of personal goodness. Cf. also the question in St. John x. 34-36,
where, though the argument is h fortiori, still the true character of our Lord's
sonship is hardly suggested.
vin. The Holy Spirit and Inspiration. 301
ditions of, a true human nature. Thus He used human nature, its
relation to God, its conditions of experience, its growth in knowl-
edge, its limitation of knowledge. 1 He feels as we men ought to
feel ; He sees as we ought to see. We can thus distinguish more
or less between the Divine truth which He reveals, and the human
nature which He uses. Now when He speaks of the ' sun rising '
He is using ordinary human knowledge. He willed so to re-
strain the beams of Deity as to observe the limits of the science
of His age, and He puts Himself in the same relation to its histori-
cal knowledge. Thus He does not reveal His eternity by state-
ments as to what had happened in the past, or was to happen
in the future, outside the ken of existing history. 2 He made His
Godhead gradually manifest by His attitude towards men and
things about Him, by His moral and spiritual claims, by His
expressed relation to His Father, not by any miraculous exemp-
tions of Himself from the conditions of natural knowledge in its
own proper province. Thus the utterances of Christ about the Old
Testament do not seem to be nearly definite or clear enough to
allow of our supposing that in this case He is departing from the
general method of the Incarnation, by bringing to bear the unveiled
omniscience of the Godhead, to anticipate or foreclose a develop-
ment of natural knowledge.
But if we thus plead that theology may leave the field open for
free discussion of these questions which Biblical criticism has re-
cently been raising, we shall probably be bidden to ' remember
Tubingen,' and not be over-trustful of a criticism which at least
exhibits in some of its most prominent representatives a great deal
of arbitrariness, of love of ' new views ' for their own sake, and a
great lack of that reverence and spiritual insight which is at least as
much needed for understanding the books of the Bible, as accurate
knowledge and fair investigation. To this the present writer would
1 This limitation of knowledge must not be confused with fallibility or lia-
bility to human delusion, because it was doubtless guarded by the Divine
purpose which led Jesus Christ to take it upon Himself.
2 Of course He gave prophetic indications of the coming judgment, but on
the analogy of inspired prophecy. He did not reveal ' times and seasons,' and
declared that it was not within the scope of His mission to do so. See esp.
St. Mark xiii. 32. He exhibits supernatural insight into men's characters
and lives ; but He never exhibits the omniscience of bare Godhead in the
realm of natural knowledge, such as would be required to anticipate the re-
sults of modern science or criticism. This ' self-emptying ' of God in the
Incarnation is, we must always remember, no failure of power, but a contin-
uous act of Self-sacrifice ; cf. 2 Cor. viii. 9 and Phil. ii. 7. Indeed God
'declares His almighty power most chiefly' in this Condescension, whereby
He ' beggared Himself ' of Divine prerogatives, to put Himself in our place.
302 The Religion of the Incarnation.
be disposed to reply that, if the Christian Church has been enabled
to defeat the critical attack, so far as it threatened destruction to
the historical basis of the New Testament, it has not been by fore-
closing the question with an appeal to dogma, but by facing in
fair and frank discussion the problems raised. A similar treatment
of Old Testament problems will enable us to distinguish between
what is reasonable and reverent, and what is high-handed and irre-
ligious in contemporary criticism, whether German, French, or
English. Even in regard to what makes prima facie a reasonable
claim, we do not prejudice the decision by declaring the field open ;
in all probability there will always remain more than one school of
legitimate opinion on the subject ; indeed, the purpose of the latter
part of this essay has not been to inquire how much we can without
irrationality believe inspiration to involve ; but rather, how much
may legitimately and without real loss be conceded. For, without
doubt, if consistently with entire loyalty to our Lord and His
Church, we can regard as open the questions specified above, we
are removing great obstacles from the path to belief of many who
certainly wish to believe, and do not exhibit any undue scepticism.
Nor does there appear to be any real danger that the criticism of
the Old Testament will ultimately diminish our reverence for it. In
the case of the New Testament certainly we are justified in feeling
-that modern investigation has resulted in immensely augmenting
our understanding of the different books, and has distinctly fortified
and enriched our sense of their inspiration. Why then should
we hesitate to believe that the similar investigation of the Old Tes-
tament will in its result similarly enrich our sense that ' God in
divers portions and divers manners spake of old times unto the
fathers,' and that the Inspiration of Holy Scriptures will always be
recognized as the most conspicuous of the modes in which the
Holy Spirit has mercifully wrought for the illumination and encour-
agement of our race ?
1 For whatsoever things were written aforetime were written for
our learning, that we through patience and comfort of the Scriptures
might have hope.'
IX.
THE CHURCH.
WALTER LOCK.
IX.
THE CHURCH.
Christianity claims to be at once a life, a truth, and a worship ;
and, on all these accounts, it needs must find expression in a
church. For, in the first place, the life of an individual remains
dwarfed and stunted as long as it is lived in isolation \ it is in its
origin the outcome of other lives ; it is at every moment of its exis-
tence dependent upon others ; it reaches perfection only when it
arrives at a conscious sense of its own deficiencies and limitations,
and, therefore, of its dependence, and through such a sense realizes
with thankfulness its true relation to the rest of life around it.
Again, the knowledge of truth comes to the individual first through
the mediation of others, of his parents and teachers ; as he grows,
and his own intellect works more freely, yet its results only gain
consistency, security, width, when tested by the results of other
workers ; and directly we wish to propagate these results, they
must be embodied in the lives of others, in societies, in organiza-
tions. Without these, ideas remain in the air, abstract, intangible,
appealing perhaps to the philosophic few, but high above the reach
of the many, the simple. ' All human society is the receptacle,
nursery, and dwelling-place of ideas, shaped and limited according
to the nature of the society — ideas which live and act on it and in
it ; which are preserved, passed on, and transmitted from one por-
tion of it to another, from one generation to another ; which would
be merely abstractions or individual opinions if they were not en-
dowed with the common life which their reception in a society
gives them.' x
These two principles are, obviously, not confined to religious
questions. They apply to morality, to society, to politics. They
are assumed in all ethical and political treatises. The need of co-
operation for common life underlies the whole structure of the
*The Dean^of St. Paul's on The Christian Church (Oxford House
Papers, No. xvii.), where this truth is excellently worked out and applied
to the Church.
20
306 The Religion of the Incarnation.
Republic of Plato ; it is implied in Aristotle's definition of man as
a social animal, and in his close association of Ethics with Politics :
it has created the family, the tribe, the state ; each fresh assertion
of the principle, each breaking down of the barriers which separate
family from family, tribe from tribe, nation from nation, has been a
step forward in civilization. The strength of co-operation for the
propagation of ideas is seen in the persistence with which certain
nations retain hold on political theories or peculiar features of
character; it is seen in the recurring formation of philosophic
schools or religious sects or guilds, as soon as any new truth, intel-
lectual or religious, has been discovered, or any moral quality, such
as temperance or purity, has needed to be emphasized. The most
individualistic of Christian sects have found themselves forced to
be ecclesiastical, to define their creeds, and to perfect their organi-
zation, as soon as they have begun to be missionary.
These principles are as wide as society ; but religion takes them
up and applies them on the highest level. Religion is, almost uni-
versally, the link which binds man to man, no less than that which
binds man to a Power above him. So in the Christian Church —
if we may anticipate, for a moment, our special application of the
principle — the new-born child is taken at once and incorporated
into a body of believers ; from the first it draws its life from God
through the body ; it is taught that throughout life it must keep
in touch with the body ; it must be in a right relation to the other
members ; it must draw life from them ; it must contribute life to
them. And, further, this body has existed always and exists still as
the home of certain ideas y ideas about God and about human life,
which were revealed in Jesus Christ, and which it has to attest in
its teaching and embody in its life. It is to be a body of visible
persons, themselves the light of the world, expressing so that others
can see the manifold wisdom of God, winning others to belief in
the unity of God, by the sight of their own oneness. The first
principle might be expressed in the words of Festus to Paracelsus,
when the latter had claimed to be God's special instrument in the
world : —
' Were I elect like you,
I would encircle me with love, and raise
A rampart of my fellows : it should seem
Impossible for me to fail, so watched
By gentle friends who made their cause my own.
They should ward off fate's envy : — the great gift,
Extravagant when claimed by me alone,
Being so a gift to them as well as me ; ' x
1 Browning, Paracelsus, ii. p. 30, ed. 18SS.
ix. The Church. 307
the second principle by lines applied originally to the Incarnation,
but which we may legitimately transfer to the Church, which con-
tinues the work of the Incarnation, —
1 And so the Word had breath, and wrought
With human hands the Creed of Creeds
In loveliness of perfect deeds,
More strong than all poetic thought/ 1
But, further, religion adds a third application of its own to this
principle of co-operation ; for a church grows also out of the neces-
sities of worship. The ritual needed for the offering of sacrifice
almost necessitates of itself a number of persons for its performance.
No doubt, an individual can worship God in private, but so his
worship tends to be self-centred and narrow ; for the full expres-
sion of his religious relation to others, for expiating a wrong done
by him to his neighbors or to the whole community, for expressing
gratitude for mercies which have come to him through others, there
must be the common meeting ; and the community as a whole has
its great victories for which to thank God, its national dangers for
which to pray, its national sins for which to offer expiation ; and
hence, common religious acts have been the universal accompani-
ment of national life, and have in their turn reacted upon it.
The idea of a church, then, as conceived in its most general
form, and without especial reference to the Christian Church, is
this, that it widens life by deepening the sense of brotherhood ;
that it teaches, strengthens, and propagates ideas by enshrining
truth in living witnesses, by checking the results "of isolated think-
ers by contact with other thinkers, and by securing permanency for
the ideas ; and that it expands and deepens worship by eliminating
all that is selfish and narrow, and giving expression to common
aims and feelings.
We pass from such a priori ideas to the evidence of the Bible.
There we find that these principles were embodied first in Judaism.
There the whole nation was the Church. The Jew entered into
the religious privileges of his life, not by any conscious act of his
own, but by being born of Jewish parents ; he retained his true life
by remaining in contact with his nation. The union of the different
members of the nation with each other is so intimate that the
whole nation is spoken of as a personal unit. It is called l God's
Son,' His 'first-born Son/ 'Jehovah's servant.' The ideal of
prophecy is essentially that of a restored nation rejoicing in the
rule of national righteousness. Again, the nation was chosen out
1 Tennyson, In Memoriam, xxxvi.
308 The Religion of the Incarnation,
specially to bear witness to truth, truth about the nature of God,
the Almighty, the Eternal, the Holy ; truth embodied in the facts
of history, and deepened in the revelations of prophecy; truths
which the fathers teach their children, ' that they should not hide
them from the children of the generations to come.' x In the strik-
ing phrase of St. Athanasius, the law and the prophets were ' a
sacred school of the knowledge of God and of spiritual life for the
whole world.' 2 Their worship, too, was essentially social and
national. From the first it centred round great national events,
the fortunes of the harvest, or the crises of national history ; the
individual was purified from sin that he might be worthy to take
part in the national service ; the events of the nation's history were
celebrated in religious hymns ; the capital of the nation became the
one and only recognized centre for the highest worship.
But Judaism adds to these principles a further principle of its
own. It claims that such privileges as were granted to it, were not
granted to it for its own sake, but that it might be a source of bles-
sing to all nations ; it assumes that they are on a lower religious
level than itself; that instead of each nation progressing equally
along the line of religious life, truth, and worship, other nations
have fallen backward, and the Jew has been chosen out for a spe-
cial privilege. It is the principle that God works by ' limitation,' by
apparent ' exclusiveness,' by that which is in its essence ' sacerdo-
talism ; ' the principle that God does not give His gifts equally to
all, but specially to a few, that they may use them for the good of
the whole. This principle seems at first sight to offend some mod-
ern abstract ideas of justice and equality ; but the moment we
examine the facts of life, we find it prevailing universally. Each
nation has its peculiar gift ; the Greek makes his parallel claim to
be specially gifted with the love of knowledge and the power of
artistic expression ; the Roman with the power of rule and the
belief in law. Or, again, within a single nation, it is the artist who
enables us to see the beauty of a face or a landscape which had
escaped us before, —
' Art was given for that,
God uses us to help each other so,
Lending our minds out.' 3
It is the poet who interprets our inner nature or the magic of the
external world, and becomes —
1 Ps. Ixxviii. 3, 4. 2 De Inc., 12. 8 Browning, Fra Lippo LippL
he sings
ix. The Church, 309
' A priest to us all
Of the wonder and bloom of the world,
Which we see with his eyes and are glad ; ' x
' Till the world is wrought
To sympathy with hopes and fears it heeded not.' 2
And this principle does not stop short of religious influences.
Conscience is itself a witness to it, as it implies that all parts of
our nature are not sufficient guides to themselves, but that God
has gifted one special faculty with power to control the rest. ' Men
of character,' it has been said, ' are the conscience of the society
to which they belong.' In the Jewish nation itself, the prophets
were the circle of Jehovah's friends ; they knew His secrets, they
kept alive the ideal of the nation. ' What the soul is in the body,
that are Christians in the world,' was the parallel claim of an
early apologist. 3 Analogies crowd in, then, on every side, to show
how rational is this claim on the part of Judaism.
Revelation only accepts this fact, and adds to it the assertion
that it is no accident, but a part of the Divine Purpose. It is the
result of God's election. The Jewish nation, and subsequently the
Christian Church, is not only a blessing to the rest of the world,
but it is conscious that it is a blessing. This truth has been
revealed to it partly to keep it ever-mindful of its sense of depen-
dence upon the Giver of all good gifts, partly to give it tenacity and
courage to cling to a gift which it knows to be of inestimable value
for all mankind. ' The election was simply a method of procedure
adopted by God in His wisdom by which He designed to fit the
few for blessing the many, one for blessing all.' 4
It must be from considerations such as these that we approach
the foundation of the Christian Church and the Incarnation of our
Lord Jesus Christ on which it rests. We approach it with the
expectation that we shall find these principles embodied in it, for
Christianity sprang directly out of Judaism, and so would naturally
inherit its principles ; and to go deeper still, the very essence of
the Incarnation lies in the consecration of human life and human
means. He who before had been acting invisibly upon the world
as the Word, implanting life and light in man, now entered visibly
into human flesh. All tendencies which made for the fulness of
1 M. Arnold, The Youth of Nature.
2 Shelley, The Skylark.
3 Ep. ad Diogn , vi.
4 Bruce, The Chief End of Revelation, p. 116.
3io The Religion of the Incarnation.
life and truth before His coming, all that tended to enlighten, ele-
vate, combine men, had been His unknown working ; now they
are known to be His. The Infinite appears in finite form ; the
spiritual takes the material in which to express itself ; human media
are consecrated to deeper ends, and charged with a fuller meaning
than before \ so that, in Hooker's words, ' We cannot now con-
ceive how God should, without man, exercise Divine power or
receive the glory of Divine praise.' * ' What you do now even after
the, flesh, that is spiritual/ is the bold paradox of St. Ignatius; and
he adds the reason, ' for you do all in Christ Jesus.' 2 Thus —
' In this twofold sphere, the twofold man
Holds firmly to the natural, to reach
The spiritual beyond it . . .
The whole temporal show related royally
And built up to eterne significance
Through the open arms of God.' 3
The Incarnation, then, takes up all the three principles of which
we have spoken ; but, from the very finality which it claims for
itself, it puts a mark of finality upon each of them, and so, in this
respect, marks off the application of them in the Christian Church
from all other applications of the same principles. The principle
of co-operation for spiritual life is taken up ; the Jewish nation is
expanded into an universal brotherhood ; this includes all men,
without any distinction of race ; it includes the quick and the
dead ; it aims at the highest spiritual perfection. It is final in this
sense, that nothing can be wider in extent or deeper in aim ; but
it is final also in the sense that the life has been manifested.
Christians do not combine to work up to some unsuspected ideal ;
they combine -to draw out and express in their common life the
perfection that was in Christ. The principle of association for the
propagation of ideas is taken up, but they are truths about God
and His relation to human nature ; they are truths which have
been revealed, which have been once for all delivered to the saints.
Finally, the principle of association for worship is taken up ; the
worship is made as wide as humanity ; it is to be as spiritual as
God ; but it, too, rests on final facts, on the facts of creation and
redemption ; it centres round the one complete sacrifice for sin.
1 Eccl. Pol., v. 54. Cf. Iren., adv. Haer., iii. 20 : ' Gloria enim hominis
Deus; operationis vero Dei et omnis sapientiae Ejus et virtutis receptaculum
homo.'
2 Ign., ad Eph., viii. a Se koX Kara (rdpKa irpdffffere, ravra irvevfiaTUcd i E foil.
4 Ecce Homo, c. x. Cp. St. John xxi. 25.
410 The Religion of the Incarnation,
The transition from the discussion of moral Law to that of
Christian character seems at this point natural and simple.
III. Christ the Pattern of Character.
The stress which in Christian Ethics is laid upon personality
scarcely requires further illustration. The principle of personality
underlies our fundamental assumption that man is capable of free
communion with, and imitation of, God. We believe that the
union between God and man was consummated in and through a
Person. Further, the spirit in which fulfilment of the Law is pos-
sible — the spirit of filial love — can only exist in personal rela-
tions. It corresponds with this general prominence of personality
that Christianity presents the ideal standard of human character in
a Person.
In passing may be noted the fact that this principle to some
extent emerges in ancient systems. Aristotle's definition of virtue
naturally occurs to us as admitting the function of an 'expert'
(6 p6vijxos, 6